^^ ^-^^ v<>, IMAGE EVALUATION TEST TARGET (MT-3) /. A^ z 1.0 I.I 1.25 l£i|M US 2.5 1^ ii|2.2 m us I 40 6" 1.8 i4_ ill 1.6 /r^ '> V '4^^''^ '/ Photographic Sciences Corporation 73 WEST MAIN STREET WEBSTER, N.Y. 14580 (716) 872-4503 CIHM/ICMH Microfiche Series. CIHM/ICMH Collection de microfiches. Canadian Institute for Historical Microreproductions / Institut Canadian de microreproductions historiques Technical and Bibliographic Notas/Notas techniques at bibliographiquas The Institute has attempted to obtain the best original ccpy available for filming. Features of this copy which may be bibliographicaliy unique, which may alter any of the images in the reproduction, or which may significantly change the usual method of filming, are checked below. □ Coloured covers/ Couverture de couleur I I Covers damaged/ D D D D n n Couverture endommag^e Covers restored and/or laminated/ Couverture restaur^ et/ou pelliculde r~n Cover title missing/ Le titre de couverture manque I I Coloured maps/ Cartes g6ographiques en couleur Coloured ink (i.e. other than blue or black)/ Encre de couleur (i.e. autre que bleue ou noire) n~l Coloured plates and/or illustrations/ Planches et/ou illustrations en couleur Bound with other material/ Relii avec d'autres documents Tight binding may cause shadows or distortion along interior margin/ La re liure serrde peut causer de I'ombre ou de la distorsion le long de la marge intdrieure Blank leaves added during restoration may appear within the text. Whenever possible, these have been omitted from filming/ II se peut que certaines pages blanches ajout6es lors d'unc restauration apparaissent dans le texte. mais, lorsque cela Atait possible, ces pages n'ont pas it6 fiimies. Additional comments:/ Commentaires suppl6mentaires: L'Institut a microfilmi le meilleur exemp!aire qu'il lui a Mi possible de se procurer. Les details de cet exfimplaire qui sont peut-Atre uniques du point de vue bibliographique, qui peuvent modifier une image reproduite, ou qui peuvent exiger une modification dans la mithode normale de filmage sont indiquAs ci-dessous. I I Coloured pages/ D Pages de couleur Pages damaged/ Pages endommagies □ Pages restored and/or laminated/ Pages restaurdes et/ou pel'>cul4es Pages discoloured, stained or foxed/ Pages dicolories, tacheties ou piqu6es □ Pages detached/ Pages ddtachdes Show through; Transparence Quality of prir Quality in^gaie de ('impression includes supplementary materit Comprend du materiel supplimentaire Only edition available/ Seule Edition disponible r~J\ Showthrough/ I I Quality of print varies/ r~~| includes supplementary material/ I I Only edition available/ Pages wholly or partially obscured by errata slips, tissues, etc., have been refilmed to ensure the best possible image/ Les pages totalement ou partiellement obscurcies par un feuillet d'errata, une pelure, etc., ont 6t6 film6es d nouveau de fapon i obtenir la meilleure image possible. This item is filmed at the reduction ratio checked below/ Ce document est filmA au taux de reduction indiquA ci-dessous. 10X 14X 18X 22X 26X 30X y 12X 16X 20X 24X 28X 32X Th« copy filmed h«r« hm b—n raproduead thanks to tha ganarosity of: L'axamplaira filmi fut raproduit grAca A la ginAroait* da: University of Calgary University of Calgary Tha imagas appaaring hara ara tha baat quality possibla conaidaring tha condition and lagibllity of tha original copy and in Icaaping with tha filming contract spacificatlona. Original copiaa in printad papar covara ara fiimad beginning with tha front covar and anding on tha last paga with a printad or illuatratad impraa- •ion, or tha bacic covar whan appropriate. AH othar original copiaa ara filmed beginning on the first paga with a printad or illuatratad imprae- sion. and ending on the laat page with a printad or illuatratad impraaaion. Las images suivantas ont Ati raproduites avec la plus grand soin. compta tanu da la condition at da la nattet* da l'axamplaira film*. «it an conformity avec lea conditions du contrvt da filmaga. Lea exemplairaa originaux dont la couvarture en papier eat ImprimAe sont filmte en commandant par la premier plat at en terminant soit par la darniAre paga qui comporta una ampreinta d'impression ou d'illustration. soit par la second plat, salon la cas. Tous las autras axamplairas originaux sont film4s an commen9ant par la premiere page qui comporte une empreinte d'impression ou d'illustration at an terminant par la derniAre paga qui comporte une telle empreinte. The lest recorded frame on each microfiche shall contain the symbol ^^ (meaning "COIV- TINUED "), or the symbol V (meaning "END "). whichever appliaa. Un das symboiaa suivants apparaitra sur la derniAre image de cheque microfiche, selon ie cas: la symbols -^ signifie "A SUIVRE", la symbols V signifie "FIN". Mapa, plates, charts, etc., may be filmed at different reduction ratioa. Thoaa too large to be entirely included in one expoaura ara fiimad beginning in the upper left hand corner, left to right and top to bottom, aa many frames aa required. The following diagrama illustrate the method: Les cartas, planches, tableaux, etc.. pauvent dtra filmAs k d«s iSux de rMuction diffirents. Lorsque Ie document est trop grand pour fttra reproduit en un seul clichA. il est film* A partir de I'angle supArieur gauche, de gauche d droita, at de haut an baa, 9n prenant la nombra d'imagea nteassaira. Lea diagrammas suivants illuatrant la m^thoda. 1 2 3 1 2 3 4 5 6 m ( ■^ . A-'- I - - .•».-^-i AV IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY <»i : ^---l^'^: ! Il- l.« IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY a flMlitac^ Dovel BY G. A. HENTY AUTHOR OF "the CURSE OF CARNE's HOLD," *'A HIDDEN FOE," ETC HUNTER, ROSE & COMPANY. 1895. In the Days of the Mutiny.' CHAPTER I. It would be difficult to find a fairer scene. Through- out the gardens, lanterns of many shapes and devices t':irew their light down upon the paths, which were marked out by lines of little lamps suspended on wires a foot above the ground. In a treble row they encir- cled a large tank or pond and studded a little island in its centre. Along the terraces were festoons and arches of innumerable lamps, while behind was the Palace or Castle — for it was called either — the Oriental doors and windows and the tracery of its walls lit up below by the soft light, while the outline of the upper part could scarce be made out. Eastern as the scene was, the act- ors were for the most part English. Although the crowd that promenaded the terrace was composed principally of men, of whom the majority were in uniform of one sort or another, the rest being in evening dress, there •were many ladies among them. At the end of one of the terraces a band of the 103d Bengal Infantry was playing, and when they ceased a band of native musicians, at the opposite end of the terrace, took up the strains. Within, the palace was brilliantly lighted, and at the tables in one of the large apartments a few couples were still seated at supper. Among his guests moved the Rajah, chatting in fluent English, laughing with the men, paying compliments to the ladies — a thoroughly good fellow all round, as his guests agreed. The affair had been a great success. There had first been a banquet to the officers and civil- 293?2 \ IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. »S n ians at tlic ncij^lihorinj;- station. When this was over, the ladies beyan to arrive, and for their amusement there had been a native nautch upon a ^rand scale, fol- lowed by a fine display of fireworks, and then by sup- per, at which the Rajah had made a speech expressive of his deep admiration and affection for the Britisli. This he had followed up by proposing the health of the ladies in flowery terms. Never was there a better fellow than the Rajah. He had English tastes, and often dined at one or other of the officers' messes. He was a good shot and could fairly hold his own at billiards. He had first-rate Eng- lish horses in his stables and his turnout was perfect in all respects. He kept a few horses for the races and was present at every ball and entertainment. At Bit- hoor he kept almost open house. There was a billiard- room and racquet courts, and once or twice a week there were luncheon parties at which from twelve to twenty officers were generally present. In all India there was no Rajah with more pronounced English tastes or greater affection for English people. The one regret of his life, he often declared, was that his color and his reli- gion prevented his entertaining the hope of obtaining an English wife. All this, as every one said, was the more remarkable and praiseworthy inasmuch as he had good grounds of complaint against the British govern- ment. With the ladies he was an especial favorite ; he was always ready to show them courtesy. His carriages were at their service. He was ready to give his aid and assistance to every gathering. His private band played frequently on the promenade, and handsome presents of shawls and jewelry were often made to those whom he held in highest favor. At present he was talking to General Wheeler and some other officers. " I warn you that I mean to win the cup at the races," he said. " I have just bought the horse who swept the board on the Bombay side, and as I have set my heart on winning the cup, I have secured it. I am ready to back it if any of you gentlemen are disposed to wager against it." IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 7 " All in good time, Rajah, " one of the off cers laughed ; '• we don't know what will be entered against it yet and we must wait to see what the betting is; but I doubt whether we have anything that will beat the Bombay crack on this side. I fancy you will have to lay odds on." "We shall see," the Rajah said. "I have always been unlucky, but I mean to win this time." "I don't think you take your losses much to heart. Rajah," General Wheeler said; "yet there is no doubt that your bets are generally somewhat rash ones. " " I mean to make a coup this time. That is your word for a big thi..g, I think? The Government has treated me so badly I must try to take something out of the pockets of its officers." "You do pretty well st\il," the General laughed. " After this splendid entertainment you nave given us this evening you can hardly call yourself a poor man." " I know 1 am rich. I have enough for my little pleasures. I do not know that I could wish for more. Still no one is ever quite content." By this time the party was breaking up, and for the next half-hour the Rajah was occupied in bidding good- by to his guests. When the last had gone he turned and entered the palace, passed through the great halls, and pushing aside a curtain entered a small room. The walls and the columns were of white marble, inlaid with arabesque work of colored stones. Four golden lamps hung from the ceiling, the floor was covered with costly carpets, and at one end ran a platform a foot above the rest, piled with soft cushions. He took a turn or two up and down the room, and then struck a silver bell. An attendant entered. "Send Khoosheal and Imambux here." Two min- utes later the men entered. Imambux commanded the Rajah's troops, while Khoosheal was the master of his household. "All has gone off well," the Rajah said. "I am pleased with you, Khoosheal. One more at most, and we shall have done with them. Little do they think what their good friend Nana Sahib is preparing for IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. them. What a poor-spirited creature they think me to kiss the hand that robbed me, to be friends with those who have deprived me of my rights! But the day of reckoning is not far off, and then woe to them all. Have any of your messengers returned, Imambux?" " Several have come in this evening, my lord. Would you see them now or wait till morning?" " I will see them now; I will get the memory of these chattering men and these women with their bare shoul- ders out of my mind. Send the men in one by one. T have no further occasion for you to-night; two are better than three when men talk of matters upon which an empire depends." The two officers bowed and retired. Shortly after- ward the attendant drew back the curtain again, and a native, in the rags of a mendicant, entered and bowed till his forehead touched the carpet. Then he remained kneeling with his arms crossed over his chest and his head inclined in the attitude of the deepest humility. " Where have you been?" the Rajah asked. ** My lord's slave has been for three we^ks at Meerut. I have obeyed orders. I have distributed chupaties among the native regiments, with the words 'Watch, the time is coming,' and have then gone before I could be questioned. In another disguise, I have gone through the bazaar, and said in talk with many that the Sepoys were unclean and outcast, for that they had bit- ten cartridges anointed with pig's fat, and that the Government had purposely greased the cartridges with this fat in order that the caste of all the Sepoys should be destroyed. When I had set men talking about this I left ; it will be sure to come to the Sepoys' ears. " The Rajah nodded. " Come again to-morrow at noon ; you will have your reward then and further orders ; but see that you keep silence. A single word, and though you hid in the farthest corner of India you would not escape my vengeance." Man after man entered. Some of them, like the first, were in mendicant's attire; one or two were fakirs; one looked like a well-to-do merchant. With the ex- ception of the last, all had a similar tale to tell ; they IN THE . JV THb MUTINY. traversed all the dis- before the Feringhee had been visiting the various cantonments of the native army, everyvvhere distributing chupaties and whisper- ing tales of the intention of the Government to destroy the caste of the Sepoys by greasing the cartridges with pig's fat. The man dressed like a trader was the last to enter. " How goes it, Mukdoomee?" " It is well, my lord. I have tricts where we dwelt of old, stamped us out, and sent scores to death and hundreds to prison. Most of the latter whom death has spared are free now, and with many of them have I talked. They are most of them old, and few would take the road again; but scarce one but has trained up his son or grandson to the work — not to practise it : the hand of the whites was too heavy before, and the gains are not large enough to tempt men to run the risk ; but they teach them for the love of the art. To a worshipper of the goddess, there is joy in a cleverly contrived plan, and in casting the roomal round the neck of the victim, tliat can never die. Often in my young days, when per- haps twelve of us were on the road in a party, we made less than we could have done by labor, but none minded. "We were sworn brothers; we were working for Kaili; and so that we sent her victims we cared little. Even after fifteen or twenty years spent in the Ferin- ghee's prisons, we love it still. None hate the white man as we do. Has he not destroyed our profession? We have two things to work for — first, for vengeance ; second, for the certainty that if the white man's Raj were at an end, once again would the brotherhood fol- low their profession, and reap booty for onrselves and victims for Kaili ; for assuredly no native prince would dare to meddle with us. Therefore, upon every man who was once a Thug, and upon his sons and grandsons, you may depend. I do not say that they would be use- ful for fighting, for we have never been fighters; but the stranglers will be of use. You can trust them with missions, and send them where you choose. From their fathers' lips they have learned all about places and roads. They can decoy Feringhee travellers, the com- 10 IN the: days of the mutiny. 11 I- si!; Ml pany's servants or soldiers, into quiet places and slay them. They can creep into compounds and into houses, and choose their victims from the sleepers. You can trust them, Rajah, for they have learned to hate, and each in his way will, when the time comes, aid to stir up men to rise. The past had almost become a dream, but I have roused it into life again, and upon the de- scendants of the stranglers throughout India you can count surely." " You have not mentioned my name?" the Rajah said suddenly, looking closely at the man as he put the question. "Assuredly not, your highness. I have simply said deliverance is at hand — the hour foretold for the end of the Raj of the men from beyond the sea will soon strike, and they will disappear from the land like fallen leaves. Then will the glory of Kaili return, then again will the brotherhood take to the road, and gather in victims. I can promise that every one of those whose fathers or grandfathers or other kin died by the hand of the Feringhee, or suffered in his prisons, will do his share of the good work, and be ready to obey to the death the orders which will reach him." " It is good," the Rajah said. " You and your breth- ren will have a rich harvest of victims, and the sacred cord need never be idle. Go; it is well-nigh morning, and I would sleep. " But not for some time did the Rajah close his eyes. His brain was busy with the schemes which he had long been maturing, but was only now beginning to put into action. " It must succeed," he said to himself. " All through India the people will take up arms when the Sepoys give tl.*^ oignal by rising against their officers. The whites are wholly unsuspicious. They even believe that I— I whom they have robbed — am their friend. Fools! I hold them in the hollow of my hand. They shall trust me to the last, and then I will crush them. Not one shall escape me. Would I were as certain of all the other stations in India as I am of this. Oude, I know, will rise as one man ; the princes of Delhi I have IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. II sounded; they will be the leaders, though the old King will be the nominal head ; but I shall pull the strings, a id as Peishwa shall be an independent sovereign, next in dignity to the Emptror. Only nothing must be dore until all- is ready; not a movement must be made until I feel sure that every native regiment from Calcutta to the north is ready to rise." And so until the day had fully broken the Rajah of Bithoor thought over his plans — the man who had a few hours before so sumptuously entertained the military and civilians of Cawnpore, and the man who was imi- versally regarded as the firm friend of the British and one of the best fellows going. The days and weeks passed on ; messengers came and went; the storm was slowly brewing; and yet to all men it seemjd that India was never more contented nor the outlook more tranquil and assured. CHAPTER II. A YOUNG man in a suit of brown karkee, with a white puggaree wound round his pith helmet, was just mount- ing in front of his bungalow at Deennugghur, some forty miles from Cawnpore, when two others came up. "Which way are you going to ride, Bathurst?" " I am going ouc to Narkeet. There is a dispute be- tween tne villagers and a Talookdar as to their limits. I have got to look into the case. Why do you ask, Mr. Hunter?" " I thought that you might be going that way. You know we have had sevc J reports of ravages by a man- eater whose headquarters seem to be that big jungle you pass through on your way to Narkeet. He has been paying visits to several villages in its neighborhood, and has carried off two mail runners. I should advise you to keep a sharp lookout." "Yes; I have heard plenty about him. It is unfor- tunate we have no one at this station who goes in for tiger-hunting. Young Bloxam was speaking to me last 12 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. night. He is very hot about it ; but as he knows noth- ing about shooting, and has never fired off a rifle in his life, except at the military target, I told him that it was madness to think of it by himself, and that he had bet-^ ter ride down to the regiment at Cawnpore, and get them to form a party to come up to hunt the beast. I told him they need not bring elephants with them. I could get as many as were necessary from some of the Talookdars; a*"d there will be no want of beaters. He said he would write at once, but he doubted whether any of them would be able to get away at present. The general inspection is just coming on. However, no doubt they will be able tobefore long." " Well, if I were you I would put a pair of pistols into my holster, Bathurst. It would be awfully awkward if you came across the beast." "I never carry fire-arms," the young man said shortly; and then, more lightly, " I am a peaceful man by profession, as you are, Mr. Hunter, and I leave fire- arms to those whose profession it is to use them. I have certainly never met yet with an occasion when I needed them, and am not likely to do so. I always carry this heavy hunting-whip, which I find useful some- times when the village dogs rush out and pretend that they are going to attack me, and I fancy that even an Oude swordsman would think twice before attacking me when I had it in hand. But of course there is no fear about the tiger. I generally ride pretty fast ; and even if he were lying by the roadside waiting for a meal, I don't think he would be likely to interfere with me.' So saying, he lightly touched the house's flanks with his spurs and cantered off. "He is a fine young fellow. Garnet," Mr. Hun*:er said to his companion; "full of energy; and they say the very best linguist in Oude." " Yes, he is all that," the other agreed ; " but he is a sort of fellow one does not quite understand. I like a man who is like other fellows; Bathurst isn'|;. He doesn't shoot, he doesn't ride — I mean he don't care for pig-sticking ; he never goes in for any fun there may be on hand. He just works; nothing else. He does IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 13 noth- n his Ltwas L bet-^ d get St. I m. I )f the , He lether The 3r, no Is into fcrd if a said il man /e fire- pm. I I when always some- d that ^en an ingnie 10 fear d even neal, I me.' with iun^er ey say he is a like a He [are for -e may does not seem to mix with other people ; he is the sort of fellow one would say had got some sort of secret con- nected with him. " " If he has, I am certain it is nothing to his personal divsadvantage, " Mr. Hunter said warmly. " I have known him for the last six years — I won't say very well, for I don't think any one does that, except, perhaps, Doctor Wade. When there was awing of the regiment* up here, three years ago, he and Bathurst took to each other very much — perhaps because they were both dif- •erent from other people. But, anyhow, from what I know of Bathurst, I believe him to be a very fine char- acter, though there is certainly an amount of reserve about him altogether unusual. At any rate, the service is a gainer by it. I never knew a fellow work so inde- fatigably. He will take a very high place in the service before he has done. " " I am not so sure of that," the other said. " He is a man with opinions of his own and all sorts of crotchets and fads. He has been in hot water with the chief commissioner more than once. When I was over at Lucknow last I was cnatting with two or three men, and his name happened to crop up. One of them said: 'Bathurst is a sort of knight errant, an official Don Quixote. Perhaps the best officer in the province in some respects, but hopelessly impracticable. ' " "Yes; that I can quite understand^ Garnet. That sort of man is never popular with the higher official, whose likings go to the man who does neither too much nor too little, who does his work without questioning, never thinks of making suggestions, and is a mere offi- cial machine. Men of Bathurst's type, who go to the bottom of things, protest against what they consider unfair decisions, and send in memorandums showing that their .superiors are hopelessly ignorant and idioti- cally wrong, are always cordially disliked. Still, they generally work their way co the front in the long run. Well, I must be off." Bathurst rode to Narkeet without drawing rein. His horse at times slackened its pace on its own accord, but an almost mechanical motion from its rider's heel soon ST-=: 14 IN THE IIAVS OF THE MUTINY. w m started it off again at the rapid pace at which its rider ordinarily travelled. From the time he left Deennug- ghur to his arrival at Narkeet no thought of the dreaded man-eater entered Bathiirst's mind. He was deeply meditating on a memorandum he was about to draw up respecting a decision that had been arrived at in a case between a Talookdar in his district and the Government, • and in which, as it appeared to him, a wholly errone- ous and unjust view had been taken as to the merits of the case ; and he only roused himself when the horse broke into a walk as it entered the village. Two or three of the head men, with many bows and salutations of respect, came out to receive him. " My lord Sahib has seen nothing of the tiger?" the head man said. " Our hearts were melted with fear, for the evil beast was heard roaring in the jungle not far from the road early this morning. "I never gave it a thought, one way or the other," Bathurst said, as he dismounted. " I fancy the horse would let me know if it had been anywhere near. See that he is tied up in the shed, and that he has food and water, and put a boy to keep the flies from worrying him. And now, let us get to business. First of all, I must go through the village records and documents; after that I will question four or five of the oldest in- habitants, and then we must go over the ground. The whole question turns, you know, upon whether the irri- gation ditch mentioned in the Talookdar's grant is the one that runs across at the foot of the rising ground on his side or whether it is the one that sweeps round on this side of the grove with the little temple in it. Un- fortunately, most of the best land lies between those ditches." For hours Bathurst listened to the statements of the old people of the village, cross-questioning them closely and sparing no efforts to sift the truth from 'heir con- fused and often contradictory evidence. Then he spent two hours going over the ground, endeavoring to sat- isfy himself which of the two ditches was the one named in the village records. He had two days before taken equal pains in sifting the evidence on the other side. ii i 1 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 15 rider nnug- eaded ieeply iw up a case nient, rrone- rits of horse 'wo or tations Sahib I said. L beast le road other," 5 horse :. See )od and )rryins if all, I imeiits ; est in- The Ihe irri- It is the iiind on lund on Un- those of the I closely Ur con- le spent , to sat- ! named le taken 1 side. " I trust that my lord sees there can be no doubt as to the justice of our claim," the head man said humbly, as he prepared to mount again. " According to your point of view, there is no doubt about it, Childee ; but then there is equally no doubt the other way, according to the statements on the other side. That is generally the way in all these land dis- putes. For good hard swearing, your Hindoo cultivator can be matched against the world. Unfortunately there is nothing either in your grant or in your neighbors' that specifies unmistakably which of these ancient ditches is the one referred to. My present impression is that it is essentially a case for a compromise, but you know the final decision does not rest on me. I shall be out here again next week, and I shall write to the Ta- lookdar to meet me here, and we will go over the ground together again, and see if we cannot arrange some line that will be fair to both parties. If we can do that, the matter would be settled without expense and trouble, whereas if it goes up to Lucknow it may all have to be gone into again ; and if the decision is given against you — and as far as I can see it is just as likely to be one way as another — it will be a serious thing for the village, " "We are in my lord's hands," the native said; "he is the protector of the poor, and will do us justice. " " I will do you justice, Childee ; but I must do justice to the other side too. Of course, neither of you will be satisfied; but that cannot be helped." His perfect knowledge of their language, the pains he took to sift all matters brought before him to the bottom, had ren- dered the young officer very popular among the natives. They knew they could get justice from him direct. There was no necessity to bribe underlings. He had the knack of extracting the truth from the mass of lying evidence always forthcoming in native cases, and even the defeated party admired the manner in which the fabric of falsehood was pulled to pieces. But the main reason of his popularity was his sympathy, the real in- terest which he showed in their cases, and the patience with which he listened to their stories. i6 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. Bathurst himself, as he rode homeward, was still thinking of the case. Of course there had been lying on both sides ; but to that he was accustomed. It was a question of importance — of greater importance, no doubt, to the villagers than to their opponent, but still important to him — for this tract of land was a valuable one, and of considerable extent, and there was really nothing in the documents produced on either side to show which ditch was intended by the original grants. Evidently at the time they were made, very many years before, one ditch or the other was not in exist- ence, but there was no proof as to which was the more recent, although both sides professed that all traditions handed down to them asserted the ditch on their side to be the more recent. He was riding along the road through the great jun- gle, at his horse's own pace, which happened for the moment to be a gentle trot, when a piercing cry rang through the air a hundred yards ahead. Bathurst started from his revery, and spurred his horse sharply. The animal dashed forward at a gallop. At a turn in the road he saw, twenty yards ahead of him, a tiger, standing with a foot upon a prostrate figure, while a man stood in front of it gesticulating wildly. The tiger stood as if hesitating whether to strike down the figure in front or to content itself with that already in its power. The wild shouts of the man had apparently drowned the sound of the horse's feet upon the soft road, for the animal drew back half a pace as it suddenly came into view. The horse swerved at the sight, and reared high in the air as Bathurst drove his spurs into him. As its feet touched the ground again Bathurst sprang off and rushed at the tiger, bringing down the heavy lash of his whip with all his force across its head. With a fierce snarl it sprang back two paces, but again and again the whip descended upon it. Bewildered and amazed at the attack, it turned swiftly and sprang through the bushes. Bathurst, knowing that there was no fear of its re- IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 17 med the into turning, turned at once to the figure on the road. It was, as in even the momentary glance he had noticed , a woman, or rather a girl of some fourteen or fifteen years of age. The man had dropped on his knees be- side her, moaning and uttering incoherent words. "I see no blood," Bathurst said, and stooping, lifted the light figure. " Her heart beats, man ; I think she has only fainted. The tiger must have knocked her down in his spring without striking her. So far as I can see, she is unhurt." He carried her to the horse, which stood trembling a few yards away, took a flask from the holster, and poured a little brandy and water between her lips. Presently there was a faint sigh. " She is coming round," he said to the man, who was still kneeling, looking on with vacant eyes, as though he had neither heard nor comprehended what Bathurst was doing. Presently the girl moved slightly and opened her eyes. At first there was no expression in them ; then a vague wonder stole into them at the white face looking down upon her. She closed them again, and then reopened them, and then there was a slight struggle to free her- self. He allowed her to slip through his arms until her feet touched the ground ; then her eyes fell on the kneel- ing figure. " Father !" she exclaimed. With a cry the man leaped to his feet, sprang to her and seized her in his arms, and poured out words of endearment. Then suddenly he released her and threw himself on the ground before Bathurst, with ejaculations of gratitude and thankful- ness. "Get up, man; get up," the latter said. "Your daughter can scarce stand alone, and the sooner we get away from this place the better. That savage beast is not likely to return, but he may do so; let us be off." He mounted his horse again, brought it up to the side of the girl, and then leaning over took her and swung her into the saddle in front of him. The man took up a large box that was lying in the road and hoisted it on to his shoulders, and then, at a foot's pace, they proceeded on their way — Bathurst keeping a close watch on the jungle at the side on which the tiger had entered it. f> Htsm, imm i8 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. rr 1 " How came you to come along this road alone?" he asked the man. " The natives only venture through in large parties because of this tiger. " " I am a stranger," the man answered. " I heard at the village where we slept last night that there was a tiger in this jungle, but I thought we should be through it before nightfall and therefore there was no danger. If one heeded all they say about tigers, one would never travel at all. I am a juggler, and we are on our way down the country through Cawnpore and Allahabad. Had it not been for the valor of my lord Sahib, we should no^''er have got there, for had I lost my Rabda, the light of my heart, I should have gone no further, but should have waited for the tiger to take me also." "There was no particular valor about it," Bathurst said shortly, " I saw the beast with his foot on your daughter, and dismounted to beat him off just as if he had been a dog, without thinking whether there was any danger in it or not. Men do it with savage beasts in menage- ies every day. They are cowardly brutes after all, and can't stand the lash. He was taken alto- gether by surprise, too." " My lord has saved my daughter's life, and mine is at his service henceforth," the man said. " The mouse is a small beast, but he may warn the lion. The white Sahibs are brave and strong. Would one of my coun- trymen have ventured his life to attack a tiger armed only with a whip, for the sake of the life of a poor way- farer?" " Yes, I think there are many who would have done so," Bathurst replied. "You do your countrymen in- justice. There are plenty of brave men among them, and I have heard before now of villagers armed only with sticks attacking a tiger who had carried off a vic- tim from among them. You yourself were standing boldly before it when I came up." " My child was under its feet. Besides, I never thought of myself. If I had had a weapon, I should not have drawn it, I had no thought of the tiger. I only thought that my child was dead. She works with me, Sahib, since her mother died, five years ago. We IN THE DAVS OF THE MUTINY. 19 in at \ a er. ;^er - /ay ad. we >da, aer, )." urst f he was easts ^tes alto- ne is lonse white coun- rtned way- ' done 3n in- them, only la vic- Inding I never khould [er. 1 Is with We have travelled together over the country. She plays while I conjure. She takes round the saucer for the money, and she acts with me in the tricks that require two persons. It is she who disappears from the basket. We are everything to each other, Sahib. But what is my lord's name? Will he tell his servant, that he and Rabda may think of him and talk of him as they tramp the roads together?" " My name is Ralph Bathurst. I im District Officer at Deennugghur. How far are you going this evening ?' ' " We shall sleep at the first village we come to, Sahib. We have walked many hours to-day, and this box, though its contents are not weighty, is heavy to bear. We thought of going down to-morrow to Deennugghur, and .showing our performances to the Sahib-logue there. " "Very well; but there is one thing — what is your name?" "Rujub." "Well, Rujub, if you go on to Deennugghur to-mor- row, say nothing to any one there about this affair with the tiger; it is nothing to talk about. I am not a she- kani, but a hard-working official, and I don't want to be talked about. " " The Sahib's wish shall be obeyed," the man said. " You can come round to my bungalow and ask for me. I shall be glad to hear whether your daughter is any the worse for her scare. How do } on feel, Rabda?" " I feel as one in a dream, Sahib. I saw a great yel- low beast springing through the air, and I cried out and I knew nothing more till I saw the vSahib's face ; and now I have heard him and my father talking, but their voices sound to me as if far away, though I know that you are holding me. " " You will be all the better after a night's rest, child. No wonder you feel strange and shaken. Another quar- ter of an hour and we shall be at the village, I sup- pose, Rujub, you were bom a conjurer?" "Yes, Sahib, it is always so — it goes down from father to son. As soon as I was able to walk I began to work with my father, and as I grew up he initiated me in the secrets of our craft, which we may never divulge. " 20 IN THE DAYS OP THE MUTINY. ?l " No ; I know they are a mystery. Many of your tricks can be done by our conjurers at home, but there are some that have never been solved," " I have been offered more than once large sums by English Sahibs to tell them how some of the feats were done ; but I could not. We are bound by terrible oaths, and in no case has a juggler proved false to them. Were one to do so, he would be slain without mercy, and his fate in the next world would be terrible ; for- ever and forever his soul would pass through the bodies of the foulest and lowest creatures, and there would be no forgiveness for him, I would give my life for the Sahib; but even to him I would not divulge our mys- teries." In a few minutes they came to the first village beyond the jungle. As they approached it Bathurst checked his horse and lifted the girl down. She took his hand and pressed her forehead to it. "I shall see you to-morrow, then, Rujub," he said, and shaking the reins went on at a canter. - " That is a new character for me to come out in," he said bitterly. " I do not know myself — I, of all men. But there was no biavery in it. It never occurred to me to be afraid. I just thrashed him off as I should beat off a dog who was killing a lamb. There was no noise, and it is noise that frightens me. If the brute had roared, I should assuredly have run ; I know it would have been so ; I could not have helped it to have saved my life. It is an awful curse that I am not as other men, and that I tremble and shake like a girl at the sound of fire-arms. It would have been better if I had been killed by the first shot fired in the Punjaub eight years ago, or if I had blown my brains out at the end of the day. Good heavens ! what have I suffered since. But I will not think of it. Thank God I have got my work, and as long as I keep my thoughts on that there is no room for that other," and then by a great effort of will Ralph Bathurst put the past behind him, and concentrated his thoughts on the work on which he had been that day engaged. The juggler did not arrive on the following evening, IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 91 ningr as he had expected ; but late in the afternoon a native boy brought in a message from him; saying that his daughter was too shaken and ill to travel, but that they would come when she recovered. A week later, on returning from a long day's work, Bathurst was told that a juggler was in the veranda waiting to see him. "I told him, Sahib," the servant said, "that you cared not for such entertainments, and that he had bet- ter go elsewhere ; but he insisted that you yourself had told him to come, and so ^ let him wait." •• Has he a girl with him, Jafur?" "Yes, Sahib," Bathurst strolled round to the other side of the bungalow, where Rujub was sitting patiently with Rabda wrapped in her blue cloth beside him. They rose to their feet. " I am glad to see your daughter is better again, Rujub." "She is better. Sahib; she has had fever, but is re- stored." " I cannot see your juggling to-night, Rujub. I have had a heavy day's work, and am worn out and have still work to do. You had better go round to some of the other bungalows, though I don't think you will do much this evening, for there is a dinner party at the Collec- tor's, and almost every one will be there. My servants will give you food. I shall be off at seven o'clock in the morning, but shall be glad to see you before I start. Are you in want of money?" and he put his hand in his pocket. "No, Sahib," the juggler said. "We have money sufficient for all our wants ; we are not thinking of per- forming to-night, for Rabda is not equal to it. Before sunrise we shall be on our way again. I must be at Cawnpore, and we have delayed too long already. Could you give us but half an hour to-night, Sahib? We will come at any hour you like. I would show you things that few Englishmen have seen. Not mere com- mon tricks, Sahib, but mysteries such as are known to few even of us. Do not say no, Sahib." "Well, if you wish it, Rujub, I will give you half 22 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. ! 3 1 an hour," and Bathurst looked at his watch. "It is seven now, and I have to dine. I have work to do that will take me three hours at least; but at eleven I shall have finished. You will see a light in my room ; come straight to the open window." "We will be there. Sahib," and with a salaam the juggler walked off, followed by his daughter. A few minutes before the appointed time Bathurst threw down his pen, with a little sigh of satisfaction. The memo he had just finished was a most conclusive one. It seemed to him unanswerable, and that the de- partment would have trouble in disputing his facts and figures. He had not since he sat down to his work given another thought to the juggler, and he almost started as a figure appeared in the veranda at the open window. "Ah, Rujub, is it you? I have just finished my work. Come in. Is Rabda with you?" " She will remain outside until I want her," the jug- gler said as he entered and squatted himself on the floor. " I am not going to jugqrle, Sahib. With us there are two sorts of feats. Tiicre are those that are performed by sleight of hand, or by means of assistance. These are the juggler's tricks we show in the verandas and compounds of the white Sahibs and in the streets of the cities. There are others that are known only to the higher order among us, that we show only on rare occasions. They have come to us from the oldest times, and it is said they were brought by wise men from Egypt, but that I know not." " I have always been interested in juggling, and have seen many things that I cannot understand," Bathurst said. " I have seen the basket trick done on the road in front of the veranda, as well as in other places, and I cannot in any way account for it. " The juggler took from his basket a piece of wood about two feet in length and some four inches in diameter. "You see this?" he said. Bathurst took it in his hand. " It looks like a bit sawn off a telegraph pole," he said. " Will you come outside. Sahib?" The night was very dark, but the lamp on the table ii IN THE I»\YS OF THE MUTINY. •5 have [hurst lad in land I took mgth a bit table threw its light through the window on to the drive in front of the veranda. Rujub took with him a piece of wood about nine inches square, with a soft pad on the top. He went out in the drive and placed the piece of pole upright, and laid the wood with the cushion on the top. '* Now, will you stand in the veranda awhile?" Bathurst stood back by the side of the window so as not to interfere with the passage of the light. Rabda stole forward and sat down upon the cushion. " Now watch, Sahib." Bathurst looked, and saw the block of wood apparently growing. Gradually it rose until Rabda passed up beyond the light in the room. " You may come out," the juggler said, " but do not touch the pole. If you do, it will cause a fall, which would be fatal to my child. " Bathurst stepped out and looked up. He could but just make out the figure of Rabda, seemingly already higher than the top of the bungalow. Gradually it be- came more and more indistinct. " You are there, Rabda?" her father said. "I am here, father!" and the voice seemed to come from a considerable distance. Again and again the question was asked, and the an- swer became fainter and fainter, although it sounded as if it was a distant cry in response to Rujub's shout rather than spoken in an ordinary voice. At last no response was heard. " Now it shall descend," the juggler said. Two or three minutes passed, and then Bathurst, who was staring up into the darkness, could make out the end of the pole with the seat upon it; but Rabda was no longer there. Rapidly it sank until it stood its original height on the ground. " Where is Rabda?" Bathurst exclaimed. " She is here, my lord," and as he spoke Rabda rose from a sitting position on the balcony close to Bathurst. "It is marvellous, " the latter exclaimed. "I have heard of that feat before, but have never seen it. May I take up that piece of wood?" ♦•Assuredly, Sahib." ^'' .-*»>.4^-.i*..«¥^-'-.-.'--i*w»>-->M', 24 IN THE D*.YS OF THE MUTINY. \t\, II PI u. 'h Bathurst took it up and carried it to the light. It was undoubtedly, as he had before supposed, a piece of solid wood. The juggler had not touched it, or he would have s apposed he might have substituted for the piece he first examined a sort of telescope of thin sheets of steel ; but even that would not have accounted for Rabda's disappearance. " I will show you one other feat, my lord." He took a brass dish, placed a few pieces of wood and charcoal in it, struck a match, set the wood on fire, fanned it until the wood had burnt out, and the charcoal was in a glow ; then he sprinkled some powder upon it, and a dense white smoke rose. " Now turn out the lamp. Sahib." Bathurst did so. The glow of the charcoal enabled him still to see the light smoke ; this seemed to him to become clearer and clearer. " Now for the past," Rujub said. The smoke grew brighter and brighter and mixed with flashes of color. Presently Bathurst saw clearly an Indian scene ; a vil- lage stood on a crest, jets of smoke darted up from be- tween the houses, and then a line of troops in scarlet uniform advanced against the village, firing as they went. They paused for a moment, and then with a rush went at the village and disappeared in the smoke over the crest. " Good heavens, " Bathurst muttered ; "it is the bat- tle of Chillianwalla. " "The future," Rujub said, and the colors on the smoke changed. Bathurst saw a wall surrounding a court-yard ; on one side was a house. It had evidently been besieged, for in the upper part were many ragged holes, and two of the windows were knocked into one. On the roof were men firing, and there were one or two women among them. He could see their faces and features distinctly. In the court-yard wall there was a gap, and through this a crowd of Sepoys were making their way, while a handful of whites were defending a breastwork. Among them he recognized his own figure ; he saw himself club his rifle and leap down into the middle of the Sepoys, fighting furiously there. The i IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 25 bat- the \g a ^ntly rged lone. two and ras a :ing ig a lure ; the IThe colors faded away and the room was in darkness again. There was the crack of a match, and then Riijub said quietly: "If you will lift off the globe again, I will light the lamp. Sahib. " Bathurst almost mechanically did as he was told. "Well, Sahib, what do you think of the pictures?" "The first was true," Bathurst said quietly, "though how you knew I was with the regiment that stormed the village at Chillianwalla I know not. The second is certainly not true." " You can never know what the future will be, Sahib, " the juggler said, gravely, "That is so," Bathurst said; " but I know enough of myself to say that it cannot be true. I do not say that the Sepoys can never be fighting against whites, im- probable as it seems; but that I was doing what that figure did is, I know, impossible." "Time will show, Sahib," the juggler said. "The pictures never lie. Shall I show you other things?" " No, Rujub, you have shown me enough ; you as- tound me. I want to see no more to-night." "Then farewell. Sahib. We shall meet again, I doubt not, and mayhap I may be able to repay the debt I owe you," and Rujub, lifting his basket, went out through the window without another word. CHAPTER III. Some seven or eight officers were sitting round the table in the mess-room of the 103d Bengal Infantry at Cawnpore. It had been a guest night, but the strang- ers had left, the lights had been turned out in the bil- liard-room overhead, the whist-party had broken up, and the players had rejoined three officers who had re- mained at table smoking and talking quietly. Outside, through the open French windows, the ground looked as if sprinkled with snow beneath the white light of the full moon. Two or three of the mess servants were squatting in the veranda talking in low T<-'.»-'«'i*«Sl*A*-.*W-'««JW IMl».y4tt^«lli»v«.^*..» 1 31 1 ,; i ' ■ it > ■' N i' ^ M ) 1 26 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. voices. A sentry walked backward and forward by the gate leading into the mess-house compound ; beyond, the maidan stretched away flat and level to the low huts of the native lines on the other side. "So the Doctor comes back to-morrow, Major," the Adjutant, who had been one of the whist-party, said. " I shall be very glad to have him back. In the first place, he is a capital fellow, and keeps us all alive; secondly, he is a good deal better doctor than the sta- tion surgeon who has been looking after the men since we have been here ; and lastly, if I had got anything the matter with me myself I would rather be in his hands than those of any one else I know. " " Yes, I agr ,e with you, Protliero ; the Doctor is as good a fellow as ever stepped. There is no doubt about his talent in his profession ; and there are a good many of ITS who owed our lives to him when we were down with cholera in that bad attach three years ago. He is good all round ; he is just as keen a shikar as he was when he joined the regiment, twenty years ago; he is a good billiard player, and one of the best story-tellers I ever came across ; but his Lest point is that he is such a thoroughly good fellow — always ready to do a good turn to any one, and to help a lame dog over a stile. I could name a dozen men in India who owe their com- missions to him. I don't know what the regiment would do without him." " He went home on leave just after I joined," one of the subalterns said. '* Of course I know, from what I have heard of him, that he is an awfully good fellow, but from what little I saw of him myself he seemed al- ways growling and snapping." There v/as a general laugh from the others. "Yes, that is his way, Richards." the Major said; "he believe 3 himself to ^e one of the most cynical and morose of rnen." " He was married, wasn't he, Major?" " Yes, it was a sad business. It was only just after I joined. He is three years senior to me in the regiment. He was appointed to it a montli or two after the Colonel joined. Well, as I say, a month or two after I came to IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 27 said; il and ifter I Iment. )lonel Ime to it he went away on leave down to Calcutta, where he was to meet a young lady who had been engaged to him before he left home. They were married, and he brought her up country. Before she had been with us a month we had one of those outbreaks of cholera. It wasn't a very severe one. I think we only lost eight or ten men, and no officer; but the Doctor's young wife was attacked, and in three or four hours she was car- ried off. It regularly broke him down. However, he got over it, as we all do, I suppose ; and now I think he is married to the regiment He could have had staff appointments a score of times, but he has always re- fused them. His time is up next year, and he could go home with full pay, but I don't suppose he will." " And your niece arrives with him to-morrow. Major, " the Adjutant said. " Yes, I am going to try petticoat government, Pro- thero ; I don't know how the experiment will succeed, but I am tired of an empty bungalow and I have been looking forward for some years to her being old enough to come out and take charge. It is ten years since I was home, and she was a little chit of eight years at that time." " I think a vote of thanks ought to be passed to you, Major. We have only married ladies in the regiment, and it will wake us up and do us good to have Miss Hannay among us. " "There are the Colonel's daughters," the Major said, with a smile. "Yes, there are. Major, but they hardly count; they are scarcely conscious of the existence of poor creatures like us ; nothing short of a Resident or, at any rate, of a full-blown collector will find favor in their eyes." " Well, I warn you all fairly," the Major said, "that I shall set my face against all sorts of philandering and love-making. I am bringing my niece out here as my housekeeper and companion, and not as a prospective wife for any of you youngsters. I hope she will turn out as plain as a pikestaff, and then I may have some hopes of keepin^p- her with me for a time. The Doctor, in his letter from Calcutta, says nothing as to what she 1 1; IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. is like, though he is good enough to remark that she seemed to have a fair share of common sense, and has given him no more trouble on the voyage than what was to be expected under the circumstances. And now, lads, it is nearly two o'clock, and as there is early pa- rade to-morrow, it is high time for you to be all in your beds. What a blessing it would be if the sun would forget to shine for a bit on this portion of the world, and we could have an arctic night of seven or eight months with a full moon the whole time!" A few minutes later the mess-room was empty, the lights turned out, and the servants, wrapped up in their blankets, had disposed themselves for sleep in the ve- randa. As soon as morning parade was over. Major Hannay went back to his bungalow, looked round to see that his bachelor quarters were as bright and tidy as possible, then got into a light suit and went down to the post- house. A quarter of an hour later a cloud of dust along the road betokened the approacn of the dak-gharry, and two or three minutes later it dashed up at full gal- lop amid a loud and continuous cracking of the driver's whip. The wiry little horses were drawn up with a sudden jerk. The Major opened the door. A little man sprang out and grasped him by the hand. " Glad to see you. Major — thoroughly glad to be back again. Here is your niece; I deliver her safe and sound into your hands." And between them they helped a girl to alight from the vehicle. " I am heartily glad to se-^ you, my dear," the Major said, as he kissed her; "though I don't think I should have known you again." "I should think not, uncle," the girl said. "In the first place, I was a little girl in short frocks when I saw you last; and in the second place, I am so covered with the dust that you can hardly see what I am like. I thirk I should have known >ou ; your visit made a great impression upon us, though I can remember now how disappointed we were when you first arrived that you hadn't a red coat and a sword, as we had c ^pected." " Well, we may as well be off at once, Isobel ; it is f back and they U the saw with k I freat how you M it is 1 IN THE DAV'S OF THE MUTINY. 29 »;e, but I am bound to say that she acted like a sensi- ble younj;' woman; anil though she was pleasant with them all, she didn't j^ct into any flirtation with one more than another. 1 dicb my best to look ".fter her, but, of course, that would have been of no good if she had l)een disposed to jj^o her own way. I fancy about half of them proix)sed to her — not that vshc ever said as much to me — but whenever 1 observed one look inj^;- sulky and j»ivinj»" himself airs 1 could guess ])retty well what had happened. These young puppies arc all alike, antl we are not without experience of the species out here, " vSeriously, Major, I think you arc to be congratu- lated. I consider that you ran a tremendt)us risk in asking a young woman, of whom you Knew nothing, to come out to you; still it has turned out well. If she had been a frivolous, giggling thing, like most of them, I had nuide up my mind to do you a good turn by help- ing to get her engaged on the voyage, and should have seen her married off-hand at Calcutta, and have come up and told you that you were well out of the scrape. As, contrary to my expectations, she tiu'ned out to be a sensible young woman I did my best the other way. It is likely enough you may have her on your hands some little time, for I don't think she is likel}' to be caught by the first comer. Well, I must go and have my bath, the dust has been awful coming up from Al- laiiabad. That is one advantage, and the only one as i)i IN riM. DAVS Oi' JIIK MUTINY. 31 to [f she them, help- have come ;rape. I to be way. inands I to be have Al- jne as far as I can sec, that they have j^ot in England, They don't know what (hist is there." Wlien the bell for breakfast ranjjf, and Isobcl made her appearance, lookinj^ fresh and cool in a lij^ht dress, the Major said: "Yon must take the head of the table, my dear, and assume the reins of j^overnment forthwith. " "Then I slioiild say, nncle, that if any jijuidancc is re([uired there will be an npset in a very short time. No, that won't do at all. You must ^o on just as you were before, and 1 shall look on and learn. As far as I can see everything is perfect, just as it is. This is a charming room, and I am sure there is no fault to be found with the arranjj^cment of these flowers on the table. As for the cooking, everything- looks very nice, and, anyhow, if you have not been able to jjet them to cook to your taste it is of no use my attempting- any- thing in that way. I^esidcs, I suppose I mu.st learn something of the language before I can attempt to do anything. No, uncle, I will sit in this chair if you like and make tea and pour it out, but that is the beginning and the end of my as.sumption of the head of the estab- lishment at present." "Well, Tsobel, I hardly expected that you were going to run the establishment ju.st at fir t; indeed, as far as that goes, one's butler, if he is a good man, has pretty well a fr'^e hand. He is generally responsible, and is in fact what we should call at home hou.sekeeper — he rmd the cook between them arrange everything. I say to him, 'Three gentlemen are coming to tiffin.' He nods and says, 'Atcha, vSahib,' which means all right, sir, and then I know it will be all right. If I have a fancy for any special thing, of course I say so. Otherwise, I leave it to them, and if the result is not satisfactory I blow np. Nothing can bo more simple." " But how about bills, uncle?" " Well, my dear, the butler gives them to me and I pay them.. He has been with me a good many years, and will not let the others — that is to say, the cook and the syce, the washerman, and so on — cheat me beyond a reasonable amount. Do you, Rumzan?" Rumzan, who was standing behind the Major's chair ■^m*me.-utx- •iiisi«t&,i-^». 3a IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. ■ ] I in a white turban and dress with a red and white sash round his waist, smiled. " Rumzan not let any one rob his master." " Not to any great extent, you know, Rumzan. One doesn't expect more than that." " It is just the same here. Miss Hannay, as it is every- where else, " said the Doctor, " only in big establishments in England they rob you of pounds while here they rob you of annas, which, as I have explained to you, are twopence-halfpennies. The person who undertakes to put down little speculations enters upon a war in which he is sure to get the worst of it. He wastes his time, spoils his temper, makes himself and every one around him uncomfortable, and after all he is robbed. Life is too short for it, especially in a climate like this. Of course in time you get to understand the language ; if you see anything in the bills that strikes you as show- ing waste, you can go into the thing, but as a rule you trust entirely to your butler; if you cannot trust him, get another one. Rumzan has been with your uncle ten years, so you are fortunate. If the Major had gone home instead of me, and if you had had an entirely fresh establishment of servants to look after, the case would have been different ; as it is you will have no trouble that way." " Then what are my duties to be, imcle?" "Your chief duties, my dear, are to look pleasant, which will evidently be no trouble to you ; to amuse me and keep me in a good temper as far as possible ; to keep on as good terms as may be with the other ladies of the station ; and what will perhaps be the most diffi- cult part of your work, to snub and keep in order the young officers of our own and other corps. " Isobel laughed, "That doesn'tsound a very difficult, programme, uncle, except the last item ; I have already had a little experience that way, haven't I, Doctor? I hope I shall have the benefit of your assistance in the future, as I had aboard the ship." "I will do my best," the Doctor said, grimly; "but the British subaltern is pretty well impervious to snubs ; he belongs to the pachydermatous family oi animals ; 'ill IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 33 5 sash One 3very- ments eyrob •u, are rtakes var in tes his ry one obbed. :e this, guage ; J show- lie you ;t him, • uncle d gone ntirely le case ave no sasant, use me Die; to ladies t diffi- ier the .ifficult. ^ready tor? I in the "but I snubs; limals ; his armor of self-conceit renders him invulnerable against the milder forms of raillery. However, I think you can be trusted to hold your own with him, Miss Hannay, without much assistance from the Major or myself. Your real difficult" will lie rather in your struggle against the united female forces of the station. " " But why shall I have to struggle with them?" Iso- bel asked in surprise, while her uncle broke into a laugh. "Don't frighten her, Doctor." " She is not so easily frightened, Major; it is just as well that she should be prepared. Well, my dear Miss Hannay, Indian society has this peculiarity, that the women never grow old. At least," he continued, in reply to the girl's look of surprise, "they are never conscious of growing old. At home a woman's family grows up about her, and are constant reminders that she is becoming a matron. Here the children are sent away when they get four or five years old, and do not appear on the scene again until they are grown up. Then, too, ladies are greatly in the minority, and they are accustomed to be made vastly more of than they are at home, and the consequence is that the amount of envy, hatred, jealousy, and all uncharitableness is appalling." "No, no, Doctor, not as bad as that," the Major re- monstrated. " Every bit as bad as that," the Doctor said stoutly. " I am not a woman-hater, far from it ; but I have felt sometimes that if John Company, in its beneficence, would pass a decree absolutely excluding the importa- tion of white women into India, it would be an unmixed blessing." "For shame. Doctor," Isobel Hannay said, "and to think that I vshould have such a high opinion of you up to now. " " I can't help it, my dear, my experience is that for ninety-nine out of every hundred unpleasantnesses that take place out here, women are in one way or another responsible. They get up sets and cliques, and break up what might be otherwise pleasant society into sec- tions. Talk abom caste among natives, it is nothiiig 34 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTlNV. to the caste among- women out here. The wife of a civilian of high rank looks down upon the wives of mili- tary men. The general's wife looks down upon a cap- tain's, and so right through from the top to the bottom, " It is not so amonjj the men, or at any rate to a very much smaller extent. Of course, some men are pom- pous fools, but, as a rule, if two men meet, and both are gentlemen, they care nothing as to what their resp «^ctive ranks may be. A man may be a lord or a doctor, a millionaire or a struggling barrister, but they meet on equal terms in society ; but out here it is certainly not so among the women, they stand upon their husbands' dignity in a way that would be pitiable if it were not exasperating. Of course, there are plenty of good women among them, as there are everywhere — women whom even India can't spoil; but \^hat with exclusive- ness, and with the amount of admiration and adulation they get, and what with the want of occupation for theif thoughts and mihds, it is very hard for them to avoid getting spoilt." "Well, I hope I shan't get spoilt, Doctor, and I hope, if you see that I am getting spoilt, you will make a point of telling me so at once. " The Doctor grunted. " Theoretically, people are al- ways ready to receive good advice, Miss Hannay ; prac- tically, they are always offended by it; however, in your case I will risk it, and I am bound to say that hitherto you have proved yourself more amenable in that way than most young women I have come across." " And now, if we have done, we will go out on the veranda," the Major said. "I am sure the Doctor must be dying for a cheroot. " " The Doctor has smoked pretty continuously since we left Allahabad," Isobel said. " He wanted to sit up with the driver, but, of course, I would not have that. I had got pretty well accustomed to smoke coming out, and even if I had not been, I would much rather have been almost suffocated than have been in there by my- self. I thought a dozen times the vehicle was going to upset, and what with the bumping and the shouting and the cracking of the whip— especially when the IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. :5S [c of a jf mili- i a cap- Dottoni. ) a very 'e pom- )oth are j;;^°ctive octor, a meet on inly not isbands' /ere not of good . -women Lclusive- dulation for their to avoid 1 I hope, make a e are al- prac- ever, in say that nable in across. " on the Doctor ly since :o sit up jve that. ing out, ler have by my- joing to |houting len the horses wouldn't start, which was generally the case at first — I should have been frightened out of my life had I been alone. It seemed to me that something dread- ful was always going to happen," " You can take it easy this morning, Isobel," the Ma- jor said when they were comfortably seated in the bam- boo lounges in the veranda. "You won't have any callers to-day, as it will be known you travelled all night. People will imagine that you want a quiet day before you are on show." " What a horrid expression, uncle!" "Well, my dear, it represents the truth. The arrival of a fresh lady from England, especially of a spin, which is short for spinster or unmarried woman, is an event of some importance in an Indian station. Not, of course, so much in a place like this, because this is the centre of a large district, but in a small station it is an event of the first importance. The men are anx- ious to see what a new-comer is like for herself; the women to look at her dresses and see the latest fashions from home, and also to ascertain whether she is likely to turn out a formidable rival. However, to-day you can enjoy quiet; to-morrow you must attire yourself in your most becoming costume and I will trot you round. " " Trot me round, uncle?" " Yer, my dear. In India the order of procedure is reversed, and new-comers call in the first place upon residents," " What a very unpleasant custom, imcle ; especially as some of the residents may not want to know them." " Well, every one must know every one else in a sta- tion, my dear, though they may not wish to be intimate. So about half-past one to-morrow we will start." " What, in the heat of the day, uncle?" " Yes, my dear. That is another of the inscrutable freaks of Indian fashion. The hours for calling are from about half-past twelve to half-past two, just in the hottest hours. I don't pretend to account for it." " How many ladies are there in the regiment?" "There is the Colonel's wife, Mrs. Cromarty. She has two grown-up red-headed girls," replied th^ Doc- 3« IN nil". DAV^ OK IIM. MUIINV. \\ '■ h' V ( I Itir. " Slu' is a distant rolalion-" a second lousin- of sonio Scotch loril or <»lher, and, on the slrcn^^th of that and Ijit linsband's colonelcy, |;ives iiersclf prodi^ions airs. Tlnee of the captains are married. Mrs. hoolan is a n»en\ little Irish woman. Von will liki* her. She has two or three children. She is a i;eueral lavorite in the re^^inient. " Mrs. Kinlonl — I siippose she is here still, Major, and nnchan^cd? Ah, I thought so. She is a washed- ont woman, withont a spark ol' energy in her composi- tion. She believes that she is a chronic invalid, and sends for me on an averaj^e once a week. lint there is nothing;' really the matter with her, if she wonld bnt t)tdy believe it. Mrs. Roberts " "Don't be ill-nalnrcil, Doctor," the Major broke in. "Mrs. Roberts, my ilcar, is a j^ooil-lookin>; woman, and a j;eneral llirt. I ilon't think there is any harm in her wiiatever. Mrs. Prothero, the Adjntant's wife, has only been out here cij^hteen months and is a ])retty little woman and in all respects nice. There is only one other, Mrs. Scarsdale; she came out six months a^o. vShe is a cpiiet yoiui^' woman, with, I should say, ])lenty of connnon sense: I should think you will like her. That completes the rej»imental list." " Well, that is not so very formidable. Anyhow, it is a comfort that we shall have no one here to-d.^." "You will have the whole re}»iment here ia a few minutes, Isobel, but they will be coming to see the Doctor, not you; if it hadn't been that they knew you were under his charge every one would have eome di>wn to meet him when he arrived. Rut if y(Ui feel tired, as I am sure you must after your journey, there is no reason why you shouldn't go and lie down quietly for a few hours." " I will stop here, uncle; it will be much less embar- rassing to see them all for the first time when they come to see Dr. Wade and I am quite a secondary con- sideration, than if they had come specially to call on me." " Well, I agree with you there, my dear. Ah ! here come Doolan and Prothero." IN TIIK DAYS <«|. Tllii MUTINY. 37 sin- fif ol lluit (li^ioiis Doolaii r. SlK' orite ill Major, ^vashcd- oinposi- lid, and tluTc is luld but rokc in. lan, antl II in her has only Lty litllo )nly one ths a^o. :, ])kMity like her. Ivhow, it [l ■ " \ a few see the lew you e conic :ou feel y, there quietly embar- |en they ivy con- call on Ih! here A liK^it trap drove into the enclosure and drew up in front of the veranda and two ollicers jumped down, wiiik' the syce who had been standin).^ on a step behind ran to tiie h(»rse's head. Tney hailed the Doctor, as he stepped out from the verau'la, with a shout. "(ilatl to see y<»u back. Doctor. The rc^nment has not seemed like il.^elf without you." "We liave bc« n just pining witiiout you. Doctor," C'aptain Doolan said, "and the ladies would have ;.^«)t up a dc|)utation to meet you on your arrivjd only I tcjld them that it would be too much for your modesty." " Well, it is a ^ihhI tiling that some one has a little of that (piality in the rej^iiment, Doolan," the Doctor said, as he shook hands heartily with them both. " It is very little of it that fell to the share of Ireland when it was .served out." As they dropped the Doctor's hand the Major said, "Now, j^entlemen, let me introduce you to my niece. " The introductions were made, and the whole party took chairs on the veranda. "Do you object to smoking;. Miss llannay; perhaps you have not j^ot accustomed to it yet? I see the Doc- tor is smokinj^; but, then, he is a privileged person, altoj^ether beyond rule." " I rather like it in the open air," Isobel said. "No doubt I shall j^et accustomed toitin-doors before long." In a few minutes four or five more of the officers ar- rived, and Isobel sat an amused listener to the talk; taking but little part in it herself, but gathering a good deal of information as to the people at the station from the answers given to the Doctor's inquiries. It was very much like the conversation on board ship, except that the topics of conversation were wider and more numerous, and there was a community of interest want- ing on board a shij). In half an hour, however, the in- creasing warmth and her sleepless night began to tell upon her, and her uncle, seeing that she was beginning to look fagged, said : " The best thing that you can do, Isobel, is to go in-doors for a bit, and have a good nap. At five o'clock I will take you round for a drive and show you the sights of Cawnpore." -« MWMmwr*' 38 IN THE DAYS Ot IHE luuiINY. H n I ** I do feel sleepy," she said, "though it sounds rude to say so. " "Not at all," the Doctor put in; "if any of these young fellows had made the journey out from Allaha- bad in that wretched gharry, they would have turned into bed as soon as they arrived and would not have got up till the first mess bugle sounded, and very likely would have slept on until next morning. "Now," he went on, when Isobel had disappeared, " we will adjourn with you to the mess-house. That young lady would have very small chance of getting to sleep with all this racket here. Doolaa's voice alone would banish sleep anywhere within a distance of a hundred yards." " I will join you there later. Doctor," the Major said. " I have got a couple of hours' work in the orderly room. Rumzan, don't let my niece be disturbed, but if she wakes and rings the bell, send up a message by the woman that I shall not be back until four. " The Major walked across to the orderly room, while the rest, mounting their buggies, drove to the mess- house, which was a quarter of a mile away. " I should think Miss Hannay will prove a valuable addition to our circle. Doctor," the Adjutant said. "I don't know why, but I gathered from what the Major said that his niece was very young. He spoke of her as if she were quite a child. " "She is a very nice, sensible young woman," the Doctor said, " clever and bright and, as you can see for yourselves, pretty, and yet no nonsense about her. I only hope that she won't get spoilt here; nineteen out of twenty young women do get spoilt within six months of their arrival in India, but I think she will be one of the ex :Gptions. " " I shv>uld have liked to have seen the Doctor doing chaperon," Captain Doolan laughed; "he would have been a brave man who would have attempted even the faintest flirtation with any one under his charge." "That is your opinion, is it, Doolan?" the Doctor said sharply, " I should have thought that even your common sense would have told you that any one who IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 39 1 rude these llaha- urned have likely- eared, That ;ing to alone e of a r said. )rderly 2d, but age by , while mess- iluable "I Major of her the see for ler. I en out nonths one of doing have ren the t Doctor your le who n has had the misfortune to see as much of womankind as I have would have been aware that any endeavor to nip a flirtation for which they are inclined would be of all others the way to induce them to go in for it head- long. You are a married man yourself and ought to know that. A woman is a good deal like a spirited horse : let her have her head, and, though she may for a time make the pace pretty fast, she will go straight and settle down to her collar in time ; whereas if you keep a tight curb she will fret and fidget, and as likely as not make a bolt for it. I can assure you that my duties were of tne most nominal description. There were the usual number of hollow-pated lads on board, who buzzed in their usual feeble way round Miss Hannay, and were one after another duly snubbed. Miss Hannay has plenty of spirits, and a considerable sense of humor, and I think that she enjoyed the voyage thoroughly. And now let us talk of something else." After an hour's chat the Doctor started on his round of calls upon the ladies; the Major had not come in from the orderly room, and after the Doctor left Isobel Hannay was again the topic of conversation. " She is out and out the prettiest girl in the station," the Adjutant said to some of the officers who had not seen her. " She will make quite a sensation ; and there are five or six ladies in the station, whose names I need hardly mention, who will not be very pleased at her coming. She is thoroughly in good form, too ; nothing in the slightest degree fast or noisy about her. She is quiet and self-possessed. I fancy she would be able to hold her own against any of them. Clever? I should say 'certainly;' but, of course, that is from her face rather than from anything she said. I expect half the unmarried men in the station will be going wild over her. You need not look so interested, Wilson. The matter is of no more personal interest to you than if I were describing a new comet. Nothing less than a big civilian is likely to carry off such a prize, so I warn you beforehand you had better not be losing your heart to her." 40 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. Jill ^ \ I " Well, you know, Prothero, subalterns do manage to get wives sometimes. " There was a laugh. "That is true enough, Wilson; but, then, you see, I married at home; besides, I am adjutant, which sounds a lot better than subaltern." "That may go for a good deal in the regiment," Wilson retorted, "but I doubt if there are many wo- men that know the difference between an adjutant and a quartermaster. They know about colonels, majors, captains, and even subalterns ; but if you were to say that you were an adjutant they would be simply mys- tified, though they might understand if you said band- master. But I fancy sergeant-major would sound ever vSO much more imposing." " Wilson, if you are disrespectful I shall discover to- morrow, on parade, that No. i Company wants a couple of hours' extra drill badly, and then you will feel how grievous a mistake it is to cheek an adjutant. " The report of those who had called at the Major's was so favorable that curiosity was quite roused as to the new-comer, and when the Major drove round with her the next day every one was at home, and the ver- dict on the part of the ladies was generally favorable, but was by no means so unqualified as that of the gentlemen. Mrs. Cromarty admitted that she was nice-looking ; but was critical as to her carriage and manner. She would be admired by young officers no doubt, but there was too much life and animation about her, and al- though she would not exactly say that she stooped, she was likely to do so in time. " She will be nothing re- markable when her freshness has worn off a little," to which opinion the Misses Cromarty thoroughly assented. They had never been accused of stooping, and, indeed, were almost painfully upright, and were certainly not particularly admired by subalterns. Mrs. Doolan was charmed with her, and told her she hoped that they would be great friends. " This is a very pleasant life out here, my dear," she said, " if one does but take it in the right way. There t*? riv IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 41 she 'here is a great deal of tittle-tattle in the Indian stations and some quarrelling ; but, you know, it takes two to make a quarrel, and I make it a point never to quarrel with any one. It is too hot for it. Then you see I have the advantage of being Irish, and for some reason or other that I don't understand we can say pretty nearly what we like. People don't take us seriously, you know; so I keep in with them all." Mrs. Rintoul received her visitor on the sofa. " It is quite refreshing to see a face straight from England, Miss Hannay. I only hope that you may keep your bright color and healthy looks. Some people do. Not their color, but their health. Unfortunately I am not one of them. I do not know what it is to have a day's health. The climate completely oppresses me, and I am fit for nothing. You would hardly believe that I was as strong and healthy as you are when I first came out. You came out with Dr. Wade — a clever man. I have a very high opinion of his talent, but my case is beyond him. It is a sad annoyance to him that it is so, and he is continually trying to make me believe that there is nothing the matter with me, as if my looks did not speak for themselves." Mrs. Rintoul afterward told her husband she could hardly say that she liked Miss Hannay. " She is dis- tressingly brisk and healthy, and I should say, my dear, not of a sympathetic nature, which is always a pity in a young woman. " After this somewhat depressing visit the call upon Mrs. Roberts was a refreshing one. She received her very cordially. "I like you. Miss Hannay," she said, when after a quarter of an hour's lively talk the Major and his niece got up to go. " I always say what I think, and it is very good-natured of me to say so, for I don't disguise from myself that you will put my nose out of joint." "I don't want to put any one's nose out of joint," Isobel laughed. "You will do it, whether you want to or not," Mrs, Roberts said; "my husband as much as told me so, last night, and I was prepared not to like you, but I see that ■1 i 42 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY, I shall not be able to help doing so. Major Hanna)', you have dealt me a heavy blow, but I forgive you. " When the round of visits was finished, the Major said, "Well, Isobel, what do you think of the ladies of the regiment?" " I think they are all very nice, uncle. I fancy I shall like Mrs. Doolan and Mrs. Scarsdale best; I won't give any opinion yet about Mrs. Cromarty." I i Ml L! Ir iiil t'. t I' I ! i CHAPTER IV. The life of Lsobel Hannay had not, up to the time when she left England to join her uncle, been a very bright one. At the death of her father her mother had been left with an income that enabled her to live, as she said, genteelly at Brighton. She had three chil- dren: the eldest a girl of twelve; Isobel, who was nine; and a boy of six, who was sadly deformed, the result of a fall from the arms of a careless nurse when he was an infant. It was at that time that Major Han- nay had come home on leave, having been left trustee and executor, had seen to all the money arrangements, and had established his brother's widow at Brighton. The work had not been altogether pleasant, for Mrs. Hannay was a selfish and querulous woman, very dif- ficult to satisfy even in little matters, and with a chronic suspicion that every one with whom she came in contact was trying to get the best of her. Her eldest girl was likely. Captain Hannay thought, to take after he: mother, whose pet she was, while Isobel took after her father. He had suggested that both should be sent to school, but Mrs. Hannay would not hear of parting from Helena, but was willing enough that Isobel should be sent to a boarding school at her uncle's expense. As the years went by, Helena grew up, as Mrs. Han- nay proudly said, the image of what she herself had been at her age — tall and fair, indolent and selfish, fond of dress and gayety, discontented because their means would not permit them to indulge in either to the fuU- IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 43 est extent. There was nothing in common between her and her sister, who, when at home for the holidays, spent her time almost entirely with her brother, who received but slight attention from any one else, his de- formity being considered as a personal injury and af- fliction by his mother and elder sister. "You could not care less for him," Isobel once said in a fit of passion, "if he were a dog. I don't think 5'ou notice him more, not oi -^ bit. He wanders about the house without anybody to give a thought to him. I call it cruel, downright cruel." "You are a wicked girl, Isobel," her mother said an- grily, "a wicked, violent girl, and I don't know what will become of you. It is abominable of you to talk so even if you are wicked enough to get into a passion. What can we do for him that we don't do? What is the use of talking to him when he never pays attention to what we say and is p^ways moping? I am sure we get evf^rything that we twink will please him, and he goes out for a walk with us every day; what could pos- sibly be done more for him?" "A great deal more might be done for him," Isobel burst out. " You might love him, and that would be everything to him. I don't believe you and Helena love him, not one bit, not one tiny scrap. " " Go up to your room, Isobel, and remain there for the rest of the day. You are a very bad girl. I shall write to Miss Virtue about you ; there must be some- thing very wrong in her management of you or you would never be so passionate and insolent as you are." But Isobel had not stopped to hear the last part of the sentence, the door had slammed behind her. She was not many minutes alone upstairs, for Robert soon fol- lowed her up, for when she was at home he rarely left her side, watching her every look and gesture with eyes as loving as those of a dog and happy to sit on the ground beside her, with his head leaning against her, for hours together. Mrs. Hannay kept her word and wrote to Miss Vir- tue, and the evening after she returned to school Isobel was summoned to her room. 4.iJMWB*..-ui He shoiikl take the charges upon himself, and had written to his agent in London to Ihid out such an establishment, to make arrangements for Robert to go there, and to send down one of his clerks to take charge of him on the journey. He also wrote to Isobel, telling her what he had done, and blaming himself tor not having thought of it before, winding up by saying: "I have not mentioned to your mother that I heard from you about it — that is a little secret just as well to keep to ourselves." The next five years were much happier to Isobel, for the thought of her brother at home without her had before been constantly on her mind. It was a delight to her now to go home and to see the steady improve- ment that took place in Robert. He was brighter in every respect, and expressed himself as most happy where he was. As years went on, he grew into a bright and intelli- gent boy, though his health was by no means good, and he looked frail and delicate. He was as passion- ately attached to her as ever, and during the holidays they were never separated; they stood quite alone, their mother and sister interesting themselves but little in their doings, and they were allowed to take long walks together, and to sit in a room by themselves, where they talked, drew, painted, and read. Mrs. Hannay disapproved of Isobel as much as ever, "She is a most headstrong girl," she would lament to her friends, "and is really quite beyond my control. I do not at all approve of the school she is at, but im- fortunately my brother-in-law, who is her guardian, has, under the will of my poor husband, absolute control in the matter. I am sure poor John never intended that he .should be able to over-ride my wishes : but though I have written to him several times about it he says that he sees no valid reason for any change, and that from Isobel's letters to him she seems very happy there, and to be getting on well. She is so very unlike dear Hel- ena, and even when at home I see but little of her ; she is completely wrapped up in her unfortunate brother. Of course I don't blame her for that, but it is not nat* rom and Hel- she ;her. nat- { IN IHK DAYS or THi", MUTINY. 47 Ural that a j^irl of her age should care nothin^^ for pleas- ures or goiny^ou*- or the things natural to young^ people. Yes, she is certainly improving in appearance, and if she would but take some little pains about her dress would be really very presentable." But her mother's indifference disturbed Isobel but little. She was perfectly happy with her brother when at home, and very happy at school, where she was a gen ral favorite. vShe was impulsive, high spirited, an 1 occasionally gave Miss \'irtue .some tror , but her disposition was frank and generous, there was not a tinge of selfishness in her disposition, and while she wa» greatly liked by girls of her own age, she was quite adored by little ones. The future that she always pictured to herself was a little cottage with a bright garden in the suburbs of London, where she and Robert could live together — she would go out as a daily governess : Robert, who was learning to play the orgaUj would, she hoped, get a post as organist. Not, of course, for the sake of the salary, for her earnings and the interest of the thousand pounds, that would be hers when she came of age, would be sufficient for them both, but as an amusement for him and to give him a sense of independence. But when she was just seventeen, and was looking forward to the time when she would begin to carry her plan into effect, a terrible blow came. She heard from her mother that Robert was dead. "It is a sad blow for us all," Mrs. Hannay wrote, " but, as you know, he has never been strong; still, we had no idea that anything serious ailed him until we heard a fortnight since he was suffering from a violent cough, and had lost strength rapidly. A week later we heard that the doctors were of opinion it was a case of sudden consumption, and that the end was rapidly approaching. I went up to town to see him, and found him even worse than I expected, and was in no way surprised when this morning I received a letter saying that he had gone. Great as is the blow one cannot but feel that, terribly afflicted as he was, his death is, as far as he is concerned, a happy release. I trust you will ' TyvMtnf *-«.< 48 IN rnK DAVs ni' iirF, mijiiny lir I; 'V IU)W abandon your wild scheme of teaching and come home." Mnt home was less home than ever to Isobcl now, and she remained another six months at school, vvhen she received an important letter from her tmcle: My iU'.au lsonKi.:~-WlH'n you first wrote to me nnd told me that what you were most lookiufjf forward to was to make a home for your brother, 1 t)wn that it was a blow to me, for I hail louj* luul plans of my own about you; how- ever, 1 thouj;ht yoiu' desire to help yimr brother was so natural, atul wotdd );ive you such happiness in carryin^f it iuto elTect. that 1 at once fell iu with it imd put aside my own i)lan. But the ease is altered now, and I can see no reason why 1 eamu»t have my own way. When 1 was in lCuj>laud I made up my luind that unless I married, which w.is a incest ituprobable contingency, I would, when you were tiid enoiij^h, have you out to keej) house for me. I loresaw, even theu, that your brother might ])rove an ob- stacle to this plan. ICven in the short time I was with you it was easy enough to see that the charge of him would f/ill on your shoulders, and that it would be a labor of love to you. If he lived, then, I felt you would not leave him, and that you wotdd l)e right in not doing so, but even then it seeuied likely to me that he would not grow up to man- hood. From tiuie to time I have been in correspondence with the clergyuian he was with, and learned that the doc- tor who attended them thought but poorly of him. I had hiui taken to two first-class physicians in London; they jM-ouoimced hiui to be constitutionally weak, and said that i^eyond strengthening medicines and that sort of thing, they could do nothing for him. Therefore, dear, it was no surprise to me when I received first your mother's letter with the news, and then your own written a few days later. When I answered that letter I thought it as well not to say anything of my plan, but by the time you receive this it will be six months since your great loss, and you will be able to look at it in a fairer light than you could have done then, and I do hope you will agree to come out to me. Life here has its advantages and disadvantages, and I think that, especially for young people, it is a pleasant one. T am getting very tired of a bachelor's establishment, and it will be a very great pleasure indeed to have you ,1 £ IN THK DAYS OK TMK MIITINV, 49 and len it iiian- idence doc- I had they d that hing. here. Kvor f.inco I was in ICiikIaiuI I made np my mind to adopt you as my own child. You were very like my l)rolher John, and your letters and all I have heard of you show that yoti have ^rown up just as he woidd have wished you to do. Your sisti-r Helena is your mother's ehild, and without wishing to hurt your feelings, your mother and I have nothing in common. I regard you as the only rela- tion I have ill the W(Mid, and whether you eome out or whether yoii do not, whatever I leave behind me will be yours. I do hope thai you will at any rate eome out for a iime. However, if you don't like the life here you can fall bai'k upon your own plan. If you decide to eome, write to my aj^ent. I enclose envelope addresserl to him. Tell him when you can be ready. He will put you in the way of the people you had better ^o to for your outfit, will pay all bills, take your passage and so on. Whatever you do, do not stint yourself. The people you jj^o to will know a great deal better than you can do what is necessary for a lady out here. All you will have to do will be to get measured and to give her an idea of your likes and fancies as to colors and so on. She "will have instructions from my agent to furnish you with a complete outfit and will know exactly how many dozens of everything arc required. I can see no reason why you should not start within a month after the receipt of this letter, and I shall look most anxiously for a letter from you saying that you will come, and that you will start by a sailing ship in a month at latest from the date of your writing. Isobel did not hesitate, as her faith in her uncle was unbounded. Next to her meetings with her brother, his letters had been her greatest pleasures. He had always taken her part; it was he who, at her request, had Robert placed at school, and he had kept her at Miss Virtue's in spite of her mother's complaints. At home she had never felt comfortable; it had always seemed to her that she was in the way; her mother dis- approved of her; while from Helena she had never had a sisterly word. To go out to India to see the wonders she had read of, and to be her uncle's companion, seemed a perfectly delightful prospect. Her answer to her imcle was sent off the day after she received his so IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. '^^ letter, and that day month she stepped on board an In- diaman in the London Docks. The intervening time had not been a pleasant one; Mrs. Hannay had heard from the Major of his wishes and intentions regarding Isobel, and she was greatly displeased thereat. " Why should he have chosen you instead of Helena?" she said angrily to Isobel, on the lirst day of her arrival home. " I suppose because he thought I should suit him better, mamma. I really don't see why you should be upset about it; I don't suppose Helena would have liked to go, and I am sure you would not have liked to have had me with you instead of her. I should have thought you would have been pleased I was off your hands alto- gether. It doesn't seem tome that you have ever been really glad to have me about you." "That has been entirely your own fault," Mrs. Han- nay said. " You have always been headstrong and de- termined to go your own way, you have never been fit to be seen when any one came, you have thwarted me in every way. " " I am very sorry, mamma. I think I might have been better if you had had a little more patience with me, but even now if you really wish me to stay at home I will do so. I can write again to uncle and tell him that I have changed my mind." "Certainly not," Mrs. Hannay said. "Naturally I should wish to have my children with me, but I doubt whether your being here would be for the happiness of any of us, and besides I do not wish your uncle's money to go out of the family, he might take it into his head to leave it to a hospital for black women. Still it would have been only right and proper that he should at any rate have given Helena the first choice. As for your instant acceptance of his offer, without even con- sulting me, nothing can surprise me in that way after your general conduct toward me." However, although Mrs. Hannay declined to take any interest in Isobel' s preparations, and continued to behave as an injured person, neither she nor Helena n In- one; ishes •eatly ena?" .rrival t him uld be 3 liked o have lought Is alto- 2t been s. Han- and de- been fit ted me t have [ce with ,t home lell him irally I I doubt )iness of Is money lis head Still it le should As for /en con- ^ay after to take tinned to Helena IN THi: DAYS ('r.,-.A:.Y 1 1- OF THF. M tmm .uttJiSliI cr AlBEHTA were sorry at heart for tlTC arranj^cmonrl made. Tacy objected very strongly to Isobel's plans for going out as a governess; but upon the other hand her presence at home would in many ways have been an inconvonicnct!. Two can make a better appear- ance on a fixed income than three can, and her presence at home would have necessitated many small econo- mies. She was, too, a disturbing element; the others understood each other perfectly, and both felt that they in no way understood Isobel. Altogether, it was much better that she should go. As to the heirship. Captain Hannay had spoken freely as to his monetary affairs when he had been in England after his brother's death. " My pay is amply sufficient for all my wants," he said; "but everything is expens\'e out there, and I have had no occasion to save. 1 have a few hundred pounds laid by, so that if I break down, and am ordered to Europe any time on sick leave, I can live comfort- ably for that time; but, beyond that, there has been no reason why I should lay by. I am not likely ever to marry, and when I have served my full time my pen- sion will be ample for my wants in England; but I shall do my best to help if help is necessary. Fortu- nately the interest of the thousand apiece the girls were left by my aunt will help your income. When it is necessary to do anything for Robert, poor lad, I will take that expense on myself." " I thought all Indians came home with lots of money," Mrs. Hannay said complainingly. " Not the military. We do the fighting, and get fairly paid for it. The civilians get five times as highly paid, and run no risks whatever. Why it should be so no one has ever attempted to explain; but there it is, sister." Mrs. Hannay, therefore, although she complained of the partiality shown to Isobel, was well aware that the Major's savings could amount to no very great sum; although, in nine years, with higher rank and better pay, he might have added a good bit to the little store of which he had spoken to her. 5» IN THE DAYS OF tHE MUTINY. k : i;' il ;:; . r When, a week before the vessel sailed, Doctor Wade appeared with a letter he had received from the Major, asking him to take charge of Isobel on the voyage, Mrs. Hannay conceived a violent objection to him. He had, in fact, been by no means pleased with the commission, and had arrived in an imusually aggressive and snap- pish humor. He cut short Mrs. Hannay 's well-turned sentences ruthlessly, and aggrieved her by remarking on Helena's want of color, and recommending plenty of walking exercise taken at a brisk pace, and more ease and comfort in the matter of dress. " Your daughter's luiigs have no room to play, madam," he said, "her heart is compressed. No one can expect to be healthy imder such circumstances, " " I have my own medical attendant. Dr. Wade," Mrs. Hannay said decidedly. " No doubt, madam, no doubt. AH I can say is, if his recommendations are not the same as mine he must be a downright fool. Very well. Miss Hannay, I think we understand each other; I shall be on board by eleven o'clock and shall keep a sharp lookout for you. Don't be later than twelve; she will warp out of the dock by one at latest, and if you miss that your only plan will be to take the train dov "i to Tilbury, and hire a boat there." " I shall be in time, sir," Isobel said. " Well, I hope you will, but my experience of women is pretty extensive, and I have scarcely met one who could be relied upon to keep an appointment punctually. Don't laden yourself more than you can help with little bags, and parcels, and bundles of all kinds. I expect you will be three or four in a cabin, and you will find that there is no room for litter. Take the things you will require at first in one or two flat trunks which will stow under your berth ; once a week or so if the weather is fine you wi'il be able to get at your things in the hold. Do try if possible to pack all the things that you are likely to want to get at during the voyage in one trunk, and have a star or any mark you like painted on that trunk with your name ; then there will be no occasion for the sailors to haul twenty boxes upon deck. Be V I r ii o t lATade rajor, Mrs. 5 had, ssion, snap- urned irking plenty more play, "io one es." ," Mrs. y is, if le must I think eleven Don't ock by an will a boat women ne who ctually. :h little expect ill find gs you lich will eather ehold. I you are trunk, »n that )ccasion Ick. Be IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 53 W' sure you send all your trunks on board, except those you want in your cabin, two days before she sails. Do you think you can remember all that?" "I think so, Dr. Wade." " Very well then, I'm off," and the Doctor shook hands with Isobel, nodded to Mrs. Hannay and Helena, and hurried away. "What a perfectly detestable little man! " Mrs. Han- nay exclaimed, as the door closed over him. " Your luicle must have been out of his senses to select such an odious person to look after you on the voyage. I really pity you, Isobel." " I have no doubt he is very much nicer than he seems, mamma. Uncle said, you know, in his letter last week, that he had written to Dr. Wade to look after me, if, as he thought probable, he might be com- ing out in the same ship. He said that he was a little brusque in his manner, but that he was a general fa- vorite, and one of the kindest-hearted of men." "A little brusque," Mrs. Hannay repeated scornfully. " If he is only considered a little brusque in India all I can say is, society must be in a lamentable state out there."" " Uncle says he is a great shikari, and has probably killed more tigers than any man in India." " I really don't see that that is any recommendation whatever, Isobel, although it might be if you were likely to encounter tigers on board ship. However, I am not surprised that your opinion differs from mine, we very seldom see matters in the same light. I only hope you may be right and I may be wrong, for other- wise the journey is not likely to be a very pleasant one for you; personally, I would almost as soon have a Bengal tiger loose about the ship than such a very rude, unmannerly person as Dr. Wade." Mrs. Hannay and Helena accompanied Isobel to the Docks, and went on board ship with her. The Doctor received them at the gangway. He was in a better temper, for the fact that he was on the point of starting for India again had put him in high spirits. He escorted the party below and saw that they got 54 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. i ' f*\ ,1 I,-' I, \ i lunch, showed Isobel which was her cabin, introduced her to two or three ladies of his acquaintance, and made himself so g'enerally pleasant that even Mrs. Hannay was mollified. As soon as luncheon was over the bell was rung, and the partings were hurriedly got through, as the pilot announced that the tide was slackening nearly half an hour before its time, and that it was necessary to get the ship out of dock at once. "Now, Miss Hannay, if you will take my advice," the Doctor said, as soon as the ship was fairly in the stream, "you will go below, get out all the things you will want from your boxes, and get matters tidy and comfortable. In the first place it will do you good to be busy, and in the second place there is nothing like getting everything ship-shape in the cabin the very rirst thing after starting; then you are ready for rough weather or anything else that may occur. I have got you a chair. I thought that very likely yoii would not think of it, and a passenger without a chair of her own is a most forlorn creature, I can tell you. When you have done down below, you will find me somewhere aft; if you should not do so, look out for a chair with your own name on it and take possession of it, but I think you are sure to see me." Before they had been a fortnight at sea, Isobel came to like the Doctor thoroughly. He knew many of the passengers on board the Bycidla^ and she had soon many acquaintances. She was amused at the descrip- tion that the Doctor gave her of some of the people to whom he introduced her. " I am going to introduce you to that woman in the severely plain cloak and ugly bonnet. She is the wife of the Resident of Rajputana. I knew her when her husband was a Collector." " A Collector, Dr. Wade? What did he collect?" " Well, my dear, he didn't collect taxes or water rates or anything of that sort. A Collector is a civil func- tionary and frequently an important one. I used to attend her at one time when we were in cantonments at Bhurtpore, where her husband was stationed at that luced made mnay >) and pilot ilf an :o get vice," in the js you \y and ood to g like e very rough ive got Lild not er own en you g where r with but I il came of the Id soon .escrip- |ople to in the le wife len her It?" ler rates il func- ised to ^nments at that IN THE DAYS OP THE MUTINY. 55 time. I pulled a tooth out for her once, and she hol- loaed louder than any woman I ever heard. I don't mean to say, my dear, that women holloa any louder than men ; on the contrary, they bear pain a good deal better, but she was an exception. She was twelve years younger then and used to dress a good deal more than she does now. That cloak and bonnet are meant to convey to the rest of the passengers the fact that there is no occasion whatever for a person of her im- portance to attend to such petty matters as dress. " She never mentions her husband's name without saying, 'My husband, the Resident, ' but for all that she is a kind-hearted woman ; a very kind-hearted woman. I pulled a child of hers through who was down with fever at Bhurtpore ; he had a very close shave of it, and she has never forgotten it. She greeted me when she came on board almost with tears in her eyes at the thought of that time. I told her I had a young lady under my charge, and she said that she would be very pleased to do anything she could for you. She is a stanch friend is Mrs. Resident, and you will find her useful before you get to the end of the voyage." The lady received Isobel with genuine kindness, and took her very much under her wing during the voyage, and Isobel received no small advantage from her advice and protection. Her own good sense, however, and the earnest life she had led at school and with her mother at home, would have sufficed her even without this guardianship and that of the Doctor. There was a straightforward frankness about her that kept men from talking non- sense to her. A compliment she simply laughed at, an attempt at flattery made her angry, and the Doctor afterward declared to her uncle he would not have be- lieved that the guardianship of a girl upon the long Indian voyage could possibly have caused him so little trouble and annoyance. " When I read your letter. Major, my hair stood on end, and if my leave had not been up I should have cancelled my passage and come by the next ship , and indeed, when I went down to see her, I had still by no 5« IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. \\' means made up my mind as to whether I would not take my chance of getting out in time by the next vessel. However, I liked her appearance, and, as I have said, it turned out excellently, and I should not mind making another voyage in charge of her." CHAPTER V. Two days after his arrival at Cawnpore, Doctor Wade moved into quarters of his own. " I like Doctor Wade very much indeed, you know, uncle, still I am glad to have you all to myself and to settle down into regular ways. " " Yes, we have got to learn to know each other, Isobel.'« " Do you think so, uncle? Why, it seems to me that I know all about you, just the same as if we had always been together, and I am sure I always told you all about myself, even when I was bad at school and got into scrapes, because you said particularly that you liked me to tell you everything and did not want to know only the good side of me." " Yes, that is so, my dear, and no doubt I have a fair idea as to what are your strong points and what are your weak ones, but neither one nor the other affect greatly a person's ordinary every-day character. It is the little things, the trifles, the way of talking, the way of listening, the amount of sympathy shown, and so on, that make a man or woman popular. People do not ask whether he or she may be morally sleeping vol- canoes, who, if fairly roused, might slay a rival or burn a city, they simply look at the surface; is a man or a wo- man pleasant, agreeable, easily pleased, ready to take a share in making things go, to show a certain amount of sympathy in other people's pleasures or troubles — in fact, to form a pleasant unit of the society of a station? " So in the house you might be the most angelic temper in the world, but if you wore creaky boots, had a habit of slamming doors, little tricks of giggling or ? IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 57 K fidgeting with your hands or feet, you would be an un- pleasant companion, for you would be constantly ir- ritating one ill small matters. Of course it is just the same thing with your opinion of me. You have an idea that I am a good enough sort of fellow, because I have done my best to enable you to carry out your plans and wishes, but that has nothing to do at all with my character as a man to live with. Till we saw each other, when you got out of the gharry, we really knew nothing whatever of each other." Isobel shook her head decidedly. " Nothing will persuade me that I didn't know every- thing about you, uncle. You are just exactly what I knew you would be, in look and voice, in manner and ways and everything. Of course, it is partly from what I remember, but I really did not see a great deal of you in those days; it is fjom your letters, I think, entirely, that I knew all about you, and exactly what you were. Do you mean to say that I am not just what you thought I should be?" " Well, not so clearly as all that, Isobel. Of course you were only a little child when I saw you, and except that you had big brown eyes, and long eyelashes, I con- fess that it struck me that you were rather a plain little thing, and I do not think that your mother's letters since conveyed to my mind the fact that there had been any material change since. Therefore I own that you are quite different from what I had expected to find you. I had expected to find you, I think, rather stumpy in figure and square in build, with a very determined and business-like manner. " *' Nonsense, uncle, you could not have expected that." "Well, my dear, I did, and you see I find I was ut- terly wrong." " But you are not discontented, uncle?" Isobel asked with a smile. " No, my dear, but perhaps not quite so contented as you may think I ought to be." "Why is that, uncle?" " Well, my dear, if you had been what I had pictured you, I might have had you four or five years to myself. 5 til : v< ss IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. Possibly you might even have gone home with me, to keep house for me in England, when 1 retire. As it is now, I give myself six months at the outside. " "What nonsense, uncle! You don't suppose I am going to fall in love with the first man who presents liimself. Why, every one says the sea voyage is a most trying time, and you see I came through that quite scathless. Besides, uncle," and she laughed, "there is safety in multitude, and I think that a girl would be far more likely to fall in love in some country place where she only saw one or two men, than where there are numbers of them. Besides, it seems to me that in India a girl cannot feel that she is chosen, as.it were, from among other girls as she would do at home. There are so few girls and so many men here, there must be a sort of feeling that you are only appreciated because there is nothing better to be had. " But of course, uncle, you can understand that the idea of love-making and marrying never entered my head at all, until I went on board a ship. As you know, I always used to think that Robert and I would live to- gether, and I am quite sure that I should never have left him if he had lived. If I had stopped in England I should have done the work I had trained myself to do, and it might have bejn years and years, and per- haps never, before any one might have taken a fancy to me or I to him. It seems strange, and I really don't think pleasant, uncle, for every one to take it for granted that because a girl comes out to India she is a candi- date for marriage. I think it is degrading, uncle." " The Doctor was telling me yesterday that you had some idea of that sort," the Major said, with a slight smile, " and I think girls often start with that sort of idea. But it is like looking on at a game. You don't feel interested in it until you begin to play at it. Well, the longer you entertain those ideas the better I shall be pleased, Isobel. I only hope that you may long re- main of the same mind, and that when your time does come your choice will be a wise one." There could be no doubt ihat the Major's niece was a great success in the regiment. Richards and Wilson, IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 5. the was son. two lads who had joined six months before, succumbed at once, and mutual animosity succeeded the close friendship they had hitherto entertained for each other. Travers, the senior Captain, a man who had hitherto been noted for his indifference to the charms of female society, went so far as to admit that Miss Hannay was a very nice, unaffected girl. Mrs. Doolan was quite enthusiastic about her. "It is very lucky, Jim," she said to her husband, " that you were a sober and respected married man be- fore she came out, and that I am installed here as your lawful and wedded wife instead of being at Ballycrogin with only an engagement ring on my finger. I know your susceptible nature — you would have fallen in love with her, and she would not have had you, and we should both of us have been miserable." " How do you know she wouldn't have had me, Norah?" " Because, my dear, she will be able to pick and choose just where she likes, and though no one recog- nizes your virtues more than I do, a company in an Indian regiment is hardly as attractive as a Residency or Lieutenant-Governorship. But seriously she is a dear girl, and as yet does not seem to have the least idea how pretty she is. How cordially some of them will hate her! I anticipate great fun in looking on. I am out of all that sort of thing myself." " That is news to me, Norah. I think you are just as fond of a quiet flirtation as you used to be." " Just of a very little one, Jim ; fortunately not more. So I can look on complacently ; but even I have suf- fered. Why, for weeks not a day has passed without young Richards dropping in for a chat, and when he came in yesterday he could talk about nothing but Miss Hannay, until I shut him up by telling him it was ex- tremely bad form to talk to one lady about another. The boy colored up till I almost laughed in his face ; in fact, I believe I did laugh." "That I will warrant you did, Norah." *' I could not help it, especially when he assured me he was perfectly serious about Miss Hannay. " 6o IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. t-V i I r !i \:\ '•■l\. :; 1 1 "You did not encourage him, I hope, Norah." " No, I told him the Colonel set his face against mar- ried subalterns, and that he would injure himself seri- ously in his profession if he were to think of such a thing, and that as I knew he had nothing but his pay, that would be fatal to him." Captain Doolan went off into a burst of laughter. "And he took it all in, Norah? He did not see that you were humbiigging him altogether?" " Not a bit cf it. They are very amusing, these boys, Jim. I was reai.y quite sorry for Richards, but I told him he would get over it in time, for as far as I could learn you had been just as bad thirty-three times be- fore I finally took pity on you, and that I onlv did it then because you were wearing away with your troubles. I advised him to put the best face he could on it, foi that Miss Hannay would be the last person to be pleased, if he were to be going about with a face as long as if he had just come from his aunt's funeral." The race meeting came off three weeks after Miss Hannay arrived at Cawnpore. She had been to several dinners and parties by this time and began to know most of the regular residents. The races served as an excuse for people to come in from all the stations round. Men came over from Lucknow, Agra, and Allahabad, and from many a little outlying station, every bungalow in the cantonment was filled with guests, and tents were erected for the accommodation of the overflow. Several of the officers of the 103d had horses and ponies entered in the various races. There was to be a dance at the club on the evening of the second day of the races, and a garden party at the General's on that of the first. Richards and Wilson both had ponies en- tered for the race confined to country tats which had never won a race, and both had endeavored to find without success what was Isobel's favorite color. "But you must have some favorite color," Wilson urged. " Why must I, Mr. Wilson? One thing is suitable for m TN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 6i m one thing and one another, and I always like a color that is suitable for the occasion. " " But what color are you going to wear at the races, Miss Hannay?" "Well, you see, I have several dresses," Isobel said gravely, "and 1 cannot say until the morning arrives which I may wear ; it will depend a good deal how I feel. Besides, I might object to your wearing the same color as I do. You remember in the old times knights, when they entered the lists, wore the favors that ladies had given them. Now I have no idea of giving you a favor. You have done nothing worthy of it. When you have won the Victoria Cross and distinguished yourself by some extraordinarily gallant action it will be quite time to think about it." " You see one has to send one's color in four days be- forehand, in time for them to print it on the card," the lad said, " and besides, one has to get a jacket and cap made." " But you don't reflect that it is quite possible your pony won't win after all, and supposing that I had colors, I certainly should not like to see them come in last in the race. Mr. Richards has been asking me just the same tiling and, of course, I gave him the same answer. I can only give you the advice as I gave him." "What was that, Miss Hannay?" Wilson asked eagerly. " Well, you see, it is not very long since either of you left school, so I should think the best thing for you to wear are your school colors, whatever they were." And with a merry laugh at his look of discomfiture, Isobel turned away and joined Mrs. Doolan and two or three other ladies who were sitting with her. "There is one co ifort," Mrs. Doolan was just say- ing, "in this country: when there is anything coming off, there is no occasion to be anxious as to the weather; one knows that it will be hot, fine, and dusty. One can wear one's gayest dress without fear. In Ireland, one never knew whether one wanted muslin or water- proof until the morning came, and even thcr one could not calculate with any certainty how it would be \i 62 TN TUF, DAYS OF THF, MUTINY. < . by twelve o'clock. This will be your first Indian fes- tivity, Miss Hannay." ** Do the natives come much?" " I should think so. All Cawnpore will turn out, and we shall have the Lord of Bithoor and any number of Talookdars and Zemindars with their suites. A jijood many of them will have horses entered, and they have some good ones if they could but ride them. The Rajah of Bitiioor is a most important personage. He talks English very well, and gives splendid entertainments. He is a most polite gentleman, and is always over here if there is anything going on. The general idea is that he has set his mind on having an English wife, the only difficulty being our objection to polygamy. He has every other advantage and his wife would have jewels that a queen might envy. " Isobel laughed " I don't think jewels would count for much in my ideas of happiness." " It is not so much the jewels, my dear, in them- selves, but the envy they would excite in every other woman." *' I don't think I can understand that feeling, Mrs. Doolan. I can imderstand t at there might be a satis- faction in being envied for being the happiest woman, or the most tastefully dressed woman, or even the prettiest woman, though that after all is a mere acci- dent, but not for having the greatest number of bright stones, however valuable. I don't think the most lovely set of diamonds ever seen would give me as much satis- faction as a few choice flowers. " "Ah, but that is because you are quite young," Mrs. Doolan said. " You see. Eve wjs tempted by an apple, but Eve had not lived long. You see, an apple will tempt a child, and flowers a young girl. Diamonds are the bait of a woman." "You v^rould not care for diamonds yourself, Mrs. Doolan?" "I don't know, my dear; the experiment was never tried — bog oak and Irish diamonds have been more in my line. Jim's pay has never run to diamonds, worse luck, but he has promised me that if he ever gets a f IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 6.? rs. chance of looting the palace of a native Prince, he vviil keep a special look-out for them for me. So far he has never had the chance. When he was an ensign there was some hard fighting with the Sikhs, but nothing of that sort fell to his share. I often tell him that he took me under false pretences altogether. I had visions of returning some day and astonishing Ballycrogin, as a sort of begum covered with diamonds ; but as far as I can see the children are the only jewels that I am likely to take back." "And very nice jewels too," Isobel said heartily; " they are dear little things, Mrs. Doolan, and worth all the diamonds in the world. I hear, Mrs. Prot^^ero, that your husband has a good chance of winning the race for Arabs; I intend to wager several pairs of gloves on his horse." " Yes, Fatima is very fast. She won last year. But Nana Sahib has had the horse that won the cup at Poona last year, and is considered one of the fastest in India, brought across from Bombay. Our only hope is that he Avill put a native up, and in that case we ought to have a fair chance, for the natives have no idea of riding a waiting race, but go off at full speed, and take it all out of their horse before the end of the race." "Well, we must hope he will, Mrs. Prothero; that seems, from what I hear, the only chance there is of the regiment winning a prize. So all our sympathies will be with you." " Hunter and his wife and their two girls are coming, " the Major said the next morning as he opened his letters. "Very well, uncle, then we will do as we arranged. The Miss Hunters shall have my room, and I will take the little passage room. " " I am afraid it will put you out, Isobel ; but they have been here for the last two years at the race-time, and I did not like not asking them again." " Of course, uncle. It will make no difference to me, and I don't require any very great space to apparel myself." " We must have dinners for twelve at least the day before the races and on the three days of the meeting. " <4 IN THK DAYS OF TITF MUTINY. I >> ! i r Isobel looked alarmed. " I hope you don't rely on me for the arrangements, uncle. Each of the four dinners we have been to I have done nothing but wonder how it was all done, and have been trembling over the thought that it would be our turn presently. It seemed a fearful responsibility ; and four, one after the other, is an appalling prospect." " Rumzan will see to it all, my dear. He has always managed very well before. I will talk it over with him; besides, these will not be like regular set dinner- parties. At race meetings every one keeps pretty nearly open house. One does not ask any of the people at the station; they have all their own visitors. One trusts to chance to fill up the table, and one never finds any difficulty about it. It is lucky I got up a regular stock of china and so on, in anticipation of your coming. Of course, as a bachelor, I have not been a dinner-giver, except on occasions like this, when nobody expects any- thing like state, and things are conducted to a certain ex-, tent in pic-nic fashion. I have paid off my dinner obligations by having men at mess or the club ; however, I will consult Rumzan, and we will have a regular parade of our materials, and you shall inspect our resources. If there is anything in the way of flower vases or centre dishes, or anything' of that sort you think requisite, we must get them, Jestonjee has got a good stock of all that sort of thing. As to tablecloths and napkins and so on, I had a supply with the china, so you will find that all right. Of course you will get plenty of flowers; they are the principal things, after all, toward making the table look well. You have had no experi- ence in arranging them, I suppose?" " None at all, uncle ; I never arranged a vase oi flowers in my life." "Then I tell you what you had better do, Isobel. You coax the Doctor into coming in and undertaking it. He is famous in that way. He always has the decoration of the mess-table on grand occasions ; and when we give a dance the flowers and decorations are left to him as a matter of course." "I will ask him, uncle; but he is the last man in the JL ! IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 65 irs I he world I should have thought of in connection with flowers and decorations. " " He is a many-sided man, my dear; he paints excel- lently, and has wonderful taste in the way of dress. I can assure you that no lady in the regiment is quite satisfied with a new costume until it has received the stamp of the Doctor's approval. When we were sta- tioned at Delhi four years ago there was a fancy ball, and people who were judges of that sort of thing said that they had never seen so pretty a collection of dresses, and I should think that fully half of them were made from the Doctor's sketches." "I remember now," Isobel laughed, "that he was very sarcastic on board ship as to the dresses of some of the people, but I thought it was only his way of grum- bling at things in general, though certainly I generally agreed with him. He told me one day that my tastes evidently inclined to the dowdy, but you see I wore half mourning until I arrived out here." The Doctor himself dropped in an hour later. "I shall be glad, Doctor, if you will dine with us as often as you can during the four days of the races," Major Hannay said ; " of course I shall be doing the hospitable to people who come in from out-stations, and as Isobel won't know any of them it will be a little trying to her, acting for the first time in the capacity of hostess. As you know everybody you will be able to make things go. I have got Hunter and his wife and their two girls coming in to stay. I calculate the table will hold fourteen comfortably enough. At any rate, come first night, even if you can't come on the others." "Certainly I will. Major, if you will let me bring Bathurst in with me; he is going to stay with me for the races." " By all means, Doctor, I like what I have seen of him very much. " "Yes, he has got a lot in him," the Doctor said, * only he is always head over heels in work. He will make a big mark before he has done ; he is one of the few men out here who has thoroughly mastered the language; he can talk to the natives like one of them- 66 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. I V\ selves, and understands them so thoroughly that they are absolutely afraid to lie to him, which is the highest compliment a native can pay to an Indian official. It is very seldom he comes in to this sort of thing, but I seized him the other day and told him that I could see he would break down if he didn't give himself a holi- day, and I fairly worried him into saying he would come over and stay for the races. I believe then he would not have come if I had not written to him that all the native swells would be here, and it would be an excel- lent opportunity for him to talk to them about the establishment of a school for the daughters of the upper class of natives ; that is one of his fads at present. " " But it would be a good thing surely, Doctor," Isobel said. "No doubt, my dear, no doubt; and so would scores of other things if you could but persuade the natives so. But this is really one of the most impracticable schemes possible, simply because the whole of these unfortunate children get betrothed when they are two or three years old, and are married at twelve. Even if all parties were agreed, the husband's relations and the wife's relations and every one else, what are you going to teach a child worth knowing before she gets to the age of twelve? Just enough to make her discontented with her lot. Once get the natives to alter their cus- toms and to marry their women at the age of eighteen and you may do something for them ; but as long as they stick to this idiotic custom of marrying them off when they are still children the case is hopeless." "There is something I wanted to ask you, Doctor," Isobel said. " You know this is the first time I have had anything to do with entertaining, and I know noth- ing about decorating a table. Uncle says that you are a great hand at the arrangement of flowers. Would you mind seeing to it for me?" The Doctor nodded. " With pleasure, Miss Hannay. It is a thing I enjoy. There is nothing more lament- able than to see the ignorant, and I may almost say brutal, way in which people bunch flowers up into great masses and call that decoration. They might > IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 67 :tor," have Inoth- m are ''ould may. lent- lit say into light I I just as well bunch up so many masses of bright-colored rags. The shape of the flower, its manner of growth, and its individuality are altogether lost, and the sole effect produced is that of a confused mass of color. I will undertake that part of the business, and you had better leave the buying of the flowers to me." "Certainly, Doctor," the Major said; *'I will give you carte blanche. " "Well, I must see your dinner service. Major, so that I may know about its color, and what you have got to put the flowers into." " I will have a regular parade to-morrow morning after breakfast, if it would be convenient for you to look in then, and at the same time I will get you to have a talk with Rumzan and the cook. I am almost as new to giving dinner parties as Isobel is. When one has half a dozen men to dine with one at the club, one gives the butler notice and chooses the wine, and one knows that it will be all right ; but it is a very different thing when you have to go into the details yourself. Ordinarily I leave it entirely to Rumzan and the cook, and I am bound to say they do very well, but this is a different matter." "We will talk it over with them together. Major. You can seem to consult me, but it must come from you to them, or else you will be getting their backs up. Thank goodness Indian servants don't give themselves the airs English ones do; but human nature is a good deal the same everywhere, and the first great rule if you want any domestic arrangements to go off well is to keep the servants in good temper." "We none of us like to be interfered with, Doctor." "A wise man is always ready to be taught," the Doctor said, sententiously. " Well, [there are exceptions. Doctor. I remember soon after I joined a man blew off two of his fingers. A young surgeon who was here wanted to amputate the hand; he was just going to set about it when a staff surgeon came in and said that it had better not be done, for that natives could not stand amputations. The young surgeon was very much annoyed. The staff N 1 II 68 IN THE DAYS OP THE MUTINY. suigeon went away next day. There was a good deal of inflammation, and the young surgeon decided to am- putate ; the man never rallied from the operation and died next day. " " I said, Major, that a wise man was always ready to listen to good advice. I was not a wise man in those days, I was a pig-headed young fool. I thought I knew all about it, and I was quite right according to my ex- perience in London hospitals. In the case of an Englishman the hand would have been amputated and the man would have been all right three weeks after- ward. But I knew nothing about these soft-hearted Hindoos, and never dreamed that an operation which would be a trifle to an Englishman would be fatal to one of them, and that simply because, although they are plucky enough in some respects, they have no more heart than a mouse when anything is the matter with them. Yes, if it hadn't been tor the old Colonel who gave me a private hint to say nothing about the affair, but merely to put down in my report, 'died from the effect of a gunshot wound, ' I should have got into a deuce of a scrape over that affair; as it was it only cost me a hundred rupees to satisfy the man's family and send them back to their native village. That was for years a standing joke against me, Miss Hannay ; except your uncle and the Colonel, there is no one left in the regiment who was there, but it was a sore subject for a long time. Still, no doubt it was a useful lesson, and my rule has been ever since, never amputate except as a forlorn hope, and even then don't amputate, for if you do the relatives of the man, as far as his fourth cousins, will inevitably regard you as his murderer. Well, I must be off ; I will look in to-morrow morning, Major, and make an inspection of your resources. " " I am glad to see the Hunters are going to bring- over their carriage," the Major said two days later, as he looked through a letter. " I am very glad of that, for I put it off till too late. I have been trying every- where for the last two days to hire one, but they are all engaged, and have been so for weeks, I hear. I was wondering what I should do, for my buggy will only >i IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 69 )niig' iY, as that, jvery- ly are II was only 4 hold two. I was thinking of asking Mrs. Doolan if she could take one of the Miss Hunters, and should have tried to find a place for the other, but this settles it all comfortably. They are going to send on their own horses half-way the day before, and hire native ponies for the first half. They have a good large family vehicle; I hoped that they would bring it, but, of course, I could not trust to it. " The Doctor presently dropped in with Captain Doolan. After chatting for some time the former said: " I have had the satisfaction this mornine, Miss Hannay, of re- lieving Mrs. Cromarty's mind of a great burden." " How was that, Doctor?" " It was in relation to you, my dear." " Me, Doctor ! how could I have been a weight on Mrs. Cromarty's mind?" " She sent for me under the pretence of being fever- ish ; said she had a headache, and so on. Her pulse was all right, and I told her at once I did not think there was much the matter with her; but I recom- mended her to keep out of the sun for two days. Then she began a chat about the station. She knows, that, somehow or other, I generally hear all that is going on. I wondered what was coming till she said casually: 'Do you know wfiat arrangement Major Hannay has made as to his niece for the races?' I said of course that the Hunters were coming over to stay. I could see at once that her spirit was instantly relieved of a heavy burden, but she only said: *Of course, then, that settles the question. I had intended to send across to her this morning, to ask if she would like a seat in my carriage; having no lady with her, she could not very well have gone to the races alone. Naturally, I should have been very pleased to have had her with us. However, as Mrs. Hunter will be staying at the Major's, and will act as her chaperon, the matter is settled. ' " "Well, I think it was very kind of her thinking of it," Isobel said, " and I don't think it is nice of you. Doctor, to say that it was an evident relief to her when she found I had some one else to take care of me, Why should it have b-^en a relief?" V 70 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. f I ; I iH " I have no doubt it has weighed on her mind for the last fortnight," the Doctor said; "she must have seen that as you were freshly joined and the only unmarried ;jirl in the regiment, except her own daughters, it was only the proper thing she should offer you a seat in her carriage. No doubt she decided to put it off as late as possible, in hopes that you might make some other ar- rangement. Had you not done so, she might have done the heroic thing and invited you ; though I am by no means sure of it. Of course now she will say the first time she meets you that she was quite disappointed at having heard from me that Mrs. Hunter would be with you, as she had hoped to have the pleasure of having you in her carriage with her." " But why shouldn't she like it?" Isobel said indig- nantly. " Surely I am not as disagreeable as all that ! Come, Doctor!" Captain Doolan laughed, while the Doctor said, " It is just the contrary, my dear. I am quite sure that if you were in Mrs. Cromarty's place, and had two tall, washed-out looking daughters, you would not feel the slightest desire to place Miss Hannay in the same car- riage with them." " I call that very disagreeable of you. Doctor," Isobel said, flushing, " and I shall not like you at all if you take such unkind and malicious views of people. I don't suppose such an idea ever entered into Mrs. Cromarty's head, and even if it did it makes it all the kinder that she should think of offering me a seat. I do think most men seem to consider that women think of nothing but looks, and that girls are always trying to attract men, and mothers always thinking of getting their daughters married. It is not at all nice. Doctor, to have such ideas, and I shall thank Mrs. Cromarty warmly, when I see her, for her kindness in thinking about me. " Accordingly, that afternoon, when they met at the usual hour, when the band was playing, Isobel went up to the Colonel's wife. " I want to thank you, Mrs. Cromarty. Doctor Wade has told me that you had intended to offer me a seat in «l) IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 7t your carriage to the races. It was very kind and nice of you to think of me, and I am very much obliged to you. 1 should have enjoyed it very much if it hadn't have been that Mrs. Hunter is coming to stay with us, and, of course, I shall be under her wing. Still, I am just as much obliged to you for having thought of it. " Mrs. Cromarty was pleased with the girl's warmth and manner, and afterward mentioned to several of her friends that she thought that Miss Hannay seemed a very nice young woman. "I was not quite favorably impressed at first," she admitted. " She has the misfortune of being a little brusque in her manner, but, of course, her positj^ is a difficult one, being alone out here, without any lady with her, and no doubt she feels it so. She was quite touchingly grateful, only because I offered her a seat in our carriage for the races, though she was unable to accept it, as the Major will have the Hunters staying with him. " CHAPTER VI. Si The :lub-house at Cawnpore was crowded on the evening before, the races. Up to eleven o'clock it had been comparatively deserted, for there was scarcely a bungalow in the station at which dinner-parties were not going on ; but after eleven, the gentlemen, for the most part, adjourned to the club for a smoke, a rubber, or game of billiards, or to chat over the racing events of the next day. Loud greetings were exchanged as each fresh contin- gent arrived, for many new-comers had come into the station only that afternoon. Every table in the whist room was occupied, black pool was being played in the billiard-room upstairs, where most of the younger men were gathered, while the elders smoked and talked in the rooms below. "What will you do, Bathurst," the Doctor asked his guest, after the party from the Major's had been chat- H' ■'. I! If I Hi 72 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. ting for some little time downc<^oirs; "would you like to cut in at a rubber or take a ball at pool ?" " Neither, Doctor, they are both accomplishments beyond nje. I have not patience with whist and I can't play billiards in the least, I have tried over and over again, but I am too nervous, I fancy ; I break down over the easiest stroke — in fact an easy stroLe is harder for me than a difficult one. I know I ought to make it and just for that reason I suppose I don't." "You don't give one the idea of a nervous man either, Bathurst." " Well, I am, Doctor, constitutionall)'', and terribly so. " " Not in business matters, anyhow," the Doctor said, with a smile. " You have the reputation of not mind- ing in the slightest what responsibility you take upon yourself, and of carrying out what you undertake in the most resolute, I won't say high-handed manner." "No, it doesn't come in there," Bathurst laughed. " Morally I am not nervous so far as I know, physically I am. I would give a great deal if I could get over it, but, as I have said, it is constitutional." " Not on your father's side, Bathurst. I knew him well, and he was a very gallant officer. " " No, it was the other side, " Bathurst said. " I will tell you about it some day." At this moment another friend of Bathurst's came up and entered into conversation with him. "Well, I will go upstairs to the billiard-room," the Doctor said; "and you will find me there, Bathurst, whenever you feel disposed to go. " A pool had just been finished when the Doctor en- tered the billiard-room. "That is right. Doctor, you are just in time," Prothero said, as he entered. " Sinclair has given up his cue ; he i^ going to ride to-morrow, and is afraid of shaking his nerves; you must come and play for the honor of the corps. I am being ruined altogether, and Doolan has retired discomforted. " "I have not touched a cue since I went away," the Doctor said, " but I don't mind adding to the list of vic» tims. Who are the winners'" i^' IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 73 • en- ' the viC' " Messenger and Jarvis have been carrying all before them ; there is a report they have just sent off two club waiters with loads of rupees to their quarters. Scars- dale has been pretty well holding his own, but the rest of us are nowhere." A year's want of practice, however, told, and the Doctor was added to the list of victims; he had no dif- ficulty in getting some one else to take his cue after playing for half an hour. "It shows that practice is required for everything," he said ; " before I went away I could have given each of those men a life, now they could give me two; I must devote half an hour a day to it till I get it back again," "And you shall give me a lesson, Doctor," Captain Doolan, who had also retired, saia. " It would be time thrown away by both of us, Doolan. You would never make a pool player if you were to practise all your life. It is not the eye that is wrong but the temperament. You can make a very good shot now and then, but you are too harum-scarum and slap-dash altogether. The art of playing pool is the art of placing yourself, while, when you hit, you have not the faintest idea where your ball is going to, and you are just as likely to run in yourself as you are to pot your adversary, I should abjure it if I were you, Doolan, it is too expensive a luxury for you to in- dulge in," " You are right there, Doctor, only what is a man to do when fellows say, 'We want you to make up a pool, Doolan?' " " I should say the reply would be quite simple, I should answer, 'I am ready enough to play if any of you are ready to pay my losses and take my winnings; I am tired of being as good as an annuity to you all, ' for that is what you have been for the last ten years. Why, it would be cheaper for you to send home to Eng- land for skittles, and get a ground up here," " But I don't play so very badly. Doctor. " " If you play badly enough always to lose it doesn't matter as to the precise degree of badness," the Doctor 'Il ih '! in 74 IN THE DAYS OF THE M0TINY. retorted. ** It is not surprising. When you came out here fourteen or fifteen years ago boys did not take to playing billiards, but they do now. Look at that little villain, Richards. He has just cleared the table, and done it with all the coolness of a professional marker. The houi J ight 'h of c.ve his been in bed two is really a good ny difference to him. .iiards till the first bugle young scoundrel r ago, for I hear ti i one. Not that it will make That sort of boy would ph. sounds in the morning, and have , wash and turn out as fresh as paint; but it won't last, Doolan, not in this climate; his cheeks will have fallen in and he will have crow's-feet at the corners of his eyes before another year has gone over. I like that other boy, Wilson, better. Of course he is a cub as yet, but I should say there is good in him. Just at present I can see he is beginning to fancy himself in love with Miss Hannay. That will do him good ; it is always an advantage to a lad like that to have a good honest liking for a nice girl. Of course it comes to nothing, and for a time he imagines himself the most unhappy of mortals, but it does him good for all that ; fellows are far less likel)'' to get into mischief and go to the bad after an affair of that sort. It gives him a high ideal, and if he is worth anything he will try to make himself worthy of her, and the good it does him will continue even after the charm is broken." "What a fellow you are. Doctor!" Captain Doolan said, looking down upon his companion, " talking away like that in the middle of this racket, which would be enough to bother Saint Patrick himself. " '* Well, come along downstairs, Doolan, we will have a final peg and then be off. I expect Bathurst is begin- ning to fidget before now. " " It will do him good," Captain Doolan said disdain- fully; " I have no patience with a man who is forever working himself to death, riding about the country as if Old Nick were behind him, and never giving himself a minute for diversion of any kind. Faith, I would rather throw myself down a well and have done with it, than work ten times as hard as a black nigger." m >» IN tHE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 75 scjain- orever itry as iinself would e with . -,il iL m "Well, I don't think, Doolan,"the Doctor said dryly, "you are ever likely to be driven to suicide by any such cause. " "You are right there, Doctor," the other said con- tentedly. " No man can throw it in my teeth that I ever worked when I had no occasion to work. If there were a campaign, I expect I could do my share with the best of them, but in quiet times I just do what I have to do, and if any one has an anxiety to take my place in the rota for duty, he is as welcome to it as the flowers of May. I had my share of it when I was a subaltern; there is no better fellow living than th» Major, but when he was captain of my company he use' to keep me on the run by the hour together, till I wished myself back in Connaught, and any one who liked it might have had the whole of India for anythinj_ T cared ; he was one of the most uneasy creatures I ever came across. " " The Major is a good officer, Doolan, and you were as lazy a youngster, and as hard a bargain, as the com- pany ever got. You ought to thank your stars that you had the good luck in having a captain who knew his business, and made you learn yours. Why, if you had had a man like Rintoul as your captain, you would never have been worth your salt. " " You are not complimentary. Doctor ; but then no- body looks for compliments from you." "I can pay compliments if I have a chance," the Doctor retorted, "but it is very seldom I get one of doing so — at least, without lying. Well, Bathurst, are you ready to turn in?" " Quite ready, Doctor ; that is one of the advantages of not caring for racing; the merits and demerits ef the horses that run to-morrow do not in the slightest degree affect me, and even the news that all the favor- ites had gone wrong would not deprive me of an hour's sleep. " " I think it a good thing to take an interest in racing, Bathurst. Take men as a whole out here they work hard — some of them work tremendously hard — and un- less they get some change to their thoughts, some sort 7^ IN T«E DAYS OF THE MUTINY. f. \^ ' '\ i i \ |m of recreation, nineteen out of twenty will break down sooner or later. If they don"t they become mere machines. Every man ought to have some sort of hobby; he need not ride it to death, but he wants to take some sort of interest in it. I don't care whether he takes to pig-sticking, or racing, or shooting, or whether he goes in for what I may call the milder kinds of relaxation, such as dining out, billiards, whist, or even general philandering. Anything is better than nothing — anything that will take his mind off his work. As far as I can see you don't do anything." " Therefore I shall either break down or become a machine. Doctor?" "One or the other certainly, Bathurst, You may smile, but I mean what I say. I have seen other young fellows just as full of work and enthusiasm as you are, but I have never seen an •Kception to the rule, unless, of course, they took up something so as to give their minds a rest." " The Doctor has just been scolding me because I am not fond enough of work," Captain Doolan laughed. "You are differently placed, Doolan," the Doctor said. "You have got plenty of enthusiasm in your nature — most Irishmen have — but you have had noth- ing to stir it. Life in, a native regiment in India is an easy one. Your duties are over in two or three hours out of the twenty-four, whereas the work of a civilian in a large district literally never ends, unless he puts a rtsolute stop to it. What with seeing people from morning until night, and riding about and listening to Cumplaints, every hour of the day is occupied, and then at night there are reports to write and documents of all sorts to go through. It is a great pity that there can- not be a better division of work, though I own I don't see how it is to be managed." By this time they were walking toward the lines. " I should not mind taking a share of the civil work at the station," Captain Doolan said, "if they would make our pay a little more like that of the civilians." "There is something in th^.t, Doolan," the Doctor agreed; "it is just as hard work having nothing to do IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 11 break e mere sort of ants to whether in J?, or milder , whist, er than s work. come a HI may 1 other iasm as he rule, to give se I am hed. ' Doctor in your d noth- ia is an hours civilian 5 puts a e from ning to id then ;s of all ;re can- I don't les. il work would ans." Doctor f to do as it is having too much ; and I have always been of opinion that the tremendous disproportion between the pay of a military man and of a civilian of the same age is simply monstrous. Well, good-night, Doolan; I hope you will tell Mrs. Doolan that the credit is en- tirely due to me that you are home at the reasonable hour of one o'clock, insteaad of dropping in just in time to change for parade." "A good fellow," the Doctor said, as he walked on with Bathurst; "he would never set the Thames on fire; but he is an honest, kindly fellow. He would make a capital officer if we were on service. His mar- riage has been an excellent thing for him. He had nothing to do before but to pass away his time in the club or mess-house, and drink more than was good for him. But he has pulled himself round altogether since he married. His wife ;s a bright, clever little woman, and knows how to make the house happy for him ; it he had married a lackadaisical sort of woman, the betting is he would have gone to the bad altogether." " I only met him once or twice before," Bathurst sud. " You see I am not here very often, and when I am it is only on business, so I know a very few people here e» cept those I have to deal with, and by the time I have got through my business I am generally so thoroughly out of temper with the pig-headed stupidity and ob- stinacy of people in general, that I get into my bugg)' and drive straight away. " " I fancy you irritate them as much as they irritate you, Bathurst. Well, here we are ; now we will have a quiet cheroot and a peg to quiet our nerves after all that din before we turn in. Let us get off our coats and collars, and make ourselves comfortable; it is a proof of the bestial stupidity of mankind that they should wear such abominations as dress-clothes in a climate like this. Here, boy, light the candles, and bring two sodas and brandies." "Well, Bathurst," he went on, when th^y had made themselves comfortable in two lounging-chairs, " what do you think of Miss Hannay?" "I was prepared to admire her, Doctor, from what 7» IN THF, DAYS OF THE MUTINY. ti ii. in 3'ou said; it is not very often that you over-praise things; but she is a charming girl, very pretty and bright, frank and natural. " "She is all that," the Doctor said. "We were four months on the voyage out, and 1 saw enough of her in that time to know her pretty thoroughly. " " What puzzles me about her," Bathurst said, " is that I seem to know her face. Where I saw her, and under what circumstances, I have been puzzling myself half the evening to recall, but I have the strongest convic- tion that I have met her." " You are dreaming, man. You have been out here eight years; she was a child of ten when you left Eng- land. You certainly have not seen her, and as I know pretty well every woman who has been in this station for the last five or six years, I can answer for it that you have not seen any one in the slightest degree resem- bling her. " " That is what I have been saying to myself. Doctor, but that does not in the slightest degree shake my con- viction about it. " "Then you must have dreamed it," the Doctor said decidedly. " Some fool of a poet has said, 'Visions of love cast their shadows before, ' or something of that sort, which of course is a lie — still that is the only way that I can account for it." Bathurst smiled faintly. " I don't think the quota- tion is quite right. Doctor; anyhow I am convinced that the impression is far too vivid to have been the result of a dream. " " By the way, Bathurst, " the Doctor said, suddenly changing his conversation, " what do you think of this talk we hear about chupaties being sent round among the native troops, and the talk about greased cartridges? You see more of the natives than any one I know ; do you think there is anything brewing in the air?" " If there is, Doctor, I am certain it is not known to the natives in general. I see no change whatever in their manner, and I am sure I know them well enough to notice any change if it existed. I know nothing about the Sepoys, but Garnet tells me that the company IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 79 •praise ty and ■e four her in is that I under ilf half convic- it here ft Eng- I know station hat you resem- Doctor, ny Con- or said sions of of that ily way quota- tivinced een the iddenly of this among "bridges? Iiow; do lown to lever in lenough lothing )mpany at Deennugghur give him nothing to complain of, though they don't obey orders as smartly as usual, and there is a sullen air about their going about their work." " I don't like it, Bathurst. I do not understand what the chupaties mean, but I know that there is a sort of tradition that the sending of them round has always preceded trouble. The Sepoys have no reason for dis- content, but there has been no active service lately and idleness is always bad for men. I can't believe there is any widespread dissatisfaction among them, but there is no doubt whatever that if U.ere is, and it breaks out, the position will be a very serious one. There are not half enough white troops in India, and the Sepoys may well think that they are masters of the situation. It would be a terrible time for every one in India if they did take it into their heads to rise. " " I can't believe they would be mad enough to do that, Doctor; they have everything to lose by it and nothing to gain, that is individually, and we should be sure to win in the long run, even if we had to conquer back India foot by foot." " That is all very well, Bathurst ; we may know that we could do it, but they don't know it. They are ignorant altogether of the force we could put into the field were there a necessity to make the effort. They naturally suppose that we can have but a few soldiers, for in all the battles we have fought there have always been two or three Sepoy regiments to one English. Besides, they consider themselves fully a match for us. They have fought by us side by side in every battlefield in India, and have rlone as well as we have. I don't see what they shoulc rise for. I don't even see whose interest it is to bring a rising about, but I do know that if they rise wc shall have a terrible time of it. Now I think we may as well turn in. You won't take another peg? Well, I shall see you in the morning. I shall be at the hospital by half-past six, and shall be in at half-past eight to breakfast. You have only got to shout for my man and tell him whether you will have tea, coffee, or chocolate, any time you Wftke." t m 80 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. " I shall be about by six, Doctor; five is my general hour, but as it is past one now, I dare say I shall be able to sleep on for an hour later, especially as there is nothing to do." " You can go round the hospital with me if you like, " the Doctor said, " if you will promise not to make a dozen suggestions for the improvericnt of things in general." Isobel Hannay came down to breakfast in high spirits on the morning of the races. The dinner had gone off excellently. The dinner-table with its softly shaded lamps and the Doctor's arrangement of the flowers had been, she thought, perfection, and everything had passed off without a hitch. Her duties as a hostess had been much lighter than she had anticipated. Mrs. Hunter was a very pleasant, motherly woman, and the girls, who had only come out from England four months before, were fresh and unaffected, and the other people had all been pleasant and chatty. Altogether she felt that her first dinner-party had been a great success. She was looking forward now with pleasant anticipa- tion to the day. She had seen but little of the natives so far, and she was now to see them at their best. Then she had never been present at a race, and every- thing woulc be new and exciting. "Well, uncle, what time did you get in?" she asked, as she stepped out into the veranda to meet him on his return from early parade. " It was too bad of you and Mr. Hunter running off instead of waiting to chat things over." " I have no doubt you ladies did plenty of that, my dear." *' Indeed, we didn't, uncle. You see they had had a very long ride, and Mrs. Hunter insisted on the girls going to bed directly you all went out, and as I could not sit up by myself I had to go too. " "We were in at half -past twelve," the Major said. " I can stand a good deal of smoke, but the club atmos- phere was too thick for me. " " Everything went off very well yesterday, didn't it?" she asked. IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. Si neral ill be there like," dozen eral." spirits me off ;haded lowers ig had lostess Mrs. md the months people •ty had iticipa- natives r best, every - asked, lim on of you to chat lat, my Id had a le girls |l could )r said, atmos- In't it?" " Very well, I thought, my dear, thanks to you and the Doctor and Rumzan. " " I had very little to do with it," she laughed. "Well, I don't think you had much to do with the absolute arrangements, Isobel, but I thought you did very well as hostess ; it seemed to me that there was a good deal of laughing and fun at your end of the table." " Yes, you see we had the two Miss Hunters and the Doctor there, and Mr. Gregson, who took me in, turned out a very merry old gentleman." " He would not be pleased if he heard you call him old, Isobel." " Well, of course he is not absolutely old, but being a commissioner and all. that sort of thing gives one the idea of being old ; but there are the others. " And they went into the breakfast-room. The first race was set for two o'clock, and at half- past one Mrs. Hunter's carriage with the four ladies arrived at the enclosure. The horses were taken out and the carriage wheeled into its place, and then Isobel and the two Miss Hunters prepared to enjoy the scene. It was a very gay one. The course was at present covered with a throng of natives in their bright-colored garments, and mixed with them were the scarlet uni- forms of the Sepoys of the 103d and other regiments. On the opposite side were a number of native vehicles of various descriptions, and some elephants with painted faces and gorgeous trappings, and with howdahs shaded by pavilions glittering with gilt and silver. On either side of their own a long line of carriages was soon formed up, and among these were several oc- cupied by gayly dressed natives, whose rank gave them entrance to the privileged enclosure. The carriages were placed three or four yards back from the rail, and the intervening space was filled with civilian and mili- tary officers, in white or light attire, and with pith helmet or puggaree; many others were on horseback behind the carriages. " It is a bright scene, Miss Hannay," the Doctor said, coming up to the carriage. "Wonderfully pretty, Doctor 1" li- 1' ij l! 82 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. "An English race-course doesn't do after this, I can tell you. I went down on the Derby when I was at home and such an assembly of riff-raff I never saw be- fore and never wish to see again." "These people are more picturesque, Doctor Wade," Mrs. Hunter said, *' but that is merely a question of garment; these people perhaps are no more trustworthy than those you met on the race-course at home." " I was speaking purely of them as a spectacle; indi- vidually I have no doubt one would be safer amiOng the English roughs and betting men than among these placid-looking natives. The one would pick your pockets of every penny you have got if they had the chance, the other would cut your throat with just as little compulsion." "You don't really mean that, Doctor Wade," Isobel said. " I do indeed. Miss Hannay ; the Oude men are no- torious brawlers and fighters, and T should say that the roughs of Cavvnpore and Lucknow could give long odds of those of any European city, and three out of four of those men you see walking about there would not only cut the throat of a European to obtain what money he had about him, but would do so without that incentive upon the simple ground that he hated lis." " But why should he hate us. Doctor? He is none the worse off now than he was before we annexed the country. " " Well, yes, that class of man is worse off. In the old days every noble and Zemindar kept up a little army for the purpose of fighting his neighbors, just as our Barons used to do in the happy olden times people talk of. We have put down private fighting, and the consequence is these men's occupations are gone, and they flock to great towns and there live as best they can, ready to commit any crime whatever, for the sum of a few rupees. There is Nana vSahib." Isobel looked round and saw a carriage with a mag- nificent pair of horses in harness almost covered with silver ornaments, drive up to a place that had been kept vacant for it. Four natives were sitting in it. IN THF DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 83 , I can was at ;aw be- VVade," ition of :worthy e; indi- ong the g these :k your had the I just as " Isobel are no- that the oTig odds )£ four of not only noney he ncentive none the jxed the In the a little fs, just as js people and the rone, and Dcst they the sum Ih a mag- jred with lad been I in it. "That is the Rajah," the Doctor said, "the farther man with that aigrette of diamonds in his turban. He is Oriental to-day, but sometimes he affects English fashions. He is a very cheery fellow; he keeps pretty well open house at Bithoor, has a billiard table and a first-rate cellar of wine, carriages for the use of guests — in fact he does the thing really handsomely." " Here is my opera-glass," Mrs. Hunter said. Isobel looked long and fixedly at the Rajah. "Well, what do you think of him?" the Doctor asked, as she lowered it. " I do not know what to think of him," she said ; " his face does not tell me anything, it is like looking at a mask ; but you see I am not accustomed to read brown men's characters, they are so different from Europeans, their faces all seem so impressive. I suppose it is the way in which they are brought up and trained." " Ages of tyranny have made them supple and de- ceitful," the Doctor said, "but of course less so here than among the Bengallies, who, being naturally im- warlike and cowardly, have always been the slaves of some master or other. " You evidently don't like the Nana, Miss Hannay. I am rather glad you don't, for he is no great favorite of mine, though he is so generally popular in the station here. I don't like him because it is not natural that he should be so friendly with us. We undoubtedly, ac- cording to native notions, robbed him of one of the finest positions in India by refusing to acknowledge his adoption. We have given him a princely revenue, but that, after all, is a mere trifle to what he would have had as Peishwa. Whatever virtues the natives of this country possess, the forgiving of injuries is not among them, and therefore I consider it to be altogether im- natural that he, having been, as he at any rate, and every one round him must consider, foully wronged, should go out of his w^ay to attVct our society, and de- clare the warmest friendship for us." The Rajah was laughing and talking with General Wheeler and the group of officers round his carriage. 84 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. V ' < >".? Again Isobel raised the glasses. "You are right, Doctor," she paid, " I don't like him." "Well, there is one comfort, it doesn't matter whether he is sincere or not, he is powerless to hurt us. I don't see any motive for his pretending to be friendly if he is not, but I own that I should like him better if he sulked and would have nothing to say to us, as would be the natural course." The bell now began to ring, and the native police cleared the course. Major Hannay and Mr. Hunter, who had driven over in the buggy, came up and took their places on the box of the carriage. " Here are cards of the races," he said. " Now is the time, young ladies, to make your bets," " I don't know even the name of any one in this first race," Isobel said, looking at the card. "That doesn't matter in the least. Miss Hannay," Wilson, who had just come up to the side of the car- riage, baid. "There are six horses in; you pick out any one you like, and I will lay you five pairs of gloves to one against him." "But how am I to pick out whcr I don't know any- thing about them, Mr. Wilson? I naglit pick out one that had no chance at all." " Yes, but you might pick out the favorite. Miss Han- nay, so that it is quite fair." "Don't you bet, Isobel," her uncle said, "Let us have a sweepstake, instead." "What is a sweepstake, uncle?" There was a general laugh. " Well, my dear, we each put in a rupee. There are six of us, and there are Wilson and the Doctor. You W'W go in. Doctor, won't you?" ■' Yv^s; I don't mind throwing away a rupee. Major." "Very wel'., that makes eight. We put eight pieces of pap'^r irj the hat. Six of them have got the names of the horses on, the other two are blank. Then we each pu'I ■at one, \\ hoe ver draws the name of the horse that wn)s takes five rupees, the holder of the second two, c^' d ■ ij-^ third saves his stake. You shall hold the stake>, Mi:, xiunter. We have all confidence in you. " If r; right, hether I don't if he is siilked be the ! police blunter, ad took w is the this first [annay," the car- pick out ,f gloves low any- out one ;iss Han- "Let us 'here are )r. You I, Major." ]ht pieces names of we each Ithe horse le second hold the in you." 1 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 85 i ly The slips were drawn. *' My horse is Bruce," Isobel said, "There he is, Miss Hannay," Wilson, whohad drawn a blank, said, as ahorse whose rider had a straw-colored jacket and cap came cantering along the course. " This is a race for coimtry horses — owners up. That means ridden by their owners. That is Pearson of the 13th Native Cavalry. He brought the horse over from Lucknow. " " What chance has he?" " I have not the least idea. Miss Hannay, I did n ^l hear any betting on this race at all." "That is a nice horse, uncle," Isobel said, as one with a rider in black jacket, with red cap, came past. "That is Delhi, Yes, it has good action," " That is mine," the eldest Miss Hunter said, "The rider is a good-looking young fellow," the Doctor said, " and is perfectly conscious of it himself. Who is he, Wilson? I don't know him," " He is a civilian. Belongs to the public woiks, I think," The other horses now came along, and after short preliminary canters the start was made. To Isobel's disappointment, her horse was never in the race, whinh Delhi looked like winning until near the post, when a rather common-looking horse, which had been lying a short distance behind him, came up with a rush and won by a length. "I don't call that fair," Miss Hunter said, "when the other was first all along. I call that a mean way of winning, don't you, father?" " Well, no, my dear. It was easy to see for the last quarter of a mile that the other was making what is called a 'waiting race' of it, and was only biding his time. There is nothing unfair in that. I fancy Delhi might have won if he had had a better jockey. His rider never really called upon him till it was too late. He was so thoroughly satisfied with himself and his position in the race that he was taken completely by surprise when Moonshee came suddenly up to him." "Well, I think it is very hard upon Delhi, father, I ■ \. » »:'':r I '{i ) ^ i 86 IN THF, DAYS OF THE MUTIKV. after keeping ahead all the way and ^oin^j;- so nicely. 1 think every one ouj^lit to do their best from the first." " I fancy you are thinkinj^, Miss Hunter," the Doctor said, " quite as much that it is hard on you being beaten after your hopes beinj^ raised as it is upon the horse." "Perhaps I am, Doctor," she admitted. "I think it is much harder on me," Isobel said. *' Vou have had the satisfaction of thinkin<^ all along that your horse was going to win, while mine never gave me the least bit of hope." *' The proper expression. Miss Hannay-, is, your horse never flattered you." "Then I think it is a very silly expression, Mr. Wil- son, because I don't see that (lattery has anything to do with it." '*Ah, here is I^athurst," the Doctor said. "Where have you been, Bathurst? You slipped away from me just now." '* T have just b'-on talking to the Comr .issioner. Doc- tor. I have been ti \ ing to get him to see " "Why, you don't mean to say," the Doctor broke in, " that you have been tr}ing to cram your theories down his throat on a race-course!" " It was before tlie race l)cgan," Bathurst said, "and I don't think the Commissioner has any more interest in racing than I have." "Not in racing," the Doctor agreed, "but I expect he has an interest in enjoying himself generally, which is a thing you don't seem to have the most remote idea of. Here we a^e just getting up a sweepstake for the next race ; hand over a rupee and try to get up an in- terest in it. Do try and forget your work till the race is over. I have brought you here to do you good. I regard you as my patient and I give you my medical orders that j'ou are to enjoy yourself." Bathurst laughed. " I am enjoying myself in my way. Doctor." "Who is that very pretty woman standing up in the next carriage but one?" Isobel asked. " She comes from an out-station," the Doctor replied, " she is the wife of the Collector there, but I think she n h \ [ niccl)'. 3 first." Doctor beaten orse." }1 said. 1 along i never ir horse Ir. Wil- li in g to ' Where rom me jr, Doc- roke in, L^s down " and interest expect which te idea for the an in- lie race ood. I medical ) in the eplied, ink she IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 87 i j! ^' r likes Cawnpore better than Boorgum; her name is Rose." " Is that her husband talking to her?" " No, that is a man in the Artillery here, I think." "Ye.s," the Major said, "that is Harrowb)', a good- looking fellow and quite a ladies' man." " Do you mean a man ladies like, uncle, or who likes the society of ladies?" " Both in his case, I vshould fancy," the Major said ; " I believe he is considered one of the best-looking men in the service." '•* I don't see why he should be liked for that," Isobel said. " As far as I have seen, good-looking men are not so pleasant as others. I suppose it is because they are conscious of their own good looks, and therefore do not take the trouble of being amusing. We had one very good-looking man on board ship, and he was the dullest man to talk to on board. No, Doctor, I won't have any names mentioned, but I am right, am I not?" "He was a dull specimen, certainly," the Doctor said, " but I think you are a little too sweeping." "I don't mean all good-looking men, of course, but men who what I call go in for being good-looking. I don't know whether you know what I mean. What are you smiling at, Mr. Wilson?" " I was thinking of two or three men I know to whom your description applies. Miss Hannay ; but I must be going, they are just going to start the next race, and mine is the one after, so I must go and get ready. You wish Lie success, don't you?" " I wish you all the success you deserve. I can't say more than that, can I?" " I am afraid that is saying very little," he laughed. " I don't expect to win, but I do hope I shall beat Rich- ards, because he is so cock-sure he will beat me. " This wish was not gratified. The first and second horses made a close race of it; behind them by ten or twelve lengths came the other horses in a clump, Wil- son and Richards singling themselves out in the last hundred yards and making a desperate race for the third 88 IN THK DAYS OF THE MUTINY. \i\ \\ i it f It ' if place, for which they made a dead heat, amid great laughter from their comrades. "That is excellent," Major Hannay said; "you won't see anything more amusing than that to-day, girls. The third horse simply saved his stake, so that, as they will of course divide, they will have paid twenty-five rupees each for the pleasure of riding, and the point which on heir tats is the fastest remains unsettled." " Well, they beat a good many of them, Major Jlan- nay," Miss Hunter said, ".so they did not do so badly after all." "Oh, no, they did not do so badly; but it will be a long time before they get over the chaff about their desperate struggle for the third place." The next two races attracted but slight attention from the occupants of the carriage. Most of their acquaintances in the station came up one after the other for a chat. There were many fresh introductions, and there was so much conversation and laughter that the girls had little time to attend to what wi-is*^ going on around them. Wilson and Richards both sauntered up after changing, i id were the subject of much chaff as to their brilliant iiding at the finish. Both were firm in the belief that the judge's finding was wrong, and each maintained stoutly he had beaten the other by a good head. The race for Arabs turned out a very exciting one; the Rajah of Bithoor's horse was the favorite on the strength of its performances elsewhere; but Prothero's horse was also well supported, especially in the regi- ment, for the Adjutant was a well-known rider and was in great request at all the principal places in Oude and the northwest Provinces, while it was known that the Rajah's horse would be ridden by a native. The latter was dressed in strict racing costume, and had at the last races at Cawnpore won two or three cups for the Rajah. But the general opinion among the officers of the station was that Prothero's coolness and nerve would tell. His Arab was certainly a fast one, and had won the previous year, both at Cawnp re and Lucknow ; but IN TIIF, DAYS OF TIIK MUTINY. 89 ng on k1 up iff as firm and by a one; n the ero's regi- was and the atter the the the Rajah's new purchase had gained so high a reputa- tion in the western presidency as fully to justify the odds of two to one laid on it, while four to one were offered against Prothero, and from eight to twenty to one against any other competitor. Prothero had stopped to have a chat at the Hunters' carriage as he walked toward the dressing-tent. "Our hopes are all centred in you, Mr. Prothero," Mr. Hunter said. *' Miss Hannay has been wagering gloves in a frightfully reckless way." " I should advise you to hedge if you can. Miss Han- nay," he said. " I think there is no doubt the Mame- luke is a good deal faster than Sella. I fancy he is pounds better. I only beat Vincent's horses by a head last year, and Mameluke gave him seven ])ounds, and beat him by three lengths at Poona. So I should strongly advise you to hedge your bets if you can." "What does he mean by hedge, uncle?" " To hedge is to bet the other way, so that one bet cancels the other." "Oh, I shan't do that," she .said; " I have enough money to pay my bets if I lose." " Do you mean to say you mean to pay your bets if you lose, Miss Hannay?" the Doctor asked, incredu- lously. "Of course I do," she said indignantly. "You don't suppose I intend to take the gloves if I win, and not to pay if I lose?" " It is not altogether an uncommon practice among ladies," the Doctor said, " when they bet against gentle- men. I believe that when they wager against each other, which they do not often do, they are strictly honest, but that otherwise their memories are apt to fail them altogether." " That is a libel, Mrs. Hnnter, is it not?" " Not altogether, I think ; of course many ladies do pay their bets when they lose, but others certainly do not." "Then I call it very mean," Isobel said earnestly. "Why, it is as bad as asking any one to make you a present of so many pairs of gloves in case a certain horse wins. " 90 IN THE PAYS OK IMF, MUTINV. ! ,' N it '{ );i| i; ' f i . h *' It comcsajjooddcal to the same thing," Mrs. Ilimtoi* ndniittcd, "but to a certain extent it is a recognized sort of thing; it is a sort of tribute that is exacted at race time, just as in France every lady expects a present from every gentleman of her acquaintance on New Year's Day." " I wouldn't bet if I didn't mean to ])ay honestly," Tsobcl said. "And if Mr. Prothero doesn't win, my debts will all be honorably discharge'." There was a hush of expectation in the crowd when the ten horses who.se numbers were u]) went down to the startinr -point, a quarter of a mile from the stand. They were to ]xiss it, make the circuit, and finish there, the race being two miles. The interest (^f the natives was enlisted by the fact that Nana Sahib was running a horse, while the hopes of the occupants of the en- closun^ rested principally on vSeila. The flag fell to a good start; but when the horses came along Isobel saw with surprise that the d U'k blue of the Rajah and the Adjutant's scarlet ruul white were both in tiie rear of the group. vSoon afterward the scarlet seemed to be making its way through the horses, and was speedily leading them. " Prothero is making the running with a vengeance," the Major said. "That is not like his usual tactics, Doctor." " I fancy he knows what he is doing," the Doctor re- plied. "He saw that Mameluke's rider was going to make awaiting race of it, and as the horse has certainly the turn of speed on him, he is trying other tactics. They are passing the mile post now, and Prothero is twelve or fourteen lengths ahead. There, Mameluke is going through his horses; his rider is beginning to get nervous at the lead Prothero has got, and he can't stand it any longer. He ought to have waited for an- other half-mile. You will see, Prothero will win after all. Seila can stay, there is no doubt about that." A roar of satisfaction rose from the mass of natives on the other side of the enclosure as Mameluke was seen to leave the group of horses and gradually to gain upon Seila. 1 IN TIIK DAVS OF TIIF, MUTINY. 91 **()li, lie will lalch liim, uncle!" Isobcl said, tcarinjj her liaiulkcrcliief in her excitement. The Major was vvatchin^j the horses through his field- jrlass. "Never mind his catching- him," he said; " Prothero is riding ([uietly and steadily. Seila is doing nearly her best, but he is not hurrying her, while the fool on Mameluke is bustling the horse as if he had only a hundred yards further to go." The horses were nearing the p(jint at which they had started, when a shout from the crowd proclaimed that the blue jacket had come up to and ])assed the scarlet. Slowly it forged ahead until it was two lengths in ad- vance; for a few strides tlieir relative ])()sitions remained unaltered, then there was a shout from the carriages: .scarlet was coming up again, Mameluke's rider glanced over his shoulder, and Ijcgan to u.sc tlic whip. l'\)r a few strides the horse widened the gap again, but Prothero still sat quiet and tmmoved. Just as they reached the end of the line of carriages, vSeila again began to close up. "Seila wins!" "Seila wins!" the officers shouted. But it seemed to Isobcl that this was well-nigh im- possible, but foot by foot the mare came up, and as they passed the Hunters' carriage her head was in advance, in spite of the desperate cftorts of the rider of Mame- luke. Another hundred yards and they passed the winning post, Seila a length ahead. CHAPTER VH. The exultation of the officers of the 103d over Seila's victory was great. They had all backed her, relying upon Prothero's riding, but although his success was generally popular among the Europeans at the station, many had lost considerable sums by their confidence in Mameluke's speed. Isobel sat down feeling quite faint from the excite- ment. IMAGE EVALUATION TEST TARGET (MT-S) 1.0 ^^ IM I.I i 3.2 2.2 i/- iiiiiM Uuu 1.8 1.25 1.4 III 1.6 ^ 6" ► <^ /2 /a '^ > '^"'> "> 7 >^ Photographic Sciences Corporation 23 WEST MAIN STREET WEBSTER, N.Y. 14580 (716) 872-4503 ^ « »" V :\ ^^ \ % V Ci^ W^ i/.x m 9a IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. i If " I did not think I could have been so excited over a race between two horses," she said to Mrs. Hunter. " It was not the bets, I never even thought about them, it was just because I wanted to see Mr. Prothero's horse win. I never understood before why people should take such an interest in horse-racing, but I quite understand now. " "What is your size, Miss Hannay?" Wilson asked. " Oh, I don't care anything about the gloves, Mr. Wilson ; I am sorry I bet now. " "You needn't feel any compunction in taking them from me or from any of us. Miss Hannay, we have all won over Seila; the regiment will have to give a ball on uhe strength of it. I only put on a hundred rupees and so have won four hundred, but most of them have won ever so much more than that, and all I have lost is four pair of glo\^es to you, and four to Mrs. Doolan, and four to Mrs. Prothero, a dozen in all. Which do you take, white or cream, and what is your size?" "Six and a quarter, cream." " All right. Miss Hannay. The Nana must have lost a good lot of money; he has been backing his horse with every one who would lay against it. However, it won't make any difference to him, and it is always a satisfaction when the loss comes on some one to whom it doesn't matter a bit. I think the regiment ought to give a dinner to Prothero, Major, it was entirely his riding that did it; he hustled that nigger on Mameluke splendidly. If the fellow had waited till within half a mile of home he would have won to a certainty; I never saw anything better. " " Well, Miss Hannay, what do you think of a horse race?" Bathurst, who had only remained a few minutes at the carriage, asked as he strolled up again. " You said yesterday that you had never seen one." " I am a little ashamed to say I was very much ex- cited over it, Mr. Bathurst. You have not lost, I hope? You are looking " and she stopped. " Shaky?" he said. " Yes, I feel shaky. I had not a penny on the race, for though the Doctor made me pat into a sweep last night at the club, I drew a blank; but IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 93 the shouting and excitement at the finish seemed to take my breath away, and I felt quite faint. " "That is just how I felt; I did not know men f^lt like that. They don't generally seem to know what nerves are. " " I wish I didn't; it is a great nuisance. The Doctor tries to persuade me that it is the effect of overwork, but I have always been so from a child, and I can't get over it. " "You don't look nervous, Mr. Bathurst." " No, when a man is a fair size, and looks bronzed and healthy, no one will give him credit for being nervous. I would give a very great deal if I could get over it." " I don't see that it matters much one way or the other, Mr. Bathurst." " I can assure you that it does. I regard it as being a most serious misfortune. " Isobel was a little surprised at the earnestness with which he spoke. " I should not have thought that," she said quietly, " but I can understand that it is disagreeable for a man to feel nervous, simply, I suppose, because it is sup- posed to be a feminine quality, but I think a good many men are nervous. We had several entertainments on board the ship coming out, and it was funny to see how many great, strong men broke down, especially those who had to make speeches." " I am not nervous in that way," Bathurst said, with a laugh. " My pet horror is noise ; thunder prostrates me completely, and in fact all noises, especially any sharp, sudden sound, affect me. I really find it a great nuisance. I fancy a woman with nerves considers her- self as a martyr, and deserving of all pity and sympathy. It is almost a fashionable complaint, and she is a little proud of it, but a man ought to have his nerves in good order, and as much as that is expected of him unless he is a feeble little body. There is the bell for the next race. " " Are you going to bet on this race again, Miss Han- nay?" Wilson said, coming up. '94 IN THE D^lYS OF THE MUTINY. ^^■*'■' 5 ; - " No, Mr. Wilson. I have done my first and last bit of gambling, I don't think it is nice ladies betting after all, and if there were a hospital here I should order you to send the money the gloves will cost you to it as conscience money, and then perhaps you might fol- low my example with your winnings." " My conscience is not moved in any way, " he laughed ; "when it is I will look out for a deserving charity. Well, if you won't bet I must see if I can make a small investment somewhere else. " "I shall see you at the ball, of course?" Isobel said, turning to Mr. Bathurst as Wilson left the carriage. " No, I think not. Balls are altogether out of my line, and as there is always a superabundance of men at such affairs here, there is no sense of duty about it." "What is your line, Mr. Bathurst?" " I am afraid I h^ve none. Miss Hannay. The fact is, there is really niore work to be done than one can get through. When you get to know the natives well you cannot help liking them and longing to do them some good if they would but let you, but it is so difficult to get them to take up new ideas. Their religion, with all its customs and ceremonies, seems designed ex- pressly to bar out all improvement. Except in the case of abolishing Suttee, we have scarcely weaned them from one of their observances, and even now, in spite of our efforts, widows occasionally immolate themselves, and that with the general approval. " I wish I had an army of ten thousand English ladies, all speaking the language well, to go about among the women and make friends with them; there would be more good done in that way than by all the officials in India. They might not be able to emancipate them- selves from all their restrictions, but they might in- fluence their children, and in time pave the way for a moral revolution. But it is ridiculous," he said, breaking off suddenly, " my talking like this here, but you see it is what you call my line, my hobby, if you like; but when one S'^es this hard-working, patient, gentle people making their lot so much harder than it need be by their customs and observances, one longs to 1 1 IN THE DAYS OF THE IVIUTINY. 95 I, A force them even against their own will to burst their bonds." Doctor Wade came up at this moment and caught the last word or two. " You are incorrigible, Bathurst. Miss Hannay, I warn you that this man is a monomaniac. I drag him away from his work, and here he is discoursing with you on reform just as a race is going to start. You may imagine, my dear, what a thorn he is in the side of the big-wigs. You have heard of Talleyrand's advice to a young official , ' Above all things no zeal. ' Go away, Bathurst; Miss Hannay wants to see the race, and even if she doesn't she is powerless to assist you in your crusade. " Bathurst laughed and drew off. " That is too bad. Doctor. I was very interested. I like to talk to people who can think of something besides races and balls, and the gossip of the station. " "Yes, in reason, in reason, my dear, but there is a me- dium in all things. I have no doubt Bathurst will be quite happy some time or other to give you his full views on child marriages, and the re-marriages of widows, and female education, and the land settlement, and a score of other questions, but for this a few weeks of perfect leisure will be required. Seriously, you know that I think Bathurst one of the finest young fellows in the service, but his very earnestness injures both his pros- pects and his utility ; the officials have a horror of en- thusiasm — they like the cut and dried subordinate who does his duty conscientiously and does not trouble his head about anything but carrying out the regulations laid down for him. " Theoretically I agree with most of Bathurst's views, practically I see that a score of officials like him would excite are volution throughout a whole province. In India, of all places in the world, the maxim /estma lente — go slow — is applicable. You have the prejudices of a couple of thousand years against change. The peo- ple of all things are jealous of the slightest appearance of interference with their customs. The change will no doubt come in time, but it must come gradually, : it I i ^•li i 96 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. and must be the work of the natives themselves and not of us. To try to hasten that time would be but to defer it. Now. child, there is the bell; now just attend to the business in hand." " Very well, Doctor, I will obey your orders, but it is only fair to say that Mr. Bathurst's remarks are only in answer to something I said, "and Isobel turned to watch the race, but with an interest less ardent than she had before felt. Isobel's character was an essentially earnest one, and her life up to the day of her departure to India had been one of few pleasures. She had enjoyed the change and had entered heartily into it, and she was as yet by no means tired of it ; but she had upon her arrival at Cawn- pore been a little disappointed that there was no def- inite work for her to perform, and had already begun to feel that a time would come when she would want some- thing more than gossip and amusements and the light talk of the officers of her acquaintance to fill her life. She had as yet no distinct interest of her own, and Bathurst's earnestness had struck a chord in her own nature and seemed to open a wide area for thought. She put it aside now and chatted gayly with the Hun- ters and those who came up to the carriage, but it came back to her as she sat in her room before going to bed. Up till now she had not heard a remark since she had been in Cawnpore that might not have been spoken had the cantonments there been the whole of India, except that persons at other stations were mentioned. The vast, seething native population were no more alluded to than if they were a world apart. Bathurst's words had for the first time brought home to her the reality of their existence, and that around this little group of English men and women lay a vast population with their joys and sorrows and sufferings. At breakfast she surprised Mrs. Hunter by asking a variety of questions as to native customs, " I suppose you have often been in the Zenanas, Mrs. Hunter?" " Not often, my d-sar. I have been in some of them, ^V IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 91 ds ty of lith rs. and very depressing it is to see how childish and igno- , rant the women are. " " Can nothing be done for them, Mrs. Hunter?" " Very little. In time I suppose there will be schools for girls, but you see they marry so young that it is difficult to get at them." " How young do they marry?" " They are betrothed, although it has all the force of a marriage, as infants, and a girl can be a widow at two or three years old ; and so, poor little thing, she remains to the end of her life in a position little better than that of a servant in her husband's family. Really they are married at ten or eleven." Isobel looked amazed at this her first insight into native life. Mrs. Hunter smiled. " I heard Mr. Bathurst saying something to you about it yesterday, Miss Hannay. He is an enthusiast; we like him very much, but we don't see much of him." "You must beware of him. Miss Hannay," Mr. Hunter said, " or he will inoculate you with some of his fads. I do not say that he is not right, but he sees the immensity of the need for change, but does not see fully the immensity of the difficulty in bringing it about." " There is no fear of his inoculating me ; that is to say, of setting me to work, for what could one woman do?" " Nothing, my dear," her uncle said ; " if all the white women in India threw themselves into the work, they could do little. The natives are too jealous of what they consider intruders ; the Parsees are about the only progressive people. While ladies are welcome enough when they pay a visit of ceremony to the Zenana of a native, if they were to try to teach their wives to be discontented with their lots — for that is what it would be — they would be no longer welcome. Schools are being established, but at present these are but a drop in the ocean. Still, the work does go on, and in time something will be done. It is of no use bothering yourself about it, Isobel, it is best to take matters as ^ you find them." 7 98 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. Isobel made no answer, but she was much disap- pointed when Doctor Wade, dropping in to tiffin, said his guest had started two hours before for Deennugghur. He had a batch of letters and reports from his native clerk, and there was something or other that he said he must see to at once. " He begged me to say. Major, that he was very sorry to go off without saying good-b)', but he hoped to be in Cawnpore before long. I own that that part of the message astonished me, knowing as I do what difficulty there is in getting him out of his shell. He and I be- came great chums when I was over at Deennugghur two years ago, and the young fellow is not given to making friends. However, as he is not the man to say a thing without meaning it, I suppose he intends to come over again. He knows there is always a bed for him in my place. " "We see very little of him," Mary Hunter said, "he is always away on horseback all day. Sometimes he comes in the evening when we are quite alone, but he will never stay long. He always excuses himself on the ground that he has a report to write or something of that sort. Amy and I call him 'Timon of Athens. ' " "There is nothing of Timon about him," the Doctor remarked dogmatically. "That is the way with you 5'oung ladies — you think thai a man's first business in life is to be dancing attendance. Bathurst looks at life seriously, and no wonder, going about as he does among the natives and listening to their stories and complaints. He puts his hand to the plough, and does not turn to the right or left." "Still, Doctor, you must allow," Mrs. Hunter said gravely, "that Mr. Bathurst is not like most other men. " "Certainly not," the Doctor remarked. "He takes no interest in sport of any kind, he does not care for society; he very rarely goes to the club, and never touches a card when he does, and yet he is the sort of man one would think would throw himself into what is going on. He is a strong, active, healthy man, whom one would expect to excel in . 11 sorts of sports ; he is ( sap- said hur. ' itive dhe iorry be E the ciilty 1 be- rghur en to :o say ids to edfor i, " he les he mt he elf on sthing ens. ' " octor :h you ess in at life |among >laints. [urn to *r said other takes tare for never I sort of rhat is whom : he is IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 00 i certainly good-looking ; he talks extremely well and is, I should say, very well read and intelligent." " He can be very amusing when he likes, Doctor. Once or twice when he has been with us he has seemed to forget himself, as it were, and was full of fun and life. You must allow that it is a little singular that a man like this should altogether avoid society, and night and day be absorbed in his work." " I have thought sometimes," Mr. Hunter said, "that Bathurst must have had some great trouble in his life. Of what nature I can, of course, form no idea. He was little more than twenty when he came out here, so I should say that it was hardly a love affair." " That is always the way, Hunter. If a man goes his own way, and that way does not happen to be the way of the mass, it is supposed that he must have had trouble of some sort. As Bathurst is the son of a dis- tinguished soldier, and is now the owner of a fine prop- erty at home, I don't see what trouble he can have had. He may possibly, for anything I know, have had some boyish love affairs, but I don't think he is the sort of man to allow his whole life to be affected by any fool- ery of that sort. He is simply an enthusiast, " It is good for mankind that there should be some enthusiasts. I grant that it would be an unpleasant world if we were all enthusiasts, but the sight of a man like him throwing his whole life and energy into his work and wearing himself out trying to lessen the evils he sees around him, ought to do good to us all. Look at these boys, " and he apostrophized Wilson and Rich- ards, as they appeared together at the door. " What do they think of but amusing themselves and shirking their duties as far as possible?" "Oh, I say. Doctor," Wilson exclaimed, astonished at this sudden attack, " what are 5^ou pitching into us like that for? That is not fair, is it. Major? We amuse ourselves, of course, when there is nothing else to do, but I am sure we don't shirk our work. You don't want us to spend our spare time in reading Greek, I suppose?" " No, but you might spend some of it very profitably 100 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. I t in learning some of these native langfuages," the Doc- tor said. " I don't believe that you know above a dozen native v»rords now. You can shout for brandy and water, and for a light for your cigars, but I fancy that that is about the extent of it." " We are going to have a moonshee next week, Doc- tor," Wilson said, a little crestfallen, "and a horrid nuisance it will be." " That is only because you are obliged to pass In the vernacular, Wilson. So you need not take any credit to yourself on that account. " " Doctor, you are in one of your worst possible tem- pers this morning," Isobel said. "You snap at us all round. You are quite intolerable this morning. " " I am rather put out by Bathurst running away in this fashion. Miss Hannay. I had made up my mind that he would stop three or four days longer, and it is pleasant to have some one who can talk and think about something besides horses and balls. But I will go away. I don't want to be the disturbing element, and I have no doubt that Richards is burning to tell you the odds on some of the horses to-day." " Shall we see you on the race-course. Doctor?" the Major asked, as the Doctor moved toward the door. " You will not, Major, one day is enough for me. If they would get up a donkey race confined strictly to the subalterns of the station, I might take the trouble to go and look at it. " "The Doctor is in great form to-day," Wilson said good-temperedly, after the laugh which followed the Doctor's exit had subsided, "and I am sure we did nothing to provoke him. " " You got into his line of fire, Wilson, " the Major said; "he is explosive this morning, and has been giv- ing it to us all around. However, nobody minds what the Doctor says ; his bark is very bad but he has no bite. Wait till you are down with the fiever and you ^11 find him devote himself to you as if he were your father." " He is one of the kindest men in the world," Isobel agreed warmly, thereby effectually silencing Richards, IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. lOI I Doc- dozen y and y that , Doc- horrid in the credit e tem- ; us all .way in y mind nd it is k about 3 away. I have le odds ►r?" the oor. me. If ictly to trouble ion said jved the we did Major een giv- ids what has no and you ere your ," Isobel Lichards, \ \ 1 who had just pulled up his shirt-collar preparatory to a sarcastic utterance respecting him. Isobel, indeed, was in full sympathy with the Doc- tor, for she, too, was disappointed at Bathurst's sudden departure. She had looked forward to learning a go'A deal from him about the native customs and ways, and had intended to have a long talk with him. She was perhaps, too, more interested generally in the man him- self than she would have been willing to admit. That evening the party went to an entertainment at Bithoor. Isobel and the girls were delighted with the illuminations of the gardens and with the Palace itself, with its mixture of Eastern splendor and European luxury. But Isobel did not altogether enjoy the even- ing. " I suppose I ought to congratulate you on your suc- cess last night, Isobel," Doctor Wade said when he dropped in after breakfast. " Every one has been tell- ing me that the Rajah paid you the greatest attention, and that there is the fiercest gnashing of teeth among what must now be called the ex-queens of the station." " I don't know who told you such nonsense. Doctor," Isobel replied hotly. "The Rajah quite spoilt the evening for me. I have been telling Mrs. Hunter so. If we had not been in his own house, I should have told him that I should enjoy the evening very much more if he would leave me alone and let me go about and look quietly at the place and the gardens, which arc really beautiful. No doubt he is pleasant enough, and I suppose I ought to have felt flattered at his walking about with me and so on, but I am sure I did not. What pleasure does he suppose an English girl can have in listening to elaborate compliments from a man as yellow as a guinea?" "Think of his wealth, my dear." " What difference does his wealth make?" Isobel said. " As far as I have seen I do iiot think that rich English- men are more amusing than others, and if he had all the wealth of India, that would not improve Nana Sahib in my eyes. There are women, of course, who do think a great deal about money, and who will even marry 103 IN THE DAYS OF THF. MUTINY. men for it, but even women who would do that could not, I should think, care anything about the wealth of a Hindoo they cannot marry." "Not directly, my dear," Mrs. Hunter said, "but people may be flattered with the notice and admiration of a person of importance and great wealth, even if he is a Hindoo." " Besides," the Doctor put in, "the Rajah is consid- ered to be a great connoisseur of English beauty, and has frequently expressed his deep regret that his re- ligion prevented his marrying an English lady." "I should be very sorry for the English girl who would marry him, religion or not." " I think you arc rather hard upon the Nana, Isobel," the Major said. " He is a general favorite; he is open- handed and liberal; very fond of entertaining; a great admirer of us as a nation. He is a wonderfully well- read man for a Hindoo; can talk upon almost every subject, and is really a pleasant fellow." "I don't like him; I don't like him at all," Isobel said positively. " Ah, that is only because you thought he made you a little more conspicuous than you liked by his atten- tions to you, Isobel." " No, indeed, uncle ; that was very silly and ridicu- lous, but I did not like the man himself, putting that avside altogether. It was like talking to a man with a mask on ; it gave me a creepy feeling. It did not seem to me that one single word he said was sincere, but that he was acting, and over and over again as he was talking I said to myself, 'What is this man really like? I know he is not the least bit in the world what he pre- tends to be. But what is the reality?' I felt just the same as I should if I had one of those great snakes they bring to our veranda coiling round me. The creature might look quiet enough, but I should know that if it were to tighten it would crush me in a moment." The Major and Mrs. Hunter both laughed at her earnestness, but the Doctor said gravely: " Is that really how you felt about him when he was talking to you. Miss Hannay? I am sorry to hear you say that. I own If f IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 103 t her really you, I own that my opinion has been that of every one here, that the Rajah is a good fellow and a Rrm friend of the Europeans, and my only doubt has arisen from the fact that it was unnatural he should like us when he has considerable grounds for grievance against us. We have always relied upon his influence, which is great among his countrymen, being thrown entirely into the scale on our side if any trouble should ever arise; hut I own that what you say makej me doubt him. I would always take the opinion of a dog or a child about any one in preference to my own." "You are not very complimentary, DoctOTj" Isobel laughed. "Well, my dear, a young girl who has not mixed much in the world and had her instincts blunted, is in that respect very much like a child. She may be de- ceived, and constantly is deceived, when her heart is concerned, and is liable to be taken in by any plausible scoundrel, but where her heart is not concerned her instincts are true. When I see children and dogs stick to a man I am convinced that he is all right, though I may not personally have taken to him. When I see a dog put his tail between his legs and decline to accept the advances of a man, and when I see children slip away from him as soon as they can, I distrust him at once, however pleasant a fellow he may be. As the Rajah, from all I heard, certainly laid himself out to be agreeable to you last night, and yet in spite of that you felt as you say you did about him, I am bound to say that, without at once admitting that my impressions about him were wrong, I consider that there is good ground for thinking tne matter over again." "What nonsense. Doctor!" the Major laughed. " Every one here has known the Rajah for years. He is a most popular man, every one likes him, among the ladies especially he is a great favorite. It is ridiculous to suggest that everyone should have been wrong about him, merely because Isobel takes a prejudice against him, and that, as far as I can see, is simply because his admiration for her was somewhat marked. " Isobel gave a little shudder. " Don't talk about ad- -r 104 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. ft ■■■ •! il iS I miration, uncle, that is not the word for it; I don't know what it was like. They say snakes fascinate birds before they eat them by fixing their eyes upon them. I should say it was something of that sort of look." " Well, my dear, he is not going to eat you, that is certain," the Major said, " and I can assure you that his approbation goes for a great deal here, and that after this you will go up several pegs in Cawnpore society. " Isobel tossed her head. "Then I am sorry for Cawnpore society; it is a matter of entire indifference to me whether I go up or down in its opinion." A fortnight later the Nana gave another entertain- ment. A good deal to her uncle's vexation Isobel re- fused to go when the time came. " But what am I to say, my dear?" he asked in some perplexity. "You can say anything you like, uncle; ycu can say that I am feeling the heat and have got a bad headache, which is true; or you can say that I don't care for gayety, which is also true. I shall be very much more comfortable and happy at home by myself." The Hunters had by this time returned to Deennug- ghur and the Major drove over to Bithoor accompanied only by Doctor Wade, He was rather surprised when the Doctor said he would go, as it was very seldom that he went out to such entertainments. " I am not going to amuse mysolf, Major, I want to have a good look at the Nana again ; I am not comfort- able since Isobel gave usher opinion of him. He is an important personage, and if there is any truth in these rumors about disaffection among the Sepoys, his friend- ship may be of the greatest assistance to us." So the Doctor was with Major Hannay when the lat- ter made his excuses for Isobel *s absence on the ground that she was not feeling very well. The Nana expressed great regret at the news, and said that with the Major's permission he would call in the morning to inquire after Miss Hannay's health. '* He did not like it," the Doctor said, when they had \' 1 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. lOS Strolled away together. " He was very civil and polite, but I could see that he was savage. I fancy he got up tLis fete principally in her honor. It is not often he has two «o close together. " " Oh, that is nonsense. Doctor. " "I don't think so. He has done the sam<^ sort of thing several times before, when he has been specially taken by some fresh face from England. " Others besides the Doctor remarked that the Rajah was not quite himself that evening. He was courteous and polite to his guests, but he was irritable with his own people, and something had evidently gone wrong with him. The next day he called at the Major's. The latter had not told Isobel of his intention, for be guessed that had he done so she would have gone across to Mrs. Doolan or one of her lady friends, and she was sitting in the veranda with him and young Wilson when the carriage drove up. " I was so sorry to hear that you were unwell. Miss Hannay," the Nana said courteously. " It was a great disappointment to me that you were unable to accom- pany your uncle last night. " "I have been feeling the heat the last few days," Isobel said quietly, " and, indeed, I do not care much about going out in such hot weather as this. I have not been accustomed to much society in England, and the crowd and the heat and the lights make my head ache." " You look the picture of health. Miss Hannay, but I know that it is trying for English women when they first come into our climate ; it is always a great pleasure to me to receive English ladies at Bithoor. I hope upon the next occasion you will be able to come. " "I am much obliged to your Highness," she said, * but it would be a truer kindness to let me stay quietly at home. " "But that is selfish of you. Miss Hannay. You should think a little of the pleasure of others as well as your own. " " I am not conceited enough to suppose that it could make any difference to other people's pleasure whether 'i J>.J 11 1 06 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. I am at a party or not," Isobel said. " I suppose you mean that as a compliment, Rajah, but I am not ac- customed to compliments, and don't like them." " You will have to learn to become accustomed to com- pliments, Miss Hannay," the Rajah said, with a smile, and then turning to the Doctor began to tell him of a tiger that had been doing a great deal of harm at a village some thirty miles away, and offered to send some elephants over to organize a hunt for him if he liked, an invitation that the Doctor promptly accepted. The visit was but a short one. The Rajah soon toolc his leave. "You are wrong altogether, Isobel," the Doctor said. " I have returned to my conviction that the Rajah it a first-rate fellow. " " That is just because he offered you some shooting. Doctor," Isobel said indignantly. " I thought better of you than to suppose that you could be bought over so easily as that." "She had you there. Doctor," the Ma^jor laughed. " However, I am glad that you will no longer be back- ing her in her fancies." " Why did you accept his invitation for us to go over and lunch there, uncle?" Isobel askevi idignantly. " Because there was no reason in the world why we should refuse, my dear. He very ofi.eii has luncheon parties, and after that he will show you over the place, and exhibit his jewels and curiosities. He said there would be other ladies there, and I have no doubt we shall have a very pleasant day." Even Isobel was obliged to confess that the visit was a pleasant one. The Nana had ask )d Mrs. Cromarty, her daughters, and most of the other ladies of the regi- ment, with their husbands. The lunch was a banquet, and after it was over the parties were ti ken round the Palace, paid a visit to the Zenana, inspected the gavdens and stables, and were driven through the park. The Nana saw that Isobel objected to be particularly noticed, and had the tact to make his attentions so general that even she could find no fault with him. On the drive back she admitted to her uncle that she i I IN THE DAVs ur THE MUTINY. 107 t had enjoyed her visit very much, and that the Rajah's manners were those of a perfect gentleman. "But mind, uncle," she said, "I do not retract my opinion. What the Rajah really is I don't pretend to know, but I am quite sure that the character of a smil- ing host is not his real one, and that for some reason or other he is simply playing a part." " I had no idea that you were such a prejudiced little woman," the Major said, somewhat vexed, "but as it is no use arguing with you we had better drop the sub- ject." For the next month Cawnpore suffered a little from the reaction after the gayety of the races, but there was no lack of topics of conversation, for the rumors of dis- affection among the troops gained in strength, and al- though nothing positive was known, and every one scoffed at the notion of any serious trouble, the subject was so important a one that little else was talked of whenever parties of the ladies got together. CHAPTER VIII. " I HAVE some bad news, Isobel. At least I suppose you will consider it bad news," the Major said one morning when he returned from the orderly room. " You heard me say that four companies were going to relieve those at Deennugghur. Well, I am going with them. It seems that the General is of opinion that in the present unsettled state of affairs there ought to be a field-officer in command there, so I have to go. For myself I don't mind, but you will find it dull in a small station like that, after the gayeties of Cawnpore." " I don't mind a bit. uncle, in that respect. I don't think I care much for gayeties, but of course the move will be a trouble. We have everything So nice here, it will be horrid having to leave it all. How long will it be for?" " vSix months, in the ordinary state of things, though of course something may occur to bring us in before that. Still, the change won't be as much trouble as you io8 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. IV. •11 I r fancy. When we get there you can stay for two or three days with the Hunters till we have got the things to rights. There is one thing that you will be pleased about. Wade is going with us, at any rate for the present ; you are a favorite of his, you know ; and I think that is the principal reason for his going. At any rate, when he heard that I was going he told the Colo- nel that, as there was no illness in the regiment, he thought that if he did not object he would change places for a bit with McAlaster, the assistant surgeon, who has been with the detachment at Dennugghur for the last year, so as to give him a turn of duty at Cawn- pore, and to a little shikaring himself; there is more jungle and better shooting round Deennugghur than there is here, and you know the Doctor is an enthusiast, that way. Of course the Colonel agreed." "I am very glad of that, uncle; it won't seem like going to a strange place if we have him with us, and the Hunters there, and I suppose three or four officers of the regiment. Who are going?" "Both your boys," the Major laughed, "and Doolan and Rintoul." "When do we go, uncle?" " Next Monday. I shall get somebody to put us up here from Friday, and that morning we will get every- thing dismantled here, and send them off by bullock carts with the servants to Deennugghur, so that they will be there by Monday morning. I will write to Hunter to pick as out the best of the empty bungalows, and see that our fellows get to work to clean the place up, as soon as they arrive. We shall be two days on the march, and things will be pretty forward by the time we get there." " And where shall we sleep on the march?" " In tents, my dear, and very comfortable you will find them. Rumzan will go with us, and you will find everything go on as smoothly as if you were here. Tent life in India is very pleasant. Next year, in the cool season, we will do an excursion somewhere, and I am sure you will find it delightful ; they don't know anything about the capabilities of tents at home. " ' IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. XO9 *' Then do I quite understand, uncle, that all I have got to do is to make a round of calls to say good-by to every one?" " That is all. You will find a lot of my cards in one of those pigeon-holes, you may as well drop one wher- ever you go. Shall I order a carriage from Framjee's for to-day?" " No, I think not, uncle ; I will go round to our own bungalows first, and hear what Mrs, Doolan and the others think about it. " At Mrs. Doolan's Isobel found quite an assembly. Mrs. Rintoul had come in almost in tears, and the two young lieutenants had dropped in with Captain Doolan, while one or two other officers had come round to com- miserate with Mrs. Doolan, "Another victim," the latter said as Isobel entered. "You look too cheerful. Miss Hannay. I find that we are expected to wear sad countenances at our approach- ing banishment." " Are we, Mrs. Doolan? It seems to me that it won't make very much difference to us. " "Not make any difference, Miss Hannay!" Captain Doolan said. " Why, Deennugghur is one of the dull- est little stations on this side of India. " " What do you mean by dull. Captain Doolan?" " Why, there are only about six white residents there besides the troops. Of course, as four companies are going instead of one, it will make a difference; but there will be no gayety, no excitement, and really noth- ing to do. " " As for the gayety, I am sure I shall not regret it. Captain Doolan ; besides, our gayeties are pretty well over, except, of course, dinner parties, and it is getting very hot for them. We shall get off having to go out in the heat of the day to make calls, which seem to me terrible afflictions, and I think with a small party it ought to be very sociable and pleasant. As for excite- mftnt, I hear that there is much better shooting there than there is here. Mrs. Hunter was telling me that they have had some tigers that have been very trouble- some round there, and you will all have an opportunity no IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. of distinguishing yourselves. I know that Mr. Richards and Mr. Wilson are burning to distinguish themselves. " "It would be great fun to shoot a tiger," Richards said. " When I came out to India I thought there was going to be lots of tiger shooting, and I bought a rifle on purpose, but I have never had a chance yet. Yes, we will certainly get up a tiger hunt, won't we, Wil- son? You will tell us how to set about it, won't you, Doolan?" "I don't shoot," Captain Doolan said, "and if I wanted to I am not sure that my wife would give me leave." " Certainly I would not, " Mrs, Doolan said promptly. " Married men have no right to run into unnecessary danger. " " Doctor Wade will be able to put you in the way, Mr. Richards," Isobel said. "Doctor Wade!" Mrs. Rintoul exclaimed. "You don't mean to say. Miss Hannay, that he is going with us?" "Yes, he is going for a time, Mrs. Rintoul. My uncle told me that he had applied to go with the de- tachment, and that the surgeon there would come back to the regiment while he is away." " I do call that hard," Mrs. Rintoul said. " The only thing I was glad we were going for was that we should be under Mr. McAlaster, who is very pleasant, and quite understands my case, while Dr. Wade does not seem to understand it at all, and is always so very brusque and unsympathetic. " There was a general smile. "Wade is worth a hundred of McAlaster," Captain Roberts said. " There is not a man out here I would rather trust myself to if I were ill. He is an awfully good fellow, too, all round, though he may be, as you say, a little brusque in manner. " "I call him a downright bear," Mrs. Rintoul said angrily. " Why, only last week he told me that if I would get up two hours earlier and go for a brisk walk just after sunrise, and give up eating meat at tiffin, and confine myself to two or three dishes at dinner, I IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. Ill My de- Dack only lould and not very I said if I ralk Iffin, should be perfectly well in the cou/se of a month ; just as if I was in the habit of over-eating myself, when I have scarcely the appetite of a sparrow. I told Cap- tain Rintoul afterward that I must consult some one else, for that really I could not bear such rudeness." *' I am afraid we are all against you, Mrs. Rintoul, " Mrs. Doolan said, with a little shake of her head at Isobel, who was, she saw, going to speak out strongly. " No one could possibly be kinder than he is when any one is really ill. I mean seriously ill," she added, as Mrs. Rintoul drew herself up indignantly. " I shall never forget how attentive he was to the children when they were down with fever just before he went to Eng- land. He missed his ship and lost a month of his leave because he would not go away till they were out of danger, and there are very few men who would have done that. I shall never forget his kindness. And now let us talk of something else. You will have to establish a little me.is on your own account, Mr. Wilson, as both the captain.'i are married men, and the Major has also an incumbrance." " Yes, it will be horribly dull, Mrs. Doolan. Richards and I have quarters together here, and, of course, it will be the same there, and I am sure I don't know what we shall find to talk about when we come to have to mess together. Of course, here, there are the mess- room and the club, and so we get on very well, but to be together always will be awful. " "You will really have to take to reading or some- thing of that sort, Mr. Wilson," Isobel laughed. " I always do read the Fields Miss Hannay, but that won't last for a whole week, you know; and there is no billiard-table, and no racquet court, or anything else at Deennugghur, and one cannot always be riding about the country." " We shall all have to take pity on you as much as we can," Mrs. Doolan said. " I must say that, like Miss Hannay, I shall not object to the change." " I think it is all very well for you, Mrs. Doolan, you have children. " " Well, Mr. Richards, I will let you both, as a great 112 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. i 4^ i : I treat, take them out for a walk sometimes of a morning instead of their going with the ayah. That will make a change for you. " There was a general laugh, but Wilson said, man- fully: "Very well, Mrs. Doolan; I am very fond of youngsters, and I should like to take, anyhow, the two eldest out sometimes. I don't think I should make much hand with the other two, but perhaps Richards would like to come in and amuse them while we are out, he is just the fellow for young ones. " There was another laugh in which Richards joined. " I could carry them about on my back, and pretend to be a horse," he said, "but I don't know that I could amuse them in any other way. " "You would find that very hot work, Mr. Richards," Mrs. Doolan said, "but I don't think we shall require such a sacrifice of you. Well, I don't think we shall find it so bad, after all, and I don't suppose it will be for very long ; I do not believe in all this talk about chupaties, and disaffection, and that sort of thing; I expect in three months we shall most of us be back again. " Ten days later the detachment was settled down in Deennugghur. The troops were for the most part under canvas, for there was only accommodation for a single company at the station. The two subalterns oc- cupied a larg^ square tent, while the other three officers took possession of the only three bungalows that were vacant at the station, the Doctor having a tent to him- self. The Major and Isobel had stayed for the first three days with the Hunters, at the end of which time the bungalow had been put in perfect order. It was far less commodious than that at Cawnpore, but Isobel was well satisfied with it when all their belongings had been arranged, and she soon declared that she pre- ferred Deennugghur greatly to Cawnpore. Those at the station heartily welcomed the accession to their numbers, and there was an entire absence of the stiffness and formality of a large cantonment like Cawnpore, and Isobel was free to run in as she chose to spend the morning chatting and working with the Hun- wn in part for a ns oc- fficers were him- ! first time t was sobel gings pre- ^ssion ic« of like ^se to [un- IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 1X3 f 1 ters, or Mrs. Doolan, or with the other ladies, of whom there were three at the station. A few days after their arrival, news came in that the famous man-eater, which had for a time ceased his ravages and moved off to a different part of the country, principally because the natives of the villages near the jungle had ceased altogether to go out after nightfall, had returned, and had carried off herdsmen on two consecutive day.,. The Doctor at once prepared for action, and agreed to allow Wilson and Richards to accompany him, and the next day the three rode off together to Narkeet, to which village the two herdsmen had belonged. Both had been killed near the same spot, and the natives had traced the return of the tiger to the jungle with its victims. The Doctor soon found that the ordinary methods of destroying the tiger had been tried again and again without success. Cattle and goats had been tied up, and the native shikaris had taken their posts in trees close by, and had watched all night — but in vain. Spring-traps and deadfalls had also been tried, but the tiger seemed absolutely indifferent to the attractions of animal food, and always on the lookout for snares. The attempts made at a dozen villages near the jungle had all been equally unsuccessful. " It is evident," the Doctor said, " that the brute cares for nothing but human victims. No doubt if he were very hungry he would take a cow or a goat, but we might wait a very long time for tnat ; so the only thing that I can see is to act as a bait myself. " " How will you do that. Doctor?" " I shall build a sort of cage near the point where the tiger has twice entered the jungle. I will take with me in the cage a woman or girl from the village. From time to time she shall cry out as if in pain, and as the tiger is evidently somewhere in this neighbor- hood, it is likely enough he will come out to see about it. We must have the cage pretty strong, or I shall never get any one to sit with me ; besides, on a dark night, there is no calculating on killing to a certainty with 8 "4 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. : !■ f the first shot, and it is just as well to be on the safe side. In daylight it would be a different matter alto- gether. I can rely upon my weapon when I can see, but on a dark night it is pretty well guess-work." The villagers were at once engaged to erect a stout cage eight feet square and four high, of beams driven into the ground six inches apart, and roofed in with strong bars. There was a considerable difficulty in getting any one to consent to sit by the Doctor, but at last the widow of one of the men who had been killed agreed for the sum of twenty-five rupees to pass the night there accompanied by her child of four years old. The Doctor's skill with his rifle was notorious, but it was rather the desire of seeing her husband's death avenged than for the sake of the money, that she con- sented to keep watch. There was but one tree suitable for the watchers ; it stood some forty yards to the right of the cage, and it was arranged that both the subalterns should take their station in it. "Now look here, lads," he said, "before we start on ;his business, it must be quite settled that you do not fire till you hear my rifle. That is the first thing ; the second is that you only fire when the brute is a fair distance from the cage. If you get excited and blaze away anyhow, you are quite as likely to hit me as you are the tiger. Now, I object to take any risk whatever on that score. You will have a native shikari in the tree with you to point out the tiger, for it is twenty to one against you making him out for yourselves. It will be quite indistinct, and you have no chance of making out its head or anything of that sort, and you have to take a shot at it as best you may. " Remember that there must not a word be spoken. If the brute does come, it will probably make two or three turns round the cage before it approaches it, and may likely enough pass close to you, but in no case fire. You can't make sure of killing it, and if it were only wounded, it would make off into the jungle, and all our trouble would be thrown away. Also remem- ber you must not smoke ; the tiger would smell it half V I safe alto- see, stout riven with ty in t)ut at killed ss the years but it death e con- litable 3 right alterns ;art on do not g; the I fair blaze as you atever in the nty to It will laking ave to poken. two or it, and o case t were e, and mem- it half IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. "5 ! li a mile away, and, besides, the sound of a match strik- ing would be quite sufficient to set him on his guard." " There is no objection, I hope, Doctor, to our taking up our flasks; we shall want something to keep us from going to sleep." " No, there is no objection to that," the Doctor said, "but mind you don't go to sleep, for if you did you might fall off your bough and break your neck, to say nothing of the chance of the tiger happening to be close i,.*: hand at the time." Late in the afternoon the Doctor went down to in- spect the cage, and pronounced it sufficiently strong. Half an hour before nightfall he and the woman and child took their places in it, and the two beams in the roof that had been left unfastened to allow of their entry were securely lashed in their places by the vil- lagers. Wilson and Richards were helped up into the tree, and took their places upon two boughs which sprang from the trunk close to each other at a height of some twelve feet from the ground. The shikari, who was to wait with them, crawled out, and with a hatchet chopped off some of the small boughs and fo- liage so as to give them a clear view of the ground for some distance round the cage, which was erected in the centre of a patch of brushwood, the lower portion of which had been cleared out so that the Doctor should have an uninterrupted view round. The boughs and leaves were gathered up by the villagers, and carried away by them, and the watch began. "Confound it," Richards whispered to his compan- ion after night fell, " it is getting as dark as pitch ; I can scarcely make out the clump where the cage is. I should hardly see an elephant if he were to come, much less a brute like a tiger." " We shall get accustomed to it presently, " Wilson replied ; " at any rate make quite sure of the direction in which the cage is ; it is better to let twenty tigers go than to run the risk of hitting the Doctor. " In another hour their eyes had become accustomed to the darkness, and they could not only see the clump in which the cage was, clearly, but could make out the ii6 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 1 ; outline of the bush all round the open space in which it stood. Both started as a loud and dismal wail rose suddenly in the air, followed by a violent crying. " By Jove, how that woman made me jump!" Wilson said ; " it sounded quite awful, and she must have pinched that poor little beggar of hers pretty sharply to make him yell like that." A low " hush" from the shikari at his elbow warned Wilson that he was speaking too loudly. Hours passed by, the cries being raised at intervals. " It is enough to give one the jumps, Richards; each time she yells I pretty well fall off my branch." " Keep on listening, then it won't startle you." "A fellow can't keep on listening," Wilson grum- bled; "I listen each time until my ears begin to sing, and I feel stupid and sleepy, and then she goes again like a steam-whistle; that child will be black and blue all over in the morning." A warnin^, hiss from the shikari again induced Wil- son to silence. " I don't believe the brute is coming," he whispered, an hour later. " If it wasn't for this bough being so hard, I should drop off to sleep ; my eyes ache with staring at those bushes." As he spoke the shikari touched him on the shoulder and pointed. "Tiger," he whispered; and then did the same to Richards. Grasping their rifles, they gazed in the direction in which he pointed, but could for some time make out nothing. Then they saw a dim gray mass in front of the bushes, directly on the oppo- site side of the open space ; then from the clump lying almost in a direct line between it and them rose the cry of the child. They were neither of them at all cer- tain that the object at which they were gazing was the tiger. It seemed shapeless, the outline fading away in the* bush ; but they felt sure that they had noticed noth- ing like it in that direction before. For two or three minutes they remained in uncer- tainty, then the outline seemed to broaden, and it moved noiselessly. There could be no mistake now; the tiger had been attracted by the cries, and as it i vhich I rose /ilson have larjily rarned passed : each grum- y sing, linlike ilue all sd Wil- spered, eing so e with loulder len did gazed fuld for a dim |e oppo- lying >se the I all cer- ras the iway in id noth- tincer- and it te now; as it IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 117 i moved along they could see that it was making a cir- cuit of the spot from whence the sounds proceeded, to reconnoitre before advancing toward its prey. It kept close to the line of bushes, and sometimes passed be- hind some of them. The shikari pressed their shoul- ders, and a low hiss enforced the necessity for absolute silence. The two young fellows almost held their breath ; they had lost sight of the tiger now, but knew it must be approaching them. For two or three minutes they heard and saw nothing; then the shikari pointed beyond them, and they almost started as they saw the tiger retreating, and knew that it must have passed almost under them without their noticing it. At last it reached the spot at which they had first seen it. The child's cry, but this time low and querulous, again rose. With quicker steps than before it moved on, but still not directly toward the centre, to the great relief of the two subalterns, who had feared that it might attack from such a direction that they would not dare to fire for fear of hitting the cage. Fortunately it passed that point, and, crouch- ing, moved toward the bushes. Wilson and Richards had their rifles now at their shoulders, but in the feeble and uncertain light felt by no means sure of hitting their mark, though it was but some thirty yards away. Almost breathlessly they listened for the Doctor's rifle, but both startedjwhen the flash and sharp crack broke on the stillness. There was a sudden snarl of pain, the tiger gave a spring in the air and then fell, rolling over and over. "It is not killed," the shikari exclaimed. "Fire when it gets up. " Suddenly it rose to its feet, and, with a loud roar, sprang toward the thicket. The two subalterns fired, but the movements of the dimly-seen creature were so swift that they felt by no means sure that they had hit it. Then came, almost simultaneously, a loud shriek from the woman of a very different character to the long wails she had before uttered, followed by a sound of rending and tearing. " He is breaking down the cage," Richards exclaimed V'l 1' !*''i :i xiS IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. excitedly, as he and Wilson hastened to ram another cartridge down their rifles. " Come, v. e must go and help the Doctor." But a moment later came another report of a rifle, and then all was silent. Then the Doctor's voice was heard. " Don't get down from the tree yet, lads; I think he is dead, but it is best to make sure first." There was a pause, and then another rifle-shot fol- lowed by the shout, " All right ; he is as dead as a door nail now. Mind your rifles as you climb down." "Fancy thinking of that," Wilson said, "when you have just killed a tiger; I haven't capped mine yet, have you, Richards?" " I have just put it on, but will take it off again. Here, old man, you get down first and we will hand the guns to you," this to the shikari. With some difficulty they scrambled down from the tree. " Now we may as well cap our rifles," Richards said, "the brute may not be dead after all." They approached the bush cautiously. " You are quite sure he is dead, Doctor?" " Quite sure; do you think I don't know when a tiger is dead?" Still holding their guns in readiness to fire, they ap- proached the bushes. ' You can do no good until the villagers come with torches," the Doctor said; "the tiger is dead enough, but it is always as well to be prudent." The shikari had uttered a loud cry as he sprang down from the tree, and this had been answered by shouts from the distance. In a few minutes lights were seen through the trees, and a score of men with torches and lanterns ran up with shouts of satisfac- tion. As soon as they arrived, the two young officers ad- vanced to the cage. On the top a tiger was lying stretched out as if in sleep; with some caution they approached it and flashed a torch in its eyes. There was no doubt that it was dead. The body was quickly rolled oft' the cage, and then a dozen hands cut the ■ :; f IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 119 nother go and nother en the link he lot fol- a door en you ne yet, again, and the •om the ds said, a tiger :hey ap- le with jnoiigh, sprang lered by Is lights I en with jatisfac- ;ers ad- is lying |on they There quickly cut the k lashing and lifted the top bars, which were deeply scored by the tiger's claws, and the Dcotor emerged. " I am glad to be out of that," he said; " six hours in a cage with a woman and a crying brat is no joke." As soon as the Doctor had got out the subalterns eagerly examined the tiger, upon which the natives were heaping curses and execrations. " How many wounds has it got?" they asked the Doctor, who repeated the question to the shikari in his own language. " Three, sahib— one full in the chest, it would have been mortal, two others in the belly. " " No others?" the subalterns exclaimed in disgust as the answer was translated to them. The Doctor himself examined the tiger. " No, you both missed, lads, but you need not be ashamed of that ; it is no easy matter to hit a tiger even at a short distance on a dark night like this, when yot. can scarce make him out, and can't see the barrel of your rifle. I ought to have told you to rub a little phosphorus off the head of a match on to the sight. I am so accustomed to do it myself as a matter of course, that I did not think of telling you. Well, I am heartily glad we have killed it, for by all accounts it has done an immense deal of damage. " "It has been a fine tiger in its time, although its skin doesn't look much, " Wilson said ; " there are patches of fur off." " That is generally the case with man-eaters. They are mostly old tigers who take to killing men when they get past their strength. I don't know whether the flesh doesn't agree with them, but they are almost al- ways mangy. " "We were afraid for a moment," Richards said, " that the tiger was going to break into your cage ; we heard him clawing away at the timber, and as you didn't fire again we were afraid something was the matter. " "The mother was," the Doctor said testily. "The moment the tiger sprang, the woman threw herself down at full length right on the top of my second rifle. tio m THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. and when I went to push her off, I think she fancied the tiger had got hold of her, for she gave a yell that fairly made me jump. I had to push her off by main force and then lie down on my back so as to get the rifle up to fire. I was sure the first shot was fatal, for I knew just where his heart would be, but I dropped a second cartridge in and gave him another bullet so as to make sure. Well, if either of you want his head or his claws, you had better say so at once, for the natives will be singeing his whiskers off directly ; it is a super- stition of theirs. " "No, I don't want them," Wilson said. "If I had put a bullet into the brute so that I could have said I helped to kill him, I should have liked the head to get it preserved and sent home to my people, but as it is, the natives are welcome to it as far as I am concerned. " Richards was of the same opinion, and so, without further delay, they started back for the village, where, upon their arrival, they were greeted with cries of joy by the women, the news having already been carried back by a boy. " Poor beggars," the Doctor said. " They have been living a life of terror for weeks. They must feel as if they had woke from a nightmare. Now, lads, we will have some supper. I dare say you are ready for it, and I am sure I am." '* Is there any chance of supper, Doctor? Why, it must be two o'clock in the morning." "Of course there is," the Doctor replied. "I gave orders to my man to begin to warm up the food as soon as he heard a gun fired, so that I will guarantee he has got everything ready by this time. " After a hearty mesl and a cigar, they lay down for a few hoi rs' sleep, and at daybreak rode back to Deen- nugghur, the two subalterns rather crestfallen at their failure to have taken any active part in killing the tiger that had so long been a terror to the district. " It v/as ar. awful sell missing him, Miss Hannay. I wanted to have had the claws mounted as a necklace, I thought you would have liked it." " I am very mtich obliged to you, Mr. Wilson, but I I i ,1 / , IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. I2T tor a 'een- :heir :iger ' I Wilson I don't He said would much rather not have had them. If the tiger hadn't been a man-eater I should not have minded, but I should never have worn as an ornament claws that had killed lots of people — women, and children too. " " No, I never thought of that, Miss Hannay ; it wouldn't have been pleasant now one thinks of it; still I wish I had put a bullet into him." " No doubt you will do better next time, Mr. Wilson. The Doctor has been telling me that it is extremely difficult to hit an animal in the dark when you are not accustomed to that sort of shooting. He says he was in a great fright all the time he was lying in the cage, and that it was an immense relief to him when he heard your rifles go off, and found that he wasn't hit. "That is too bad of him. Miss Hannay;" laughed ; " we were not such duffers as all that, believe he really did think so. " ** I am sure he was in earnest, Mr. Wilson, he should have felt quite safe if it had been daylight, but that in the dark people really can't see which way the rifles are pointed, and that he remembered he had not told you to put phosphorus on the sights. " " It was too bad of him, " Wilson grumbled ; " it would have served him right if one of the bullets had hit a timber of the cage and given him a start. I should like to have seen the Doctor struggling in the dark to get his second rifle from under the woman, with the tiger clawing and growling two feet above him." "The Doctor didn't tell me about tnat," Isobel laughed, " though he said he had a woman and child with him to attract the tiger." " It would have frightened any decent-minded tiger, Miss Hannay, instead of attracting it, for such dismal yells as that woman made, I never listened to ; I nearl)^ tumbled off the tree at the first of them, it made me jump CO, and it gave me a feeling of cold water running down my back; as to the child, I don't know whether she pinched it or the Doctor stuck pins into it, but the poor little brute howled in the most frightful way. I don't think I shall ever want to go tiger-shooting in the dark again; I ache all over to-day as if I had been 193 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. -f playing in the first football match of the season, from sitting balancing myself on that branch ; I was almost over half a dozen times. " ** I expect you nearly went off to sleep, Mr. Wilson. " " I think I should have gone to sleep if it hadn't been for that woman, Miss Hannay. I should not have minded if I could have smoked, but to sit there hour after hour and not be able to smoke, and not allowed to speak, and staring all the time into the darkness till your eyes ached, was trying, I can tell you, and, after all that, not to hit the brute was too bad. " The days passed quietly at Deennugghur. They were seldom alone at Major Hannay's bungalow in the evening, for Wilson and Richards generally came in to smoke a cigar in the veranda; the Doctor was a regular visitor when he was not away in pursuit of game, and Bathurst was also often one of the party. " Mr. Bathurst is coming out wonderfully. Miss Han- nay," Mrs. Hunter said one day, as Isobel sat working with her, while the two girls were practising duets on a piano in the next room ; " we used to call him the hermit, he was so difficult to get out of his cell. We were quite surprised when he accepted our invitation to dinner yesterday. " "I think Doctor Wade has stirred him up," Isobel said calmly; "he is a great favorite of the Doctor's." Mrs. Hunter smiled over her work. " Perhaps so, my dear; anyhow, I am glad he has come out, and I hope he won't retire into his shell again after you have all gone. " " I suppose it depends on his work, " Isobel said. " My experience of men is that they can always make time if they like, my dear. When a man says he is too busy to do this, that, or the other, you may always safely put it down that he doesn't want to do it. Of course, i^ is just the same thing with ourselves. You often hear women say they are too busy to attend to all sorts of things that they ought to attend to, but the same woman can Hnd plenty of time to go to every pleasure gathering that comes off. There is no doubt that Mr. Bathuut is really fond of work, and that he is -f IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 123 "S. an indefatigable civil servant of the company, but that would not prevent him making an hour or two's time of an evening occasionally if he wanted to; however, he seems to have turned over a new leaf, and I hope it will last. In a small station like this, even one man is of importance, especially when he is ks pleasant as Mr. Bathurst can be when he likes. He was in the army at one time, you know. " "Was he, Mrs. Hiinter?" " Yes. I never heard him say so himself, but I have heard so from several people. I think he was only in it for a year or so. I suppose he did not care for it, and can quite imagine he would not do, so he sold out and a short time afterward obtained a civil appoint ment. He has very good interest ; his father was Gen- eral Bathurst, who was, as you know, a very distin- guished officer. He had no difficulty in getting him into our service, where he is entirely in his element. His father died two years ago, and I believe he came into a good property at home. Every one expected he would have thrown up his appointment, but it made no difference to him, and he just went on as before, work- ing as if he had to depend entirely on the service. " "I can quite understand that," Isobel said; "to a really earnest man a life of usefulness here must be vastly preferable to living at home without anything to do or any object in life." " Well, perhaps so, my dear, and in theory that is no doubt the case, but practically I fancy you would find nineteen men out of twenty, even if they are what you call earnest men, retire from the ranks of hard workers if they come into a nice property. By the way, you must come in here this evening. There is a juggler in the station, and Mr. Hunter has told him to come round. The servants say the man is a very celebrated juggler, one of the best in India, and as the girls have never seen anything better than the ordinary itinerant conjurers, my husband has arranged for him to come in here, and we have been sending notes round asking every one to come in. We have sent one round to your place, but you must have come out before the chit arrived. " 124 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. f' f i !i "Oh, I should like that very much," Isobel said. " Two or three men came to our bungalow at Cawnpore and did some conjuring, but it was nothing particular, but uncle says some of them do wonderful things, things that he cannot account for at all. That was one of the things I read aboui at school, and thought I should like to see more than anything in India. When I was at school we went in a body, two or three times, to see conjurers when they came to Cheltenham ; of course I did not understand the things they did, and they seemed wonderful to me, but I know there are people who can explain them, and that they are only tricks; but I have read accounts of things done by jugglers in India that seemed impossible to explain; really a sort of magic." "I have heard a good many arguments about it," Mrs. Hunter said, " and a good many people, especially those who have seen most of them, are of opinion that many of the feats of the Indian jugglers cannot be ex- plained by any natural laws we know of. I have seen some very curious things myself, but the very fact that I did not understand how they were done was no proof they could not be explained; certainly two of their commonest tricks, the basket trick and the mango, have never been explained. Our conjurers at home can do something like them, but then that is on a stage where they can have trap-dcors and all sorts of things, while these are done anywhere — in a garden, on a road — where there could be no possible preparation, and with a crowd of lookers-on all round; it makes me quite uncomfortable to look at it." "Well, I must be off now, Mrs. Hunter; it is nearly time for uncle to be back, and he likes me to be in when he returns. " CHAPTER IX. Doctor Wade was sitting in the veranda, smoking and reading an English, paper that had arrived by that morning's mail, when Isobel returned. "Good-morning, Doctor; is uncle back?" IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. "5 « I I Not yet. He told me he might be half an hour late, and that I was to come round and amuse you until he came back." " So in my absence you have been amusing yourself, Doctor. I have been round at Mrs. Hunter's; she is going to have a juggler there this evenino-, and we are all to go." " Yes, I got a chit from her this morning. I have seen scores of them, but I make a point of never miss- ing an exhibition when I get the chance. I hate any- thing I don't understand, and I go with the faint hope of being able to find things out, though I know per- fectly well that I shall not do so." " Then you think it is not all quite natural. Doctor?" " I don't say it is not natural, because we don't know what all the natural laws are, but I say that some of the things I have seen certainly are not to be accounted for by anything we do know. It is not often that the jug- glers show their best tricks to the whites; they know that, as a rule, we are altogether sceptical, but I have seen at native courts more than once the most astound- ing things; things absolutely incomprehensible and in- explicable. I don't suppose we are going to see any- thing of that sort to-night, though Mrs. Hunter said in her note that they had heard from the native servant that this man was a famous one. " There is a sect of people in India — I don't mean a caste, but a sort of secret society — who, I believe, claim to be able by some sort of influence to suspend alto- gether the laws of nature. I do not say that I believe them; as a scientific man, it is my duty not to believe them, but I have seen such things done by some of the higher class of jugglers, and that under circumstances that did not seem to admit of the possibility of decep- tion, that I am obliged to suspend my judgment, which, as you may imagine, my dear, is exceedingly annoying to me; but some of them do possess to a considerable extent what the Scotch call second-sight, that is to say, the power of foreseeing certain events in the future. Of that I am morally certain, I have seen proofs of it over and over again. 126 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. h " For example, once an old fakir, whom I had cured of a badly ulcerated limb, came up just as I was start- ing on a shooting expedition. " 'Do not go out to-day,' he said. 'I foresee evil for you. I saw you last night brought back badly wounded. ' " 'But if I don't go your dream will come wrong,' I said. " He shook his head. "'You will go in spite of what I say,' he said, 'and you will suffer and others too, ' and he looked at a group of shikaris who were standing together, ready to make a start. " 'How many men are there?' he said. "*Why, six, of course,' I replied. "*I see only three,' he said, 'and three dull spots. One of those I see is holding his matchlock on his shoulder, another is examining his priming, the third is sitting down by the fire. Those three will come back at the end of the day, the other three will not return alive. ' "I felt rather uncomfortable, but I wasn't, as I said to myself — I was a good deal younger then, my dear — such a fool as to be deterred from what promised to be a good day's sport by such nonsense as this — and I went. " We were going after a rogue elephant that had been doing a lot of damage among the natives' plantations. We found him, and a savage brute he turned out to be. He moved just as I fired, and though I hit him it was not on the fatal spot, and he charged right down among us. He caught the very three men the fakir said were doomed, and dashed the life out of them ; then he came at me. The bearer had run off with my second gun, and he seized me and flung me up in the air. " I fell in a tree, but broke three of my ribs and one of my arms; fortunately, though the beast tried to get at . me, I was out of his reach, and the tree was too strong for him to knock down. Then another man who was with me came up and killed him, and they got me down and carried me back, and it was weeks before I was about again. That was something more than a IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 117 one get too man got kfore Ian a coincidence, I think. There were some twenty men out with us, and just the four he had pointed out were hurt and no others. "I hav3 seen scores of other cases in which these predictions have come true, especially in cases of disease ; though I grant that here the predictions often bring about their own fulfilment. If a native is told by a fakir or holy man that he is going to die he makes no struggle to live. In several cases I have seen natives whose deaths have been predicted die without, as far as my science could tell me, any disease or ail- ment whatever that should have been fatal to them. They simply sank — died, I should say, from pure fright. But putting aside this class, I have seen enough to con- vince me that some at least among these fanatics do possess the power of second-sight. " "That is very extraordinary. Doctor; of course, I have heard of second-sight among certain old people in Scotland, but I did not believe in it." " I should not have believed in it if I had not seen the same thing here in India. I naturally have been interested in it and have read pretty well everything that has been written about second-sight among the Highlanders, and some of the incidents are so well au- thenticated that I scarcely see how they can be denied. Of course, there is no accounting for it, but it is possi- ble that among what we may call primitive people there are certain intuitions or instincts, call them what you like, that have been lost by civilized people. " The power of scent in a dog is something so vastly beyond anything we can even imagine possible, that though we put it down to instinct it is really almost inexplicable. Take the case that dogs have been known to be taken by railway journeys of many hundred miles and to have found their way home again on foot. There is clearly the possession of a power which is to us absolutely unaccountable. "But here comes your uncle; he will think I have been preaching a sermon to you if you look so p^rave." But Major Hannay was too occupied with nis ow;^ thoughts to notice Isobel. 138 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. " Has anything gone wrong, Major?" the Doctor asked as he saw his face. "I have just learned," the Major said, "that some more chupaties were brought last night. It is most annoying. I have questioned several of the native of- ficers and they profess to have no idea whence they came or what is the meaning of them. I wish we could get to the bottom of this thing — it keeps the troops in a ferment. If I could get hold of one of these messengers I would get out of him all he knew, even if I had to roast him to make him tell." "My dear uncle," Isobel said reprovingly, "I am sure )^ou don't mean what you say." " I don 't know, " he said, half laughing ; " I should cer- tainly consider myself perfectly justified in taking un- commonly strong steps to try to get to the bottom of this business. The thing is going on all over India and it must mean something, and it is all the worse if taken in connection with this absurd idea about the greased cartridges. I grant that it was an act of folly greasing tl'i-m at all, when we know the idiotic prejudices the natives have ; still it could hardly have been foreseen that this stir would have been made. The issue of the cartridges has been stopped, but when the natives once get an idea into their minds it is next to impossible to disabuse them of it. It is a tiresome business alto- gether." "Tiffin ready, sahib," Rumzan interrupted, coming out on to the veranda. " That is right, Rumzan. Now, Isobel, let us think of more pleasant subjects. " " We are to go in to the Hunters this evening, uncle," Isobel said, as she sat down. " There is going to be a famous juggler there. There is a note for you from Mrs. Hi-nter on the mantel." "Very well, my dear; some of these fellows are well worth seeing. Bathurst is coming in to dinner. I saw him as he was starting this morning, just as he was going down to the lines, and he accepted. He said he should be able to get back in time. However, I don't suppose he will mind going round with us. I hope you ! f IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 139 am . ;■ 'I If will come, Doctor, to make up the table. I have asked the two boys to come in." " I shall have to become a permanent boarder at your establishment. Major. It is really useless my keeping a cook when I am in here nearly half my time. But I will come. I am off for three days to-morrow. A villager came in this morning to beg me to go out to rid them of a tiger that has established himself in their neigh- borhood, and that is an 'invitation that I never refuse if I can possibly manage to make time for it. Fortu- nately every one is so healthy here at present, that I can be very well spared." At dinner the subject of juggling came up again, and the two subalterns expressed their opinion strongly that it was all humbug. " Doctor Wade believes in it, Mr. Wilson, " Isobel said. "You don't say so, Doctor; I should have thought you were the last sort of man who would have believed in conjurors." "It requires a wise man to believe, Wilson," the Doctor said ; " any fool can scoff, the wise man ques- tions. When you have been here as long as I have, and if you ever get as much sense as I have, which is doubtful, you may be less positive in your ideas, if you can call them ideas. " "That is one for me," Wilson said good-humoredly, while the others laughed. " Well, I have never seen them, Doctor, except those fellows who come round to the veranda, and I have seen conjurors at home do ever so much better tricks than they do." " What do you think of them, Mr. Bathurst?" Isobel asked. " I suppose you have seen some of the better sort?" " I do not know what to think of them, Miss Hannay. I used to be rather of Wilson's opinion, but I have seen things since that I could not account for at all. There was a man here two or three months back who astounded me." " Mrs. Hunter said that the girls had had no oppor- tunity of seeing a good conjuror since they came out, '^ ai <': I If f 1 1^ II 130 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. Mr. Bathurst. I suppose they did not know this man you are speaking of bein^ here?" " He was only here for a few hours, Miss Hannay. I had happened to meet him before, and he gave me a private performance, which was quite different to any- thing I have ever seen, though I had often heard of the feats he had performed. I was so impressed with them that I can assure you that for a few days I had great difficulty in keeping my mind upon my work. " "What did he do, Mr. Bathurst?" Bathurst related the feat of the disappearing girl. " She must have jumped down when you were not looking," Richards said, with an air of conviction. " Possibly," Bathurst replied quietly. " But as I was within three or four yards of the pole, and it was per- fectly distinct in the light of my lamp, and as I cer- tainly saw her till she was some thirty or forty feet up in the air, I don't see how she can have managed it. For even supposing she could have sprung down that distance without being hurt, she would not have come down so noiselessly that I should not have heard her." " Still, if she did not come down that way how could she have come?" Wilson said. " That is exactly what I can c make out, " Bathurst replied. " If it should happen to be the same man and he will do the same thing again I fancy you will be as much puzzled as I was." After dinner was over the party walked across to Mr. Hunter's bungalow, where in a short time the other officers, their wives, and all the other residents at the station were assembled. Chairs were placed in the veranda for the ladies and a number of lamps hung on the wall, so that a strong light was thrown upon the ground in front of it; in addition, four posts had been driven into the ground some twenty feet from the veranda, and lamps had been fastened upon them. "I don't know whether the juggler will like that," Mr. Hunter said, " and I shan't light them if he ola- jects. I don't think myself it is quite fair having a light behind him ; still, if he agrees, it will be hardly IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 131 ng on the been the :hat," e ob- |ing a ardly I possible for him to make the slightest movement with- out being seen." The juggler, who was sitting round at the other side of the house, was now called up. He and the girl who followed him salaamed deeply, and made an even deeper bow to Bathurst, who was standing behind Isobel's chair. , •' You must have paid them well, Bathurst," Major Hannay said. "They have evidently a lively remem« brance of past favors. I suppose they are the same you were talking about?" "Yes, they are the same people, Major." Then ho said in the native dialect to the juggler: "Mr. Hunter has put some posts with lamps behind you, Rujub, but he hasn't lit them because he did not know whether you would object." " They can be ligh^^ed, sahib. My feats do not de- pend on darkness. Any of the sahibs who like to stand behind us can do so if they do not come within the line of those posts." " Let us go out there," Wilson said to Richards when the answer was translated ; " we will light the lamps ; and we shall see better there than we shall here." The two went round to the other side and lit the lamps, and the servants stood a short distance off on either side. The first trick shown was the well-known mango tree. The juggler placed a seed in the ground, poured some water upon it from a lota, and covered it with a cloth. In two or three minutes he lifted this, and a plant four or five inches high was seen. He covered this with a tall basket, which he first handed round for inspection. On removing this a mango tree some three feet high, in full bloom, was seen. It wps again covered, and when the basket was removed it was seen to be covered with ripe fruit, eliciting exclamations of astonishment from those among the spectators who had not before seen the trick performed. "Now, Wilson," the Doctor said, "perhaps you will be kind enough to explain to us all how this was done?" "I have no more idea than Adam, Doctor." I3« IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. i -l li if. "Then we will leave it to Richards. He promised U3 at dinner to keep his eyes well open. " Richards made no reply. ' How was it done, Mr. Bathurst? It seems almost like a miracle. " " I am as ignorant as Wilson is, Miss Hannay. I can't account for it in any way, and I have seen it done a score of times. Ah ! now he is going to do the basket trick. Don't be alarmed when you hear the girl cry out. You may be quite sure that she is not hurt. The father is deeply attached to her, and would not hurt a hair of her head." Again the usual methods were adopted. The basket was placed on the ground and the girl stepped into it, without the pretence of fear usually exhibited by the performers. Before the trick began, Major Hannay said to Cap- tain Doolan : " Come round with me to the side of those boys. I know the first time I saw it done I was nearly throwing myself on the juggler, and Wilson is a hot- headed boy, and is likely as not to do so. If he did the man would probably go oif in a huff and show us noth- ing more. From what Bathurst said we are likely to see something unusual." As soon as the lid was put down, an apparently angry colloquy took place between the juggler and the girl inside. Presently the man appeared to become enraged, and snatching up a long, straight sword from the ground ran it three or four times through the basket. A loud shriek followed the first thrust, and then all was silent. Some of the ladies rose to their feet with a cry of horror, Isobel among them. Wilson and Richards both started to rush forward, but were seizfed by the collars by the Major and Captain Doolan. "Will you open the basket?" the juggler said quietly to Mrs. Hunter. As she had seen the trick before she stepped forward without hesitation, opened the lid of the basket, and said, " It is empty." The juggler took it and held it up, bottom upward. I 4 a IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 133 I ■ 4 "What on earth has become of the girl?" Wilson ex- claimed. As he spoke she passed between him and Richards back to her father's side. "Well, I am dashed!" Wilson murmured. "I would not have believed it if fifty people had sworn to me they had seen it. " He was too much confounded even to reply when the Doctor sarcastically said : " We are waiting for your explanation, gentlemen. " "Will you ask him, Major," Richards said, as he wiped his forehead with his pocket-handkerchief, " to make sure that she is solid?" The Major translated the request, and the girl at once came across, and Richards touched her with evi- dent doubt as to whether she was really flesh and blood. There was much curiosity among those who had seen jugglers before as to what would be the next feat, for generally those just seen were the closing ones of a performance, but as these were the first it seemed that those to follow must be extraordinary indeed. The next feat was the one shown to Bathurst, and was performed exactly as upon that occasion except that as the girl rose beyond the circle of light she remained distinctly visible, a sort of phosphoric light playing around her. Those in the veranda had come out now, the juggler warning them not to approach within six feet of the pole. Higher and higher the girl went until those below judged her to be at least a hundred and fifty feet from the ground. Then the light died out and she disap- peared from their sight. There was silence for a min- ute or two, and then the end of the pole could be seen descending without her. Another minute and it was reduced to the length it had been at starting. The spectators were silent now ; the whole thing was so strange and mysterious that they had no words to express their feeling*. The juggler said something which Mr. Hunter trans- lated to be a request for all to resume their places. "That is a wonderful trick," the Doctor said to Bath- 134 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. " n I m;s ' urst. " I have never seen it done that way before, but I once saw a juggler throw up a rope into the air — how high it went I don't know, for, like this, it was done at night — but it stood up perfectly stiff and the juggler's attendant climbed up. He went higher and higher and we could hear his voice coming down to us. At last it stopped, and then suddenly the rope fell in coils on the ground and the boy walked quietly in just as that girl has done now. " The girl now placed herself in the centre of the open space. "You will please not to speak while this trick is being performed," the juggler said : " harm might come of it. Watch the ground near her feet. " A minute later a dark object made its appearance from the ground. It rose higher and higher with an undulating movement. " By Jove ! it is a python, " the Doctor whispered in Bathurst's ear. A similar exclamation broke from sev- eral of the others, but the juggler waved his hand with an authoritative hush. The snake rose until its head towered above that of the girl, and then began to twine itself round her, continuously rising from the ground until it enveloped her with five coils each thicker than a man's arm. It raised its head above hers and hissed loudly and angrily; then its tail began to descend, gradually the coils unwound themselves — lower and lower it descended until it disappeared altogether. It was some time before any one spoke, so great was the feeling of wonder. The Doctor was the first to break the silence. "I have never seen that before," he said, "though I have heard of it from a native Rajah." " Would the sahibs like to see more?" the juggler asked. The two Miss Hunters, Mrs. Rintoul, and several of the others said "they had seen enough," but among the men there was a general wish to see another feat. "I would not have missed this for anything," the Doctor said. " It would be simple madness to throw away such a chance." The ladies therefore, with the I IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 135 *. the juggler now going exception of Mrs. Hunter, Mrs. Doolan, and Isobel, retired into the house. "You must all go on one side now/ said, " for it is only on one side what I am to do can be seen. " He then proceeded to light a fire of charcoal. When he had done this, he said : " The lights must now be extinguished and the curtains drawn, so that the light will not stream out from the house. " As soon as this was done he poured a powder- over the fire, and by its faint light the cloud of white smoke could be seen. "Now I will show you the past," he said; "who speaks?'* There was silence, and then Doctor Wade said, " Show me my past. " A faint light stole up over the smoke, it grew brighter and brighter, and then a picture was clearly seen upon it. It was the sea, a house standing by itself in a garden and separated from the water only by a road. Presently the figure of a girl appeared at the gate, and slipping out looked down the road as if waiting for some one. They could make out all the details of her dress and see her features distinctly. A low exclamation broke from the Doctor, then the picture gradually faded away. "The future," the juggler said, and gradually an Indian scene appeared on the smoke. It was a long, straight road, bordered by a jungle. A native was seen approaching; he paused in the foreground. " That is you. Doctor, " Mr. Hunte/ exclaimed ; " you are got up as a native, but it's you. " Almost at the same moment two figures came out from the jungle ; they were also in native dress, "You and Miss Hannay," the Doctor said in a low tone to Bathurst, "dressed like natives and dyed." But no one else detected the disguises, and the picture again faded away. "That is enough, Rujub," Bathurst said, for he felt Isobel lean back heavily against the hand which he held at the back of her chair, and felt sure that she had fainted. 13^ IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. ^ " Draw back the curtains, some one ; I fancy this hag been too much for Miss Hannay." The curtains w^re thrown back, and Mrs. Hunter, running in, brought out a lamp. The Doctor had al- ready taken his place by Isobel's side. " Yes, she has fainted," he said to Bathurst. " Carry her in her chair as she is, so that she may be in the room when she comes to." This was done. "Now, gentlemen," the Doctor said, "you had better light the lamps again out here, and leave the ladies and ine to get Miss Hannay round." When the lamps were lit it could be seen that the whole of the men were a good deal shaken by what they had seen. " "Well," Mr. Hunter said, "they told me he was a famous juggler, but that beat anything I have seen before. I have heard of such things frequently from natives, but it is very seldom that Europeans get a chance of seeing them." "I don't want to see anything of the sort again," Major Hannay said, " it shakes one's notions of things in general. I fancy. Hunter, that we shall want a strong peg all round to steady our nerves. I own that I feel as shaky as a boy who thinks he sees a ghost on his way iLrough a churchyard." There was a general murmur of agreement, and the materials were quickly brought. " Well, Wilson, what do you and Richards think of it?" the Major went on after he had braced himself up with a strong glass of brandy and water. " I should imagine you both feel a little less sceptical than you did two hours ago." " I don't know what Richards feels, Major, but I know I feel like a fool. I am sorry, Bathurst, for what I said at dinner, but it really didn't seem to me to be possible what you told us about the girl going up into the air, and not coming down again. Well, after I have seen what I have seen this evening I won't dis- believe anything I hear in future about these natives." " It was natural enough that you should be incredu- lous," Bathurst said. " I should have been just as in- IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. »37 credulous as you were when I first came out, and I have been astonished now, though I have seen some good jugglers before. " At this moment the Doctor came out again. " Miss Hannay is all right again now, Major. I am not surprised at her fainting ; old hand as I am at these matters, and I think that I have seen as much or more juggling han any man in India, I felt very queer my- self, specially at the snake business. As I £,aid, I have seen that ascension trick before, but how it is done I have no more idea than a child. Those smoke scenes, too, are astonishing. Of course they could be accounted for as thrown upon a column of white smoke by a magic lantern, but there was certainly no magic lantern here ; the juggler was standing close to me, and the girl was sitting at his feet. I watched them both closely, and T^.rtainly they had no apparatus about them by which such views could be thrown on the smoke." " You recognized the first scene, I suppose, Doctor?" Bathurst asked. " Perfectly. It took me back twenty-five years. It was a cottage near Sidmouth, and was correct in every minute detail. The figure was that of the young lady I married four years afterward. Many a time have I seen her standing just like that as I went along the road to meet her from the little inn at which I was stopping ; the very pattern of her dress, which I need hardly say has never been in my mind all these years, v/as recalled to me. " Had I been thinking of the scene at the time I could have accounted for it somehow, upon the theory that in some way or other the juggler was conscious of my thought and reflected it upon the smoke — how, I don't at all mean to say; but, undoubtedly, there exists to some extent the power of thought-reading. It is a mysterious subject, and one of which we know abso- lutely nothing at present, but maybe in upward of a hundred years mankind may have discovered many secrets of nature in that direction. " But I certainly was not thinking of that scene when I spoke and said *the past.' I had no doubt that he I> ' I H m 1 «38 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. would show me something of the past, but 'certainly no particular incident passed through my mind before that picture appeared on the smoke." "The other was almost as curious, Doctor," Captain Doolan said, "for it was certainly you masquerading as a native. I believe the other was Bathurst ; it struck me so; and he seemed to be running off with some native girl. What on earth could that all mean?" " It is no use puzzling ourselves about it," the Doctor said. " It may or may not come true. I have no in- clination to go about dressed out as a native at present, but there is no saying what I may come to. There is quite enough for us to wonder at in the other things. The mango and basket tricks I have seen a dozen times, and am no nearer now than I was at first to un- derstanding them. That ascension trick beats me alto- gether, and there was something horrible rncanny about the snake. " " Do you think it was a real snake. Doctor?" "That I cannot tell you, Richards. Every move- ment was perfectly natural. I could see the working of the ribs as it wound itself round the girl and the quivering of its tongue as it raised its head above her. At any other time I should be ready to take my affidavit that it was a python of an unusual size, but at the pres- ent moment I should not like to give a decided opinion about anything connected with the performance. " " I suppose it is no use asking the juggler any ques- tions. Hunter?" one of the other men said. " Not in the least ; they never do answer questions. The higher class of jugglers treat their art as a sort of religious mystery, and there is no instance known of their opening their lips, although large sums have frequently been offered them. In the present case you will certainly ask no questions, for the man and girl have both disappeared with the box and apparatus, and everything connected with them. They must have slipped off directly the last trick was over, and before we had the lamp lighted. I sent after him at once, but the servant could find no signs of him. I am annoyed because I have not paid them. " i I r i • * ques- t i IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 139 " It is them. "I am not surprised at that," Dr. Wade said, quite in accordance with what I have heard of They live by exhibiting what you may call their ordi- nary tricks; but I have heard from natives that when they show any what I may call supernatural feats they do not take money. It is done to oblige some power- ful Rajah, and, as I have said, it is only on a very few occasions that Europeans have ever seen them. Well, we may as well go in to the ladies. I don't fancy any of them would be inclined to come out on to the veranda again this evening." No one was indeed inclined even for talk, and in a very short time the party broke up and returned home. " Come and smoke a pipe with me, Bathurst, before you turn in," the doctor said, as they went out. "I don't think either of us will be likely to go to sleep for some time. What is your impression of all this?" " My impression, certainly, is that it is entirely un- accountable by any laws with which we are acquainted, Doctor." " That is just my idea, and always has been since I first saw any really good juggling out here. I don't believe in the least in anything supernatural, but I can quite believe that there are many natural laws of which at present we are entirely ignorant. I believe the knowledge of them at one time existed, but has been entirely lost, at any rate among Western peoples. The belief in magic is as old as anything we have knowl- edge of. The magicians at the court of Pharaoh threw down thei' rods, and turned them into serpents. The Witch of Endor called up the spirit of Samuel. The Greeks, by no means a nation of fools, believed implic- itly in the oracles. Coming down to comparatively later times the workers of magic burnt their books be- fore St. Paul. It doesn't say, mind you, that those who pretended to work magic did so ; but those who worked magic. " Early travellers in Persia and India have reported things they saw far surpassing any we have witnessed this evening, and there is certainly a sect in India at present, or rather a body of men, and those, as far as I 140 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. {;: i -i}- have been able to learn, of an exceptionally intelligent class, who believe that they possess an almost absolute mastery over the powers of nature. You see, fift^ years back if any one had talked about travelling at fifty miles an hour, or sending a message five thousand miles in a minute, he would have been regarded as a madman. There may yet be other discoveries as start- ling to be made. " When I was in England, I heard something of a set of people in America who called themselves Spirit- ualists, some of whom — notably a young man named Home — claimed to have the power of raising them- selves through the air. I am far from saying that such a power exists ; it is of course contrary to what we know of the laws of nature, but should such a power exist, it would account for the disappearance of the girl from the top of the pole. Highland second-sight, carried somewhat farther and united with the power of con- veying the impressions to others, would account for the pictures on the smoke, that is supposing them to be true, and personally I own that I expect they will prove to be true — unlikely as it may seem that you, I, and Miss Hannay will ever be going about in native attire." By this time they had reached the Doctor's bungalow and had comfortably seated themselves. " There is one thing that flashed across me this even- ing," Bathurst said. "I told you that first evening I met Miss Hannay that I had a distinct knowledge of her face. You laughed at me at the time, and it cer- tainly seemed absurd, but I was convinced I was not wrong. Now I know how it was; I told you at dinner to-day about the feat of the girl going up and not com- ing down again ; but I did not tell you — for you can understand it is a thing that I should not care to talk much about — that he showed me a picture like those we saw to-night. " It was a house standing in a courtyard, with a high wall round it. I did not particularly observe the house. It was of the ordinary native type, and might, for any- thing I know, be the house used as a court ]?y Hunter, IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 141 elligent ibsolute ;e, fift^ lling at lousand ed as a IS start- of a set Spirit- named f them- lat such le know exist, it rl from carried of con- >unt for m to be ey will you, I, native ngalow is even- ening I 2dge of it cer- ivas not dinner ot com- >rou can to talk e those a high J house, "or any- iunter, and for keeping stores, and so on, in the middle of this station. I don't say it was that; I did not notice it much. There was a breach in the outside wall, and round it there was a fierce fight going on. A party of officers and civilians were repelling the assault of a body of Sepoys. On the terraced roof of the house others were standing firing and looking on, and I think engaged in loading rifles were two or three women. One of them I particularly ciced, and now I recall it, her face was that of Mi^^ Hannay ; of that I am abso- lutely certain. " "It is curious, lad," the Doctor said, after a pause; " and the picture you see has so far come true, that you have made the acquaintance with one of the actors whom you did not previously know." " I did not believe in the truth of it, Doctor, and I do not believe in it now. There was one feature in the fight which was, as I regret to know, impossible." "And what was that, Bathurst?" Bathurst was silent for a time. "You are an old friend, Doctor, antfyou will under- stand my case and make more allowances for it than most people would. When I first came out here I dare say you heard some sort of reports as to why I had left the army and had afterward entered the Civil Service." "There were some stupid rumors," the Doctor said, " that you had gone home on sick leave just after the battle of Chillianwalla and had then sold out, because you had shown the white feather. I need not say that I did not give any credit to it — there is always gossip flying about as to the reasons a man leaves the aimy." " It was quite true, Doctor. It is a hideous thing to say, but constitutionally I am a coward." "I cannot believe it," the Doctor said warmly. " Now that I knowyou, you are the last man of whom I would credit such a thing." " It is the bane of my life," Bathurst went on. " It is my misfortune, for I will not allow it is my fault. In many things I am not a coward. I think I could face any danger if the danger were a silent one, but I cannot stand noise. The report of a gun makes n^e i a n 142 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. tremble all over, even when it is a blank cartridge that is fired. When I was born, my father was in India. A short time before I came into the world, my mother had a great fright. Her house in the country was broken into by burglars, who entered the room and threatened to blow out her brains if she moved; but the alarm was given, the men servants came down armed, there was a struggle in her room, pistol shots were fired, and the burglars were overpowered and captured. My mother fainted, and was ill for weeks afterward, in fact until the time I was born, and she died a few days later, never having, the doctor said, recovered from the shock she had suffered that night. " I grew up a v/eakly, timid boy, the sort of boy that is always bullied at school. My father, as you know, was a general officer, and did not return home until I was ten years old. He was naturally much disap- pointed in me, and I think that added to my timidity, for it grew upon me rather than otherwise. Morally, I was not a coward. At school I can say that I never told a lie to avoid punishment, and my readiness to speak the truth did not add to my popularity among the other boys, and I used to be called a sneak, which was even more hateful than being called a coward. " As I grew up I shook off my delicacy, and grew, as you see, into a strong man. I then fought several bat- tles at school ; I learned to ride, and came to have con- fidence in myself, and though I had no particular fancy for the army, my father's heart was so set on it that I offered no objections. That the sound of a gun was abhorrent to me I knew, for the first time my father put a gun in my hand and I fired it, I fainted, and nothing would persuade me to try again. Still I thought that this was the result of nervousness as to firing it myself, and that I should get over it in time. " A month or two after I was gazetted, I went out to India with the regiment, and arrived just in time to get up by forced marches to take part in the battle of Chillianwalla. The consequence was that up to that time I literally had heard no musketry practice. " Of the events of that battle I have no remembrance f IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 143 whatever ; from the moment the first gun was fired to the end of the day, I was as one paralyzed. I saw nothinjj, I heard nothing, I moved mechanically, but happily my will or my instinct kept me in my place in the regiment. When all was over, and silence followed the din, I fell to the ground insensible. Happily for rm the doctors declared I was in a state of high fever, and so I remained for a fortnight. As soon as I got better I was sent down the country, and I at once sent in my papers, and went home. No doubt the affair was talked of, and there were whispers as to the real cause of my illness. My father was terribly angry, when I returned home and told him the truth of the matter. That his son should be a coward was naturally an awful blow to him. Home was too unhappy to be endured, and when an uncle of mine, who was a direc- tor on the Company's board, offered me a berth in the Civil Service, I thankfully accepted it, believing that in that capacity I need never hear a gun fired again. " You will understand then the anxiety I am feeling owing to these rumors of disaffection among the Sepoys, and the possibility of anything like a general mutiny. " It is not of being killed that I have any fear; upon the contrary, I have suffered so much in the last eight years from the consciousness that the reason why I left the army was widely known, that I should welcome death if it came to me noiselessly, but the thought that if there is trouble I shall assuredly not be able to play my part like a man fills me with absolute horror, and now more than ever. " So you will understand now why the picture I saw, in which I was fighting in the middle of the Sepoys, is to me not only improbable, but simply impossible. It is a horrible story to have to tell. This is the first time I have opened my lips on the subject since I spoke to my father, but I know that you, both as a friend and a doctor, will pity rather than blame me. " I 144 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. CHAPTER X. As Bathurst brought his story to its conclusion the Doctor rose and placed his hand kindly on his shoulder. " I certainly should not think of blaming you, Bath- urst. What you tell me is indeed a terrible misfor- tune situated as we may be soon, though I trust and believe that all this talk about the Sepoys is moon- shine. I own that I am surprised at your story, for I should have said from my knowledge of you that though, as I could perceive, of a nervous temperament, you were likely to be cool and collected in danger. But cer- tainly your failing is no fault of your own." " That is but a small consolation to me, Doctor. Men do not ask why and wherefore, they simply point the hnger of scorn at a coward. The misfortune is that I am here. I might have lived a hundred lives in Eng- land and never once had occasion to face danger, and I thought that I should have been equally secure as an Indian civilian. Now this trouble is coming upon us." "Why don't you take your leave, lad? You have been out seven years now without a day's relaxation, except, indeed, the three days you were over with me at Cawnpore. Why not apply for a year's leave? You have a good excuse too; you did not go home at the death of your father two years ago, and could very well plead urgent family affairs requiring your presence in England." " No, I will not do that, Doctor ; I will not run away from danger again. You understand me, I have not the least fear of the danger; I in no way hold to my life ; I do not think I am afraid of physical pain. It seems to me that I could undertake any desperate service. I dread it simply because I know that when the din of battle begins my body will overmaster my mind, and that I shall be as I was at Chillianwalla, completely paralyzed. You wondered to-night why that juggler should have exhibited feats seldom, almost never, shown to Europeans? He did it to please me. I saved his daughter's life — this is between ourselves, Doctor, and f j I f IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. M5 1 T Is not to go farther. But, riding in from Narkeet, I heard a cry, and, riding on, came upon that man-cater you shot the other day standing over the girl, with her father half beside himself gesticulating in front of him I jumped off and attacked the brute with my heavy hunting-whip, and he was so completely astonished that he turned tail and bolted." " The deuce he did !" the Doctor exclaimed ; " and yet you talk of being a coward!" "No, I do not say that I am a coward generally; as long as I have to confront danger without noise I be- lieve I could do as well as most men." " But why didn't you mention this business with the tiger, Bathurst?" '* Because, in the first place, it was the work of a mere passing impulse ; and in the second, because I should have gained credit for being what I am not — a brave man. It will be bad enough when the truth be- comes known, but it would be all the worse if I had been trading on a false reputation ; therefore I particu- larly charged Rujub to say nothing about the affair to any one. " . " Well, putting this for a time aside, Bathurst, what do you think of that curious scene, you and I and Miss Hannay disguised as natives?" " Taking it with the one I saw of the attack of Sepoys upon a house, it looks to me. Doctor, as if there would be a mutiny, and that that mutiny would be attended with partial success, and that a portion of the garrison, at any rate, will escape, and that Miss Hannay will be travelling down the country, perhaps to Cawnpore, in your charge, and that I in some way shall be with you, perhaps acting as guide." "It may possibly be that," the Doctor agreed. "It is at any rate very curious. I wonder whether Miss Hannay recognized herself in the disguise. " " I should hope not, Doctor. If it all comes true there will be enough for her to bear without looking forward to that. I should be glad if the detachment were or- dered back to Cawnpore." "Well, I should not have thought that, Bathurst." lO 146 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. ii il; w '■ i m " I know what you mean, Doctor, but it is for that reason I wish they were j»:one. I believe now that you insisted on my coming down to spend those three days with you atCawnpore specially that I might meet her." "That is so, Bathurst. I like her so much that I should be very sorry to see her throw herself away upon some empty-headed fool. I like her greatly, and I was convinced that you were just the man to make her happy, and as I knew that you had good prospects in England, I thought it would be a capital match for her, althougi ' you arc but a young civilian, and I own that of late i have thought things were going on very well." " Perhaps it might have been so. Doctor, had it not been for this coming trouble, which, if our fea^jp are realized, will entirely put an end even to the possibility of what you are talking about. I shall be shown to be a coward, and I shall do my best to put myself in the way of being killed. I should not like to blow my brains out, but if the worst comes to the worst, I will do that rather than go on living after I have again dis- graced myself. " "You look at it too seriously, Bathurst." " Not a bit of it, Doctor, and you know it. " " But if the vSepo)'s rise, Bathurst, why should they harm their officers? They may be discontented, they may have a grievance against the government, they may refuse to obey orders and many disband, but why on earth should they attack men who have always been kind to them, whom they have followed in battle, and against whom they have not as much as a shadow of complaint?" " I hope it may be so most sincerely," Bathurst said; " but one never can say. I can hardly bring myself to believe that they will attack the officers, much less in- jure women and children. Still, I have a most uneasy foreboding of evil." " You have heard nothing from the natives as to any coming trouble?" " Nothing at all, Doctor, and I am convinced that nothing is known among them, or at any rate by the i Vf ' IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. M7 •r that at you e days ther." that I fT upon i I was Ke her icts in or her, n that 1 very it not 11^ are jibility ti to be in the 5W my I I will in dis- they ented, t, they why been e, and ow of said; elf to ess in- ineasy to any 1 that y the i I great bulk of them. Only one person has ever said a word to me that could indicate a knowledge of coming trouble, and that was this juggler we saw to-night. I thought nothing of his words at the time. That picture he showed me of the attack by Sepoys first gave me an idea that his words might mean something. vSince then we have heard much more of this discontent, and I am convinced now that the words had a meaning; they were simple enough. It was merely his assurance, two or three times repeated, that he would be ready to repay the service I had rendered him with his life. It might have been a mere phrase, and so I thought at the time. But I think now he had before him the pos- sibility of some event occurring in which he might be able to repay the service I had rendered him." "There may have been something in it and there may not," the Doctor said, "but, at any rate, Bathurst, he ought to be a potent ally. There doesn't seem any limit to his powers, and he might, for aught one knows, be able to convey you away as he did his daughter." The Doctor spoke lightly and then added : " But seri- ously, the man might be of service. These jugglers go among people of all classes. They are like the trouba- dours of the Middle Ages, welcomed everywhere ; and they no doubt have every opportunity of learning what is going on, and it may be that he will be able to give you timely warning should there be any trouble at hand." " Tl. at is possible enough, " Bathurst agreed. " Well, Doctoi, I shall be on horseback at six, so it is time for me to turn in," and, taking his hat, he walked across to his own bungalow. The Doctor sat for some time smoking before he turned into bed. He had, as he had said, heard rumors when Bathurst first came out that he had shown the white feather, but he had paid little attention to it at the time. They had been together at the first station to which Bathurst was appointed when he came out, and he had come to like him greatly, but his evident disin- clination to join in any society, his absorption in his work, and a certan air of gravity unnatural in a young I4H IN TIIK HAVM nl' IIIK MUTINY. i nwm of twenty, luul puy./.ltul liiiu. Ho had at tlio timo ooiuo to ttio i'onohision tliat luinuist liavo had smno iiii- fortimatr lovo alVair, or havo j^ot into some very srrlotiM troubli' at Uoino. In tinio titat iniprossion had worn oil. A ViMin]^ man ,s|KH'ililv ii'covors Iroin a l)iow, howevoi* heavy, but no ehanj;e )uul taken plaee in liathmst, and tlie Ihutor had in time hevoine s«) aeeustomed to his manner that hv> had eeastul to wonder over it. Now it wasall eNplained. lie sat think in>» over it ileeply for an lutur, auvl then laid down his pipe. '• It is a terrible pity he eame (»nl here," he said; **<»f eonrso it is not Ins fault in the sli>;htest de>;ree. One mi^iht as well blame a man for beinj; borna hunehb.-iek ; bill if there shouUl be a row out here it will be terrible iov him. I ean (piite understaiul his feeliuj;' aiuMtt, it. If I wiMe plaeed a?* he is, and weri> ealled upon toli)^ht, I sh\Mild take a tK>.se o( pru.ssie aeid at (>nee. Men talk nlHuit tlieir eiviH.-ati<»n, but we are little better than savai^es in our instinets. C'ourajiv is an almost u.seless virtue in a eivili/.ed eommnnity, but if it. is ealled lor wi^ viespise a man ii\ whom it is wautiuj; just as heartily as vHir tattooed .ineestors did. Of course, in him it is a pnivlv eoi\siitutional failitij^, and I have no doubt he wouKI be as brave .'S a livui in .-my other eireumstancos; in tael, the ineivlont o\' his attaekiuj; the lij;er with that dv\^-whip of his shows that he is so; and yet. if lie should fail when the lives o\' wvmien are at stake, it woidvl Ih" a kindness to yjive him th.it dose o( pru.ssic jieid, especially as Isobel llannay will be here. That is the hardest part i^f it to him, I can see." Three ilays later the t\>rce o( l)ecnnu^i;hnr was in- creased by the arrival o( a tnu^p of native cavalry, un- der a Captain Korster, who had just returned from leave in Knjiland. " Oo you know Captain Forster, OiKlor?" Lsobel llannay asked t>n the afternoon of his arrival. '* Uncle tells me he is comiuj; tv^ dinner." " Then yvni must Kn^k after your heart, my dear. He is one of the best-lookinji" fellows out here, a dadiing" soldier, and a devoted servant of the fair sex." "You don't like him, Doctor." Isobel said quietly. 1 OS; hat he in- un- fave lolc He IN TirK DAYS OF TIIR MfJTINV. M9 -fnr from it. Doctor. I think I Why in " I have not HJiid ho, my dcnr- Haid u ^ood deal lor liim." " YcH, btit you don't like him, that?" •• I HiippoMc luicatiso he iH not my Hort of man," the Doctor .said. '* I liavo not seen 1dm since his rej;iment and t)nrs were at Delhi toj.i:other, and we did not see much of e/ich other then. Our ta.stes did not lie in the same directicm." "Well, 1 know what your ta.stes are, Doctor; what are his?" "I will leave you to find out, my dear. lie is all I told you — a very handsome man, with, as is perhaps natural, a very ^ood opinion of him.self, and he di.stin- jjjuished himself more than once in the Punjaub by acts of personal j^allantry. I have no (loid)t he thinks it an awful nuisance comin^if to a (pnet little station like thi.s, and he will probably try to while away his time by making- him.self very aj^n'eeable to you. Jiut I don't think you need (juite believe all that he says." " I have lonj»; a^^o j^ot over the weakness of believing people's (lattery, I )octor. However, now you have fore- warned me I am forearmed." The Doctor hesitateii, and then .said j^ravely: '* It is not my habit to speak ill of people, my dear. You do me the justice to believe that?" " I am sure it is not. Doctor." "Well, child, in a station like this you must see a jyood deal of this man. He is a man who has won many hearts, and thrown them away. Don't let him win yours. He is not a jjood man ; he has been mixed up in several grave scandals; he has been the ruin of more than one young man at cards and billiards; he is in all respects a dangerous man. Anatomically I sup- pose he has a heart, morally he has not a vestige of one. Whatever you do, child, don't let him make you like him." " I don't think there is much fear of that, Doctor, after what you have said, " she replied with a quiet smile, "and I am obliged to you indeed for warning me." "I know I am an old fool for meddling, but you »So IN TH£ DAYS OP THE MUTINY. &• J 1!.^ know, my dear, I feel a sort of personal relationship to you, after your having been in my charge for six months. I don't know a single man in all India whom I would not rather see you fall in love with than with Captain Forster." " I thought uncle did not seem particularly pleased when he came in to tiffin, and said there was a new arrival." "I should think not," the Doctor said; "the man is notoriously a dangerous fellow, and yet as he has never actually outstepped what are considered the bounds which constitute an officer and a gentleman, he has retained his commission, but it has been a pretty close shave once or twice. Your uncle must know all about him, every one does; but I don't suppose the Major will open his mouth to you on the subject — he is one of those chivalrous sort of men who never thinks evil of any one imlesis he is absolutely obliged to; but in a case like this I think he is wrong at any rate. I have done what I consider to be my duty in the matter. Now the matter is in your hands. I am glad to see that you are looking quite yourself again, and got over your fainting fit of the other night. I quite expected to be sent for professionally the next morning." "Oh, yes, I have quite got over it. Doctor; I can't make out how I was so silly as to faint. I never did such a thing before, but it was so strange and mysteri- ous that I felt quite bewildered, and the picture quite frightened me, but I don't know why. This is the first chance I have had since of speaking to you alone. What do you think of it, and why should you be dressed up as a native? and why should — " She stopped with a heightened color on her cheeks. " You and Bathurst be dressed up, too? So you no- ticed your own likeness; nobody else but Bathurst and myself recognized the two figures that came out of the wood." "Oh, you saw it too. Doctor. I thought I might have been mistaken, for, besides being stained, the face was all obscured somehow. Neither uncle, nor Mrs. Hunter, nor the girls, nor any one else I have spoken ,1 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. iS» no- and the ' \ to seem to have had an idea it was me, though they all recognized you. What could it mean?" "I have not the slightest idea in the world," the Doctor said; "very likely it meant nothing. I cer- tainly should not think any more about it : these jug- glers' tricks are curious and unaccountable; but it is no use our worrying ourselves about them. Maybe we are all going to get up private theatricals some day, and perform an Indian drama. I have never taken any part in tomfooleries of that sort so far, but there is :^o saying what I may come to. " " Are you going to dine here, Doctor?" " No, my dear ; the Major asked me to come in, but I declined : I told him frankly that I did not like For- ster, and that the less I saw of him the better I should be pleased. " The other guests turned out to be Captain and Mrs. Doolan and Mr. Congreave, one of the civilians at the station. The Doolans arrived first. "You have not seen Captain Forster yet, Isobel," Mrs. Doolan said, as they sat down for a chat together. " I met him at Delhi soon after I came out. He is quite my Ifeau ideal of a soldier in appearance, but I don't think he is nice, Isobel. I have heard all sorts of stories about him. " " Is that meant as a warning for me, Mrs. Doolan?" Isobel asked, smiling. "Well, yes, I think it is, if you don't mind my giv- ing you one. There are some men one can flirt with as much as one likes and there are some men one can't; he is one of that sort. Privately, my dear, I don't mind telling you that at one*time I did flirt with him — I had been accustomed to flirt in Ireland; we all flirt there, and mean nothing by it — but I had to give it up very suddenly. It wouldn't do, my dear, at all ; his ideas of flirtation differed utterly from mine. I found I was playing with fire and was fortunate in get- ting off without singeing my wings, which is more than a good many others would have done." " He must be a horrid sort of man," Isobel said in- dis>Tiantly. 1S« IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. ;, I Mrs. Doolan laughed. " I don't think you will find him so; certainly that is not the general opinion of women. However, you will see him for yourself in a few minutes. " Isobel looked up with some curiosity when Captain Forster was announced, and at once admitted to herself that the Doctor's report as to his personal appearance was fully justified. He stood over six feet high, with a powerful frame and an easy, careless bearing ; his hair was cut rather close, he wore a long, tawny mustache, his eyes were dark, his teeth very white and perfect. A momentary look of surprise came across his face as his eyes fell on Isobel. "I had hardly expected," he said, as the Major in- troduced him to her, " to find no less than three unmar- ried ladies at Deennugghur. I had the pleasure of be- ing introduced to the Miss Hunters this afternoon. How do you do, Mrs. Doolan? I think it is four years since I had the pleasure of knowing you in Delhi. " " I believe that is the number, Captain Forster. " " It seems a very long time to me," he said. "I thought you would say that," she laughed. "It was quite the proper thing to say, Captain Forster ; but I dare say it does seem longer to you than it does to me, as you have been home since." " We are all here, " the Major broke in ; " Captain Forster, will you take my niece in?" " I suppose you find this very dull after Cawnpore, Miss Hannay?" Captain Forster asked. "Indeed, I do not," Isobel said. "I like it better here; everything is sociable and pleasant, while at Cawnpore there was much more formality. Of course, there were lots of dinner parties, but I don't care for large dinner parties at all, it is so hot and they last such a time. I think six is quite large enough. Then there is a general talk and every one can join in just as much as they like, while at a large dinner you have to rely entirely upon one person, and I think it is very hard work having to talk for an hour and a half to a stranger of whom you know nothing. Don't you agree with me?" T IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. I 'S3 " Entirely, Miss Hannay. I am a pretty good hand at talking, but at times I have found it very hard work, I can assure you, especially when you take down a stranger to the station, so that you have no mutual ac- quaintance to pull to pieces." The dinner was bright and pleasant, and when the evening was over, Isobel said to her uncle, "I think Captain Forster is very amusing, uncle." "Yes," the Major agreed, "he is a good talker, a regular society man ; he is no great favorite of mine ; I think he will be a little too much for us in a small sta- tion like this." " How do you mean too much, uncle?" The Major hesitated. "Well, he won't have much to do with his troop of horse, and time will hang heavy on his hands." "Well, there is shooting, uncle." "Yes, there is shooting, but I don't think that is much in his line. Tiffins and calls, and society gener- ally, occupy most of his time, I fancy, and I think he is fonder of billiards and cards than is good for him, or others. Of course, being here by himself, as he is, we must do our best to be civil to him and that sort of thing, but if we were at Cawnpore he is a man I should not care about being intimate in the house. " "I understand, uncle; but certainly he is pleasant." "Oh, yes, he is very pleasant," the Major said dryly, in a tone that seemed to express that Forster's power of making himself pleasant was by no means a recom- mendation in his eyes. But Captain Forster had apparently no idea whatever that hifi society could be anything but welcome, and called the next day after luncheon. " I have been leaving my pasteboard at all the resi- dents'," he said, " not a very large circle. Of course, I knew Mrs. Rintoul at Delhi, as well as Mrs. Doolan. I did not know any of the others. They seem pleasant people." "They are very pleasant, " Isobel said. " I left one for a man named Bathurst. He was out. Is that the Bathurst, Major Hannay, who was in a line h ' i 154 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. regiment, I forget its number, and left very suddenly in the middle of the fighting in the Punjaub?" "Yes. I believe Bathurst was in the army about that time," the Major said; "but I don't kiiow any- thing about the circumstances of his leaving." Had Captain Forster known the Major better, he would have been aware that what he meant to say was that he did not wish to know, but he did not detect the objection, and went on: They say he showed the white feather. If it is the same man, I was at school with him, and unless he has improved since then, I am sure I have no wish to re- new his acquaintance. " " I like him very much," the Major said shortly; " he is great friends with Dr. Wade, who has the very high- est opinion of him, and I believe he is generally con- sidered to be one of the most rising young officers of his grade," "Oh, I have nothing to say against him," Captain Forster said, " but he was a poor creature at school, and I do not think that there was any love lost between us. Did you ki. v/ him before you came here?" " I only met him at the last races in Cawnpore, " the Major said, " he was stopping with the Doctor. " " Quite a character, Wade. " Isobel's tongue was untied now. " I think he is one of the kindest and best gentlemen that ever I met," the girl said hotly. "He took care of me coming out here, and no one could have been kinder than he was. " "I have no doubt he is all that," Captain Forster said gently; "still he is a character. Miss Hannay, taking the term character to mean a person who differs widely from other people. I believe he is very skilful in his profession, but I take it he is a sort of Abernethy, and tells the most startling truths to his patients. " "That I can quite imagine," Isobel said. "The Doctor hates humbug of all sorts, and I don't think I should like to call him in myself for an imaginary ail- ment. " "I rather put my foot in it there," Captain Forst»i J I Vi TH£ DAYS OF THE MUTINY. '55 iddenly ^ about w any- ter, he ;ay was :ect the t is the he has I to re- y; "he y high- ly con- leers of !^aptain pchool, tween e," the lemen k care been orster innay, iiffers kilful lethy, "The link I y ail- said to himself as he sauntered back to his tent. " The Major didn't like my saying anything against Bathurst, and the girl did not like my remark about the Doctor. I wonder whether she objected also to what I said about that fellow Bathurst; a sneaking little hound he was, and there is no doubt about his showing the white feather in the Punjaub. However, I don't think that young lady is of the sort to care about a coward, and if she asks any questions, as I dare say she will after what I have said, she will find that the story is a true one. What a pretty little thing she is ! I did not see a pre t tier face all the time I was at home. What with her and Mrs. Doolan, time is net likely to hang so heavily here as I had expected." The Major, afraid that Isobel might ask him some questions about this story of Bathurst leaving the army, went off hastily as soon as Captain Forster had left. Isobel sat impatiently tapping the floor with her foot, awaiting the Doctor, who usually came for half an hour's chat in the afternoon. " Well, child, how did your dinner go off yesterday and what did you think of your new visitor? I saw him come away from here half an hour ago. I suppose he has been calling." " I don't like him at all," Isobel said decidedly. " No? Well, then, you are an exception to the gen- eral rule. " "I thought him pleasant enough last night," Isobel said frankly. " He has a deferential sort of way about him when he speaks to one that one can hardly help liking. But he made me angr)^ to-day. In the first place, Doctor, he said you were a character. " Tiie Doctor chuckled. " Well, that is true enough, my dear. There was ho harm in that. '.' " And then he said — " and she broke off — " he said what I feel sure cannot be true. He said that Mr. Bathurst left the army because he showed the white feather. It is not true, is it? i om sure it can't be true." The Doctor did not reply immediately. 15^ IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. h «l 'I 1' "It is an old story," he said presently, "and ought not to have been brought up again. I don't suppose Forster oi any one eUe knows the rights of the case. When a man leaves his regiment and retires when it is upon active service, there are sure to be spiteful stories getting about, often without the slightest foun- dation. But even if it had been true, it would hardly be to Bathurst's disadvantage now he is no longer in the army, and courage is not a vital necessity on the part of a civilian." "You can't moan that. Doctor; surely, every man ought to be brave. Could any one possibly respect a man who is a coward? I don't believe it, Doctor, for a moment." "Courage, my dear, is not a universal endowment, it is a physical as much as a moral virtue ; some people are physically brave and morally cowards ; others are exactly the reverse. Some people are constitutionally cowards all round, while in others cowardice shows itself only partially. I have known a man who is as brave as a lion in battle, who was terrified by a rat. I have ':nown a man brave in other respects lose his nerve altogether in a thunder-storm. In neither of these cases was it the man's own fault; it was constitutional, and by no effort could he conquer it. I consider Bathurst to be an exceptionally noble character. I am sure that he is capable of acts of great bravery in some directions, but it is possible that he is, like the man I have spviken of, constitutionally weak in others." " But the great thing is to be brave in battle, Doctor! You would not call a man a coward simply because he was afraid of a rat, but you would call a man a coward who was afraid in battle. To be a coward there seems to me to be a coward all round. I have always thought the one virtue in man I really envied was bravery, and that a coward was the mort despicable creature living. It might not be his actual fault, but one can't help that. It is not any one's fault if he is fearfully ugly or born an idiot, for example. But cowardice seems somehow different. Not to be brave when he is strong seems to put a man below the level of a woman. I feel sure, 4 I IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 157 . ought luppose le case, ^rhen it spiteful >t foun- hardly iger in on the ry man spect a ►r, for a nent, it people lers are tionally ! shows o is as rat. I ose his f these tional, nsider I am in some man I )octor! luse he toward seems lought \y, and living. Ipthat. |r born lehow ims to sure, Doctor, there must be some mistake, and that this story cannot be true. I have seen a good deal of Mr. Bathurst since we have been here, and you have always spoken so well of him, he is the last man I should have thought would be — would be like that." "I know the circumstances of the case, child. You can trust me when I say that there is nothing in Bathurst's conduct that diminishes my respect for him in the slightest degree, and that in some respects he is as brave a man as any I know." " Yes, Doctor, all that may be ; but you do not an- swer my question. Did Mr. Bathurst leave the army because he showed cowardice? If he did, and you knew it, why did you invite him here? why did you always praise him? why did yon not say, 'In other re- spects this man may be good and estimable, but he is that most despicable thing, a coward'?" There was such a passion of pain in her voice and face that the Doctor only said, quietly: " I did not know it, my dear, or I should have told you at first that in this one point he was wanting. It is, I consider, the duty of those who know things to speak out. But he is certainly not what you say." Isobel tossed her head impatiently. "We need not discuss it, Doctor. It is nothing to me whether Mr. Bathurst is brave or not, only it is not quite pleasant to learn that you have been getting on friendly terms with a man who " " Don't say any more," the Doctor brc ? in. "You might at least remember he is a friend of mine. There is no occasion for us to quarrel, my dear, and to prevent the possibility of such a thing I will be off at once." After he had left Isobel sat down to think over what had been said. He had not directly answered her questions, but he had not denied that the rumor that Bathurst had retired from the army because he was wanting in courage was well founded. Everything he had said, in fact, was an excuse rather than a denial. The Doctor was as stanch a friend as he was bitter an opponent. Could he have denied it he woiild have done so strongly and indignantly. IS8 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. y ^! It was clear that, much as he liked Bathurst, he be- lieved him wanting in physical courage. He had said, indeed, that he believed he was brave in some respects, and had asserted that he knew of one exceptional act of courage that he had performed ; but what was that if a man had had to leave the army because he was a coward? To Isobel it seemed that of all things it was most dreadful that a man should be wanting in courage. Tales of daring and bravery had always been her spe- cial delight, and, being full of life and spirit herself, it had not seemed even possible to her that a gentleman could be a coward, and that Bathurst could be so seemed to her well-nigh incredible. It might, as the Doctor had urged, be in no way his fault, but this did not affect the fact. He might be more to be pitied than to be blamed, but pity of that kind, so far from being akin to love, was destructive of it. Unconsciously she had raised Bathurst on a lofty pin- nacle. The Doctor had spoken very highly of him. She had admired the energy with which, instead of caring as others did for pleasure, he devoted himself to his work. Older men than himself listened to his opinions. His quiet and somewhat restrained manner was in contrast to the careless fun and good-humor of most of those with whom she came in contact. It had seemed to her that he was a strong man, one who could be relied upon implicitly at all times, and she had come in the few weeks she had been at Deennug- fhur to rely upon his opinion, and to look forward to is visits, and even 1;o acknowledge to herself that he approached her ideal of what a man should be more than any one else she had met. And now this was all shattered at a blow. He was wanting in man's first attribute. He had left the army, if not in disgrace at least under a cloud, and even his warm friend the Doctor could not deny that the accusation of cowardice was well founded. The pain of the discovery opened her eyes to the fact which she had not before, even remotely, admitted to herself, that she was beginning to love him^ and the discovery was a bitter one. 1 i' I IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. "59 , he be- ad said, aspects, )nal act s that if e was a ;s it was courage, her spe- irself, it ntleman i be so way his light be r of that ive of it. ofty pin- of him. ^tead of mself to to his manner umor of It had >ne who and she eennug- ward to that he )e more He was "eft the id, and kny that The It which Jherself, scovery 1 "I may thank Captain Forster for that at least," she said to herself, as she angrily wiped a tear from her cheek ; " he has opened my eyes in time. What should I have felt if I had found too late that I had come to love a man who was a coward — who had left the army because he was afraid? I should have despised myself as much as I should despise him. Well, that is my first lesson. I shall not trust in appearances again. Why, I would rather marry a man like Captain Forster, even if everything they say about him is true, than a man who is a coward. At least he is brave, and has shown himself so." The Doctor had gone away in a state of extreme irritation. "Confound the meddling scoundrel!" he said to him- self, as he surprised the horse with a sharp cut of the whip. " Just when things were going on as I wished. I had quite set my mind on it, and though I am sure Bathurst would never have spoken to her till he had told her himself about th^.t unfortunate failing of his, it would have been altogether different coming from his own lips just as he told it to me. Of course, cAy own lips were sealed, and I could not put the case in the right light. I would give three months' pay for the satisfaction of horsewhipping that fellow Forster. Still, I can't say he did it maliciously, for he could not have known Bathurst was intimate there or that there was anything between them. The question is. Am I to tell Bathurst that she has heard about it? I suppose I had better. Ah, here is the Major, " and he drew up his horse. "Anything new. Major? You look put out." " Yes, there is very bad news. Doctor. A Sowar has just brought a letter to me from the Colonel saying that the General has got a telegram that the 19th Native Infantry at Berhampore have refused to use the car- tridges served out to them, and that yesterday a Sepoy of the 34th at Bt-rrackpore raised seditious cries in front of the lines, and when Baugh, the Adjutant, and the Sergeant-Major attempted to seize him he wounded them both, while the regiment stpgd by and refused tq i6o IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 1.1 f m n H "5 m ' Ml J, < L' ; 1 ! (■;■ I' r M ■^ '. i aid them. The 19th are to be disbanded, and no doubt the 34th will be too." " That is bad news indeed, Major, and looks as if this talk about general disaffection were true. Had there been trouble but at one station it might have been the effect of some local grievance, but happening at two places, it looks as if it were part of a general plot. Well, we must hope it will go no farther." "It is very bad," said the Major, "but at any rate we may hope we shall have no troubles here ; the regi- ment has always behaved well and I am sure they have no reason to complain of their treatment. If the Colo- nel has a fault it is thatof over-leniency with the men." "That is so," the Doctor agreed, "but the fact is, Major, we know really very little about the Hindoo mind. We can say with some sort of certainty what Europeans will do under given circumstances, but though I know the natives, I think, pretty nearly as well as most men, I feel that I really know nothing about them. They appear mild and submissive, and have certainly proved faithful on a hundred battle- fields, but we don't know whether that is their real character. Their own history, before we stepped in and altered its current, shows them as faithless, blood- thirsty, and cruel ; whether they have changed their nature under our rule, or simply disguised it. Heaven only knows." "At any rate," the Major said, "they have always shown themselves attached to their English officers. There are numberless instances where they have shown the utmost devotion for them, and although some scheming intriguers may have sown the seeds of discon- tent among them, and these lies about the cartridges may have excited their religious prejudices and may even lead them to mutiny, I cannot believe for an instant that the Sepoys will lift their hands against their officers." "I hope not," the Doctor said gravely. "A tiger's cub, when tamed, is one of the prettiest of playthings, but when it once tastes blood it is as savage a beast as its mother was before it. Of course, I hope for the IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. i6i best, but if the Sepoys once break loose I would not answer for anything they might do. They have been pretty well spoilt, Major, till they have come to believe that it is they who conquered India and not we, " CHAPTER XI. jer's ings, ^t as the That evening, after dining alone, the Doctor went in to Bathurst's. The latter had already heard the news and they talked it over for some time. Then the Doc- tor said, " Have you seen Forster, Bathurst, since he arrived?" " No, I was out when he left his card i I was at school with him. I heard when I was in England that he was out here in the native cavalry, but I have never run across him before, and I own I had no wish to do so. He was about two years older than I was, and was considered the cock of the school. He was one of my chief tormentors. I don't know that he was a bully generally, fellows who are really plucky seldom are, but he disliked me heartily, and I hated him. " I had the habit of telling the truth when questioned, and he narrowly escaped expulsion owing to my refus- ing to tell a lie about his being quietly in bed when in fact he and two or three other fellows had been out at a public-house. He never forgave me for it, for he him- self would have told a lie without hesitation to screen himself, or, to do him justice, to screen any one else; and the mere fact that I myself had been involved in the matter, having been sent out by one of the bigger fellows, and, therefore, having got myself a flogging by my admission, was no mitigation in his eyes of my offence of what he called sneaking. "So you may imagine I have no particular desire to meet him again. Unless he has greatly changed, he would do me a bad turn if he had the chance." "I don't think he has greatly changed," the Doctor said. " That was really what I came in here for this evening, rather than to talk about this Sepoy business. I XX l62 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. » am sorry to say, Bathurst, that when he was i.i at the Major's to-day, your name happened to be mentioned, and he said at once, 'Is that the Bathurst who they say showed the white feather at Chillianwalla and left the army in consequence?' " Bathurst 's face grew pale and his fingers closed. He remained silent a minute and then said: "It does not matter; she would have been sure to hear it sooner or later, and I should have told her myself if he had not done so; besides, if, as I am afraid, this Berhampore business is the beginning of trouble, and of such trouble as we have never had since we set foot in India, it is likely that every one will know what she knows now. Has she spoken to you about it? I suppose she has, or you would not have known that he mentioned it. " " Yes, she was most indignant about it, and did not believe it. " " And what did you say, Doctor?" he asked indiffer- ently. " Well, I was sorry I could not tell her exactly what you told me. It would have been better if I could have done so. I simply said there were many sorts of courage, and that I was sure that you possessed many sorts in a very high degree, but I could not, of course, deny, although I did not admit, the truth of the report he had mentioned. " " I don't think it makes much difference one way or the other," Bathurst said wearily. "I have known all along that Isobel Hannay would not marry a coward, only I have gone on living in a fool's paradise. How- ever, it is over now ; the sooner it is all over the better. " "My dear fellow," the Doctor said earnestly, "don't take this thing too much to heart. I don't wish to try and persuade you that it is not a grave misfortune, but even suppose this trouble takes the very worst form possible, I do not think you will come so very badly out of it as you anticipate. Even assuming that you are unable to do your part in absolute fighting, there may be other opportunities and most likely will, in which you may be able to show that, although unable to control your nerves in the din of battle, ycu possess f IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 1^3 the ned, r say : the He s not ler or ,d not npore ouble , it is now. las, or lid not idifiEer- jr what could orts of many ourse, report I in other respects coolness and courage. That ttiAi. of yours of attacking the tiger with the dog-whip shows conclusively that under mauy circumstances you are capable of most daring deeds. " Bathurst sat looking down for some minutes. " God grant that it may be so," he said at last; "but it is no use talking about it any more. Doctor. I suppose Major Hannay will keep a sharp lookout over the men." '• Yes, there was a meeting of the officers this after- noon. It was agrsed to make no outward change, and to give the troot^s ro cause whatever to believe that they are suspectc J. They all feel confident of the good will of the men ; at the same time they will watch them closely, and if the news comes of further trouble, they will prepare the court-house as a place of refuge." " That is a very good plan ; but, of course, everything depends upon whether, if the troops do rise in mutiny, the people of Oude join them. They are a fighting race, and if they should throw in their lot against us the position would be a desperate one." " Well, there is no doubt," the Doctor said, " that the Rajah of Bithoor would be with us; that will make Cawnpore safe, and will largely influence all the great Zemindars, though there is no doubt that a good many of them have been sulky ever since the disarmament order was issued. I believe there are few of them who have not got cannon hidden away or buried, and as for the ,j)eople, the number of arms given up was as nothing to what we know they possessed. In other parts of India I believe the bulk of the people will be with us; but here in Oude, our last annexation, I fear that they will side against us, unless all the great land-owners range themselves on our side." "As far as I can see," Bathurst said, "the people are contented with the change. I don't say what I may call the professional fighting class, the crowd of retainers kept by the great land-owners, who were constantly fighting against each other. Annexation has put a stop to all that, and the towns are crowded with these fight- ing men, who hate us bitterly; but the peasants, the tillers of the soil, have benefited greatly. They are no 164 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. longer exposed to raids by their powerful neighbors, and can cultivate their fields in peace and quiet. Un- fortunately their friendship, such as it is, will not weigh in the slightest degree in the event of a struggle. At any rate, I am sure they are not behind the scenes, and know nothing whatever of any coming trouble. Going, as I do, among them, and talking to them as one of themselves, I should have noticed it had there been any change in them ; and of late naturally I have paid special notice to their manner. Well, if it is to come I hope it will come soon, for anything is better than suspense." Two days later Major Hannay read out to the men on parade an official document, assuring them that there was no truth whatever in the statements that had been made that the cartridges served out to them had been greased with pig's fat. They were precisely the same as those that they had used for years, and the men were warned against listening to seditious per- sons who might try to poison their minds and shake their loyalty to the Government. He then told them that he was sorry to say that at one or two stations the men had been foolish enough to listen to disloyal coun- cils, and that in consequence the regiments had been disbanded and the men had forfeited all the advantages in the way of pay and pension they had earned by many years of good conduct. He said that he had no fear whatever of any such trouble arising with them, as they knew that they had been well treated, that any legitimate complaint they might make had always been attended to, and that their officers had their welfare thoroughly at heart. When he had finished, the senior native officer stepped forward, and in the name of the detachment assured the Major that the men were perfectly contented, and would in all cases follow their officers, even if they ordered them to march against their countrymen. At the conclusion of his speech, he called upon the ta'oops to give three cheers for the Major and officers, and this was responded to with a show of great enthusiasm. This demonstration was deemed very satisfactory, f bors, Un- l not ;enes, mble. !in as there ; have is to better e men n that :s that ) them ecisely rs, and us per- I shake I them Dns the I coun- d been mtages tied by- had no them, at any sbeen elfare officer Ichment litented, if they in. At troops md this sm. Eactory, IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. i6S f and the uneasiness among the residents abated consid- erably, while the Major and his officers felt convinced that whatever happened at other stations, there would, at least, be no trouble at Deennugghur. 'Well, even you are satisfied, Doctor, I suppose," the Major said, as a party of them who had been dining with Dr. Wade were smoking in the veranda. " I was hopeful before, Major, and I am hopeful now, but I can't say that to-day's parade has influenced me in the slightest. Whatever virtues the Hindoo may have, he has certainly that of knowing how to wait. I believe, from what took place, that they have no inten- tion of breaking out at present. Whether they are wait- ing to see what is done at other stations, or until they receive a signal, is more than I can say; but their as- surances do not weigh with me to the slightest extent. Their history is full of cases of perfidious massacre. I should say, 'trust them as long as you can, but don't re- lax your watch/ " " You are a confirmed croaker," Captain Rintoul said. " I do not think so, Rintoul. I know the men I am talking about and I know the Hindoos generally. They are mere children and can be moulded like clay; as long as we had the moulding, all went well, but if they fall into the hands of designing men they can be led in another direction just as easily as we have led them in ours. I own that I don't see who can be sufficiently interested in the matter to conceive and carry out a great conspiracy of this kind. The King of Oude is a captive in our hands, the King of Delhi is too old to play such a part. Scindia and Holkar may possibly long for the powers their fathers possessed, but they are not likely to act to rivals rather than fri these who has been see who can be at the er, and may be regarded as d yet if it is not one of this storm, I own I don't of it, unless it has really originated from some ambitious spirits among the Sepoys, who look in the event of success to being masters of the destinies of India. It is a pity we did not get a few more views from that juggler, we might have known a little more of it then." x66 IN TtxE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. "Don't talk auout him, Doctor," Wilson said; "it gives me the cold shivers to think of that fellow and what he did; I have hardly slept since then. It was the most creepy thing I ever saw. Richards and I have talked it ever every evening we have been alone to- gether, and we can't uiake head or tail of the affair. Richards thinks it wasn't the girl at all who went up on that pole, but a sort of balloon in her shape. But then, as I say, there was the girl standing among us before she took her place on the pole. We saw her sit down and sr ttle herself on the cushion so that she was balanced ri ^-ht. So it could not have been a balloon then, and if it were a balloon afterward, when did she change? At any rate the light below was sufficient to see well until she was forty or fifty feet up, and after that she shone out, and we never lost sight of her until she was ever so high ; I can understand the pictures, because there might have been a magic lantern some- where, but that girl trick, and the basket trick, and that great snake, are altogether beyond me." " So I should imagine, Wilson," the Doctor said dryly, " and if I were you I would not bother my head about it. Nobody has succeeded in finding out any of them yet, and all the wondering in the world is not likely to get you any nearer to it. " " That is what I feel. Doctor, but it is very riling to see things that 5"ou can't account for anyhow. I wish he had sent up Richards on the pole instead of the girl. I would not have minded going up myself if he had asked me, though I expect I should have jumped oft' before it got up very far, even at the risk of breaking my neck." "I should not mind risk ing that," the Doctor said, "though I doubt whethe^^Hfc^uld have known any more about it when I can^^^Bl; but these jugglers always bring a girl or a boy^^^Rhem instead of calling somebody out from the audience, as they do at home. Well, if things are quiet we will organize another hunt, Wilson, I have heard of a tiger fifteen miles away from where we killed our last, and you and Richards shall go with me if you like. " f IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 167 ryly, about ;heiii ly to said, any glers ailing lome. hunt, away hards f "I should like it of all things, Doctor, provided it comes off by day. I don't think I care about sitting tb^^ough another night on a tree, and then not getting anything like a fair shot at the beast after all. " " We will go by day," the Doctor said. " Bathurst has promised to get some elephants from one of the Zem- indars; we will have a regular party this tine. I have half promised Miss Hannay she shall have a seat in a howdah with me if the Major will give her leave, and in that case we will send out tents and make a regular party of it. What do you say, Major?" " I am perfectly willing. Doctor, and have certainly no objection to trusting Isobel to your care. I know you are not likely to miss." " No, I am not likely to miss, certainly ; and besides, there will be Wilson and Richards to give him the coup de grdce if I don't finish him." There was a general laugh, for the two subalterns had been chaffed a good deal at both missing the tiger on the previous occasion. " Well, when shall it be. Major?" "Not just at present, at any rate," the Major said. " We must see how things are going on. I certainly should not think of going outside the station now, nor could I give leave to any officer to do so ; but if things settle down, and we hear no more of this cartridge business for the next ten days or a fortnight, we will see about it. " But although no news of any outbreak similar to that at Barrackpore was received for some days, the re- ports that came showed a wide-spread restlessness. At various stations all over India, fires, believed to be the work of incendiaries, took place, and there was little abatement of the uneasiness. It became known, too, that a native officer had before the rising of Berham- pore given warning of the mutiny, and had stated that there was a wide-spread plot throughout the native regiments to rise, kill their officers, and then march to Delhi, where they were all to gather. The story was generally disbelieved, although the actual rising had shown that, to some extent, the re- ^ i68 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. ii , I port was well founded ; still men could not bring them- selves to believe that the troops among whom they had lived so long ard who had fought so long for us could meditate such gross treachery, without having, as far as could be seen, any real cause for complaint. The ' jndur? of the troops at Deennugghur was ex- cellent, id c Colonel wrote that at Cawnpore there were no i.;>;a , whatever of disaffection, and that the Rajah of I '0::u; had offered to come down at the head of his own troop: . hould there be any symptoms of mutiny among the Sepoys. Altogether things looked better, and a feeling of confidence that there would be no serious trouble spread through the station. The weather had set in very hot, and there was no stirring out now for the ladies between eleven o'clock and five or six in the afternoon. Isobel, however, gen- erally went in for a chat the first thing after early breakfast, with Mrs. Doolan, whose children were fractious with prickly heat. ' " I only wish we had some big, high mountain, my dear, somewhere within reach, where we could estab- lish the children through the summer and run away ourselves occasionally to look after them. We are very badly off here in Oudo for that. You are looking very pale yourself the last few days. " "I suppose I feel it a little," Isobel said, "and of course this anxiety every one has been feeling worries one. Every one seems to agree that there is no fear of trouble with the Sepoys here; still, as nothing else is talked about, one cannot help feeling nervous about it. However, as things seem settling down now, I hope we shall soon get something else to talk about." "I have not seen Mr. Bathurst lately," Mrs. Doolan said presently. " Nor have we," Isobel said quietly, " it is quite ten days since we saw him last. " '* 1 suppose he is falling back into his hermit ways," Mrs. Doolan said carelessly, shooting a keen glance at Isobel, who was leaning over one of the children. *' He quite emerged from his shell, for a bit. Mrs. H^mter was saying she never saw such a change in a I r IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 169 5 ten lys," e at ren. Mrs. in a 'I 9 ■ man, but I suppose he has got tired of it. Captain Forster arrived just in time to fill up the gap. How do you like him, Isobel?" "He is amusing," the girl said quietly; "I have never seen any one quite like him before ; he talks in an easy, pleasant sort of way, and tells most amusing stories. Then, when he sits down by one he has the knack of dropping his voice and talking in a confidential sort of way, even when it is only about the weather. I am always asking myself how muc' i.' it is real, and what there is under the surface. " Mrs. Doolan nodded approval. " I don't think there is much ur .'.r v-ie surface, dear, and what there is is just as well left i or^e; but there is no doubt he can be delightful whc he chooses, and very few women would not feel flatterc . >y the attentions of a man who is said to be the handsomest officer in the Indian army, and who has besides distinguished him- self several times as a particularly dashing officer." *' I don't think handsomeness goes for much in a man," Isobel said shortly. Mrs. Doolan laughed. " Why should it not go for as much as prettiness in a woman? It is no use being cynical, Isobel, it is part of our nature to admire pretty things, and as far as I can see an exceptionally handsome man is as legitimate an object of admiration as a lovely woman," "Yes, to admire, Mrs. Doolan, but not to like." "Well, my dear, I don't want to be hurrying you away, but I think you had better get back before the sun gets any higher. You may say you don't feel the heat much, but you are looking pale and fagged, and the less you are out in the sun the better." Isobel had indeed been having a hard time during those ten days. At first she had thought of little but what she should do when Bathurst called. It •seemed impossible that she could be exactly the same with him that she had been, that was quite out of the question, and yet how was she to be different? Ten days had passed without his coming. This was so unusual that an idea came into her mind which ter- i, 170 IN THE DAYS OK THE MUTINY. ! I rified her, and the first time when the Doctor came in and found her alone she said: "Of course, Doctor Wade, you have not mentioned to Mr. Bathurst the conversation we had, but it is curious his not having been here since. " "Certainly I mentioned it," the Doctor said calmly, "how could I do otherwise? It was evident to me that he would not be welcomed here as he was before, and I could not do otherwise than warn him of the change he might expect to find, and to give him the reason for it." Isobel stood the picture of dismay. " I don't think you had any right to do so. Doctor," she said. "You have placed me in a most painful position. " " In not so painful as it would have been, my dear, if he had noticed the change himself, as he must have done, and asked for the cause of it." Isobel stood twisting her fingers over each other be- fore her nervously. " But what am I to do?" she asked. " I do not see that there is anything more for you to do," the Doctor said. " Mr. Bathurst may not be per- fect in all respects, but he is certainly too much of a gentleman to force his visits where they are not wanted. I do not say he will not come here at all, for not to do so after being here so much would create comment and talk in the station, which would be as painful to you as to him, but he certainly will not come here more often than is necessary to keep up appearances." "I don't think you ought to have told him," Isobel replied, much distressed. " I could not help it, my dear. You would force me to admit there was some truth in the story Captain Forster told you, and I was therefore obliged to ac- quaint him with the fact or he would have had just cause to reproach me. Besides, you spoke of despising a man who was not physically brave. " " You never told him that, Doctor, surely you never told him that?" " I only told what it was necessary he should know, my dear, namely, that you had heard the story, that IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. I7T !sobel ac- never you had questioned me, and that I, knowing the facts from his lips, admitted that there was some foundation for the story, while asserting that I was convinced that he was morally a brave man. He did not ask how you took the news, nor did I volunteer any information whatever on the subject, but he understood, I think, perfectly, the light in which you would view a coward." " But what am I to do when we meet, Doctor?" she asked piteously. " I should say that you will meet just as ordinary ac- quaintances do meet. Miss Hannay. People are civil to others they are thrown with, however much they may distrust them at heart. You may be sure that Mr. Bathurst will make no allusion whatever to the mat- ter. I think I can answer for it that you will see no shade of difference in his manner. This has always been a heavy burden for him, as even the most care- less observer may see in his mainer. I do not say that this is not a large addition to it, but I dare say he will pull through ; and now I must be off. " " You are very unkind, Doctor, and I never knew you unkind before." "Unkind!" the Doctor repeated, with an air of sur- prise. " In what way? I love this young fellow. I had cherished hopes for him that he hardly perhaps ventured to cherish for himself. I quite agree with you that what has passed has annihilated those hopes. You despise a man who is a coward. I am not sur- prised at that. Bathurst is the last man in the world who would force himself upon a woman who despised him. I have done my best to save you from being obliged to make a personal declaration of your senti- ments. I repudiate altogether the accusation as being unkind. I don*t blame you in the slightest. I think that 5^our view is the one that a young woman of spirit would naturally take. I acquiesce in it entirely. I will go farther, I consider it a most fortunate occurrence for you both that you found it out in time. " Isobel's cheeks had flushed and paled several times while he was speaking; then she pressed her lips tightly together and, as he finished, she said, "I think, Doc- I7a IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. Jtf tor, it will be just as well not to discuss the matter further. " "I am quite of your opinion," he said. "We will agree not to allude to it again. Good-by." And then Isobel had retired to her room and cried passionately, while the Doctor had gone off chuckling to himself, as if he were perfectly satisfied with the state of affairs. During the week that had since elapsed, the Major had wondered and grumbled several times at Bathurst's absence. "I expect," he said, one day when a note of refusal had come from him, " that he doesn't care about meet- ing Forster. You remember Forster said they had been at school together, and from the tone in which he spoke it is evident that they disliked each other there. No doubt he has heard from the Doctor that Forster is frequently in here," and the Major spoke rather irri- tably, for it seemed to him that Isobel showed more pleasure in the captain's society than she should have done after what he had said to her about him ; indeed, Isobel, especially when the Doctor was present, ap- peared by no means to object to Captain Forster's attentions. Upon the evening, however, of the day when Isobel had spoken to Mrs. Doolan, Bathurst came in, rather late in the evening. " How are you, Bathurst?" the Major said cordially. "Why, you have become quite a stranger. We haven't seen you for over a fortnight. Do you know Captain Forster?" "We were at school together formerly, I believe," Bathurst said quietly. "We have not met since and I fancy we are both changed beyond recognition." Captain Forster looked with surprise at the strong, well-knit figure. He had not before seen Bathurst and had pictured him to himself as a weak, puny man. "I certainly should not have known Mr. Bathurst," he said. " I have changed a great deal, no doubt, but he has certainly changed more. " There was no attempt on the part of either to shake IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINV. «73 >* shake hands. As they moved apart, Isobel casne into the room, A cjuick flash of color spread over her face when upon entering she saw Bathurst talking to her uncle. Then she advanced, shook hands with him as usual, and said: " It is quite a time since you were here, Mr. Bathurst. If every one was as full of business as you arc, we should get on badly. " Then she moved on without waiting for a reply and sat down, and was soon engaged in a lively conversa- tion with Captain Forster, while Bathurst a te v minutes later, pleading that as he had been in the saddle all day he must go and make up the lost time, took his leave. Captain Forster had noticed the flush on Isobel's cheeks when she saw Bathurst, and had drawn his own conclusions. "There has been a flirtation between them," he said to himself, " but I fancy I have put a spoke in his wheel. She gave him the cold shoulder unmistakably." April passed, and as matters seemed to be quieting down, there being no fresh trouble at any of the sta- tions, the Major told Dr. Wade that he really saw no reason why the projected tiger hunt should not take place. The Doctor at once took the matter in hand, and drove out the next morning to the village from which he had received news about the tiger, had a long talk with the shikaris of the place, took a general view of the country, settled the line in which the beat should take place, and arranged for a large body of beaters to be on the spot at the time agreed on. Bathurst undertook to obtain the elephants from two Zemindars in the neighborhood, who promised to fur- nish .six, all of which were more or less accustomed to the sport; while the Major and Mr. Htinter, who h'\d been a keen sportsman, although he had of late giv^m up the pursuit of large game, arranged for a number of bullock-carts for the transport of teuts and stores. Bathurst himself declined to be one of the party, which was to consist of Mr. Hunter and his eldest daughter, the Major and Isobel, the Doctor, the two 174 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 11- subal terns, and Captain Forster. Captain Doolan said frankly that he was no shot, and more likely to hit one of the party than the tiger. Captain Rintonl at first accepted, but his wife shed such floods of tears at the idea of his leaving her and going into danger that for the sake of peace he agreed to remain at home. Wilson and Richards were greatly excited over the prospect and talked of nothing else ; they were burning to wipe out the disgrace of having missed on the pre- vious occasion. Each of them interviewed the Doctor privately, and implored him to put th6m in a position where they ^were likely to have the first shot. Both used the same arguments, namely, that the Doctor had killed so many tigers that one more or less could make no difference to him, and if they missed, which they modestly admitted was possible, he could still bring the animal down. As the Doctor was always in a good temper when there was a prospect of sport, he promised each of them to do all that he could for them, at the same time pointing out that it was always quite a lottery which way the tiger might break out. Isobel was less excited than she would have thought possible over the prospect of taking part in a tiger hunt. She had many consultations to hold with Mrs. Hunter, the Doctor, and Rumzan, as to the food to be taken, and the things that would be absolutely neces- sary for camping out ; for, as it was possible that the first day's beat would be unsuccessful, they were to be prepared for at least two days' absence from home. Two tents were to be taken, one for the gentlemen, the other for Isobel and Mary Hunter. These with bedding and camp furniture, cooking utensils, and pro- visions were to be sent off at daybreak, while the party were to start as soon as the heat of the day was over. "T wish Bathurst had been coming," Major Hannay said, as, with Isobel by his side, he drove out of the cantonment. " He seems to have slipped away from us altogether, he has only been in once for the last three or four weeks. You haven't had a tiff with him about a*.> /thing, have you, Isobel? It seems strange his ceas- 1 / * « i I 1 i 1 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. '75 1 1 said ing so suddenly to come after our seeing so 1 much of imen, with i him." " No, uncle, I have not seen him except when you have. What put such an idea into your mind?" "I don't know, my dear — young people do have tiffs sometimes about all sorts of trifles, though I should not have thought that Bathurst was the sort of man to do anything of that sort. I don't think that he likes Forster, and does not care to meet him. I fancy that is at the bottom of it." " Very likely, " Isobel said innocently, and changed the subject. It was dark when they reached the appointed spot, and indeed from the point where they left the road a native with a torch had run ahead to show them the way. The tents looked bright ; two or three large fires were burning round them, and the lamps had already been lighted within. "These tents do look cozy," Mary Hunter said, as she and Isobel entered the one prepared for them. " I do wish one always lived under canvas during the hot weather." "They look cool," Isobel said, "but I don't suppose they are really as cool as the bungalows ; but they do make them comfortable. Here is the bath-room all ready and I am sure we want it after that dusty drive. Will you have one first, or shall I? We must make haste, for Rumzan said dinner would be ready in half an hour. Fortunately, we shan't be expected to do much in the way of dressing." The dinner was a cheerful meal, and every one wai in high spirits. The tiger had killed a cow the day before, and the* villagers were certain that he had retired to a deep nullah round which a careful watch had been kept all day. Probably, he would steal out by night to make a meal from the carcass of the cow, but it had been arranged that he was to do this undisturbed and that the hunt was to take place by daylight. " It is wonderful how the servants manage every- thing, " Isobel said. " Everything is just as well ar- 176 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. '!. ..( W 'it' ranged as it is at home. People would hardly believe in England, if they could see us sitting here, that we were only out on a two days' picnic. They would be quite content there to rough it and take their meals sitting on the ground, or any way they could get them. It really seems ridiculous having eveiything like this. " " There is nothing like making yourself comfortable," the Doctor said; "and as the servants have an easy time of it generally, it does them good to bestir them- selves now and then. The expense of one or two extra bullock carts is nothing, and it makes all the differ- ence in comfort." " How far is the nullah from here, Doctor?" Wilson, who could think of nothing else but the tiger, asked. " About two miles. It is just as well not to go any nearer. Not that he would be likely to pay us a visit, but he might take the alarm, and shift his quarters. No, no more wine. Major, we shall want our blood cool in the morning. Now we will go out to look at the elephants, and have a talk with the mahouts, and find out which of the animals can be most trusted to stand steady. It is astonishing what a dread most ele- phants have of tigers. I was on one once that I was assured would face anything, and the brute bolted and went through some trees, and I was swept off the pad and was half an hour before I opened my eyes. It was a mercy I had not every rib broken. Fortunately I was a light weight, or I might have been killed. And I have seen the same sort of thing happen a dozen times, so we must choose a couple of steady ones, anyhow, for the ladies." For the next hour they strolled about outside. The Doctor cross-questioned the mahouts and told off the elephants for the party ; then there was a talk with the native shikaris, and arrangements made for the beat, and at an early hour all retired to rest. The morning was just breaking when they were called. Twenty minutes later they were assembled to take a cup of coffee before starting. The elephants were arranged in front of the tents, and they were just about to mount, when a horse was heard coming at a gallop. ^ I f IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 177 were ed to 3 were about Hop. ^ < i "Wait a moment," the Major said, "it may be a message of some sort from the station. " A minute later Bathurst rode in and reined up his horse in front of the tent. "Why, Bathurst, what brings you here? Changed your mind at the last moment and found you could get away? That's right, you shall come on the pad with me." " No, I have not come for that, Major. I have brought a dispatch that arrived at two o'clock this morning. Doolan opened it and came to me, and asked me to bring it on to you, as I knew the way and where your camp was to be pitched." " Nothing serious, I hope, Bathurst, " the Major said, struck with the gravity with which Bathurst spoke. " It must be something important or Doolan would never have routed you off like that." " It is very serious, Major, " Bathurst said, in a low voice. " May I suggest you had better go into the tent to read it? Some of the servants understand English." "Come in with me," the Major said, and led the way into the tent where the lamps were still burning on the breakfast-table, although the light had broadened out over the sky outside. It was with grave anticipation of evil that the Major took the paper from its envelope, but his worst fears were more than verified by the con- tents : My dear Major : — The General has just received a tele- gram with terrible news from Meenit : " Native troops mutinied, murdered oflficers, women, and children, opened jails and burned cantonments, and marched to Delhi." It is reported that there has been a general rising there and the massacre of all Europeans. Although this is not confirmed, the news is considered probable. We hear also that the native cavalry at Lucknow have mutinied. Law- rence telegraphs that he has suppressed it with the Euro- pean troops there, and has disarmed the mutineers. I believe that our regiment will be faithful, but none can be trusted now. I should recommend your preparing some fortified house to which all Europeans in station can re- treat in case of trouble. Now that they have taken to massacre as well as mutiny, God knows how it will all end. 12 ii ■ •1^' f I i! i it, ^;f I 178 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. "Good heavens! who could have dreamt of this?" the Major groaned. " Massacred their officers, women, and children. All Europeans at Delhi supposed to have been massacred, and there must be hundreds of them. Can it be true?" " The telegram as to Meerut is clearly an official one, " Bathurst said. " Delhi is as yet but a rumor, but it is too probable that if these mutineers and jail-birds, flushed with success, reached Delhi before the whites were warned, they would have their own wcy in the place, as, with the exception of a few artillerymen at an arsenal, there is not a white soldier in the place. " *' But there were white troops at Meerut," the Major said. " What could they have been doing? However, that is not the question now. We must, of < : urse, re- turn instantly. Ask the others to come in here, Bath- urst. Don't tell the girls what has taken place, it will be time enough for that afterward. All that is necessary to say is that you have brought news of troubles at some stations unaffected befoi e, and that I think it best to return at once. " The men were stuiding in a group wondering what the news could be whi . n was deemed of such impor- tance that Bathurst should ^arry it out in the middle of the night. " The Major will be glad if you will all go in, gen- tlemen," Bathurst said, as he joined them. " Are we to go in, Mr. Bathurst?" Miss Hunter asked. " No, I think not. Miss Hunter ; the fact is there have been some troubles at two or three other places, and the Major is going to hold a sort of council of war as to whether the hunt had not better be given up. I rather fancy that they will decide to go back at once. News flies very fast in India. I think the Major would Hke that he and his officers should be back before it is whispered among -the Sepoys that the discontent has not, as we hr)ped, everywhere ceased." "Tt iwisi be very serious," Isobel said, "or uncle would never decide to go back, when all the prepara- tions are made." " It would never do, you see, Miss Hannay, for the ^ ! IN THE DAYS OF . MUTINY. 179 this?" omen, ohave them. I one, lit it is -birds, whites in the 1 at an Major wever, -se, re- , Bath- lace, it that is ews of that I g what mpcr- ddle of 1, gen- asked, e have s, and war as up. I ; once, would "e it is nt has uncle •epara- br the f 4 Commandant and four of the officers to be away, if the Sepoys should take it into their heads to refuse to receive cartridges or anything of that sort. " ** You can't give us any particulars then, Mr. Bath- urst. " " The note was a very short one, and was partly made up of unconfirmed rumors. As I only saw it in my capacity of a messenger, I don't thiuk I am at lib- erty to say more than that." " What a trouble the Sepoys are!" Mary Hunter said, pettishly ; " it is too bad our losing a tiger hunt when we may never have another chance. " "That is a very minor trouble, Mary." "I don't think so," the girl said; "just at present it seems to be very serious. " At this moment, the Doctor put his head out o^ the tent. " Will you come in, Bathurst?" "We have settled, Bathurst," the Major vsaid, wh^"" he entered, "that we must of course go back at onc(:. The Doctor, however, is of opinion that if, after all the preparations were made, we were to put the tiger ha*-! off altogether, it would set the natives talking, and *.he report would go through the country like wildfire that- some great disaster had happened. " We must go back at once, and ^ Hunter having a wife and daughter there is anxioi co get back too ; but the Doctor urges that he shou ] go out and kill this tiger. As it is known that yo- nave just arrived, he says that if you are willing to > with him, it will be thought that you had come h to join the hunt, and if the hunt comes off and the tiger is killed, it does not matter whether two or sixty of us went out or not." "I shall be quite willing to do so," said Bathurst, " and I really think that the Doctor's advice is good. If, now that you have all arrived upon the ground, the preparations were all cancelled, there can be no doubt that the natives would come to the conclusion that something very serious had taken place, and it would be all over the place in no time," I ■■ i8o IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. " Thank you, Bathiirst. Then we will consider that arranged. Now we will get the horses in as soon as possible, and be off at once. " Ten minutes later the buggies were brought round, and the whole party, with the exception of the Doctor and Bathurst, started for Deennugghur. m CHAPTER XII. "Let us be off at once," Doctor Wade said to his companion ; *' we can talk as we go along. I have got two rifles with me, I can lend you one." "1 shall take no rifle," Bathurst said decidedly, "or rather I will take one of the shikari's guns for the sake of appearance, and for u«e I will borrow one of their spears." "Very well, I will do the shooting then," the Doctor agreed. The two men then took their places on the elephants most used to the work, and told the mahouts of the others to follow in case the elephants should be re- quirec' for driving the tiger out of the thick jungle, and they then started side by side for the scene of action. "This is awful news, Bathurst. I could not have believed it possible that these fellows who have eaten our salt for years, fought our battles, and have seemed the most docile and obedient of soldiers, should have done this. That they should have been goaded into mutiny by lies about their religion being in danger I could have imagined well enough, but that they should go in for wholesale massacre, not only of their officers, but of women and children, seems well nigh incredible. You and I have always agreed that if they were once roused there was no saying what they would do, but I don't think either of us dreamed of anything as bad as this." "I don't know," Bathurst said quietly; "one has watched this cloud gathering, and felt that if it did ^ er that ;oon as round, Doctor to his ave got ily, "or he sake of their 1 Doctor ephants ; of the be re- jnngle, ■ icene of )t have [e eaten Iseemed Id have led into mger I it they )f their ill nigh if they would lything [ne has it did IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. l8| break it would be something terrible. No one can ' foresee now what it will be. The news that Delhi is in the hands of the mutineers, and that these have massacred all Europeans, and so placed themselves beyond all hope of pardon, will fly through India like a flash of lightning, and there is no guessing how far the matter will spread. There is- no use disguising it from ourselves. Doctor — before a week is over there may not be a white man left alive in India, save garri- sons of strong places like Agra, and perhaps the Presi- dential towns where there is always a strong Euro- pean force." " I can't deny that it is possible, Bathurst. If this revolt spreads through the three presidencies the work of conquering India will have to be begun again ; and worse than that, for we should have opposed to us a vast army drilled and armed by ourselves, and led by the native officers we have trained. It seems stupefy- ing that an empire won piecemeal, and after as hard fighting as the world has ever seen, should be lost in a week." The Doctor spoke as if the question was a purely impersonal one, " Ugly, isn't it?" he went on, " and to think I have been doctoring up these fellows for the last thirty years. Saving their lives, sir, by wholesale; if I had known what had been coming I would have dosed them with arsenic with as little remorse as I should feel in shoot-, ing a tiger's whelp. Well, there is one satisfaction, ---the Major has already done something toward turning the court-house into a fortress, and I fancy a good many of the scoundrels will go down before they take it — that is, if they don't fall on us unawares, I have been a non-combatant all my life, but if I can shoot a tiger on the spring I fancy I can hit a Sepoy. By Jove ! Bathurst, that juggler's picture you told me of is likely to come true, after all." "I wish to Heaven it was," Bathurst said gloomily. " I could look without dread at whatever is coming as far as I am concerned, if I could believe it possible that I should be fighting as I saw myself there. " t I l82 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. "Pooh, nonsense, lad!" the Doctor said. "Knowing what I know of you, I have no doubt that though you may feel nervous at first, you will get over it in time." Bathurst shook his head. " I know myself too well, Doctor, to indulge in any such hopes. Now you see we are going out tiger hunting. At present, now, as far as I am concerned, I should feel much less nervous if I knew I was going to enter the jungle on foot with only this spear, than I do at the thought that you are going to fire that rifle a few paces from me." "You will scarcely notice it in the excitement," the Doctor said. " In cold blood I admit you might feel it, but I don't think you will when you see the tiger spring out from the jungle at us. But here we are. That is the nullah in which they say the tiger retires at night. I expect the beaters are lying all round in readiness, and as soon as we have taken up our station at its mouth they will begin " A shikari came up as they aj^proached the spot. " The tiger went out li*st night, Sahib, and finished the cow ; he came back before daylight, and the beaters are all in readiness to begin," The elephants were soon in position at the mouth of the ravine, which was some thirty yards across. At about the same distance in front of them the jungle of high, coarse grass and thick bush began. " If you were going to shoot, Bathurst, we would take ^Dost one each side, but as you are not going to I will place myself nearly in the centre, and if you are be- tween me and the rocks the tiger is pretty cert .in to go on the other side, as it will seem the most open to him. Now we are ready," he said to the saikari. The later waved a white rag on the top of a long stick, and at the signal a tremendous hubbub of gongs and tom-toms, mingled with the shouts of numbers of the men, arose. The Doctor looked across at his com- panion. His face was white and set, his muscles twitched convulsively; he was looking straight in front of him, his teeth set hard. "An interesting case," the Doctor muttered to him- self, " if it h. I been any one else than Bathurst. I f i If nowing igh you time." )o well, ^ou see now, as nervous )ot with you are nt," the t feel it, r spring That is ■t night, adiness, n at its ot. [finished ; beaters louth of DSS. At angle of uld take o I will are be- rtain to open to i. a long gongs nbers of lis com- muscles in front to him- urst. I f IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 183 f expect the tiger will be some little time before it is down, Bathurst," he said, in a quiet voice. Three times he repeated the observation, each time raising his voice higher, before Bathurst heard him. "The sooner it comes the better," Bathurst said be- tween his teeth. "I would rather face a hundred tigers than this infernal din." A quarter of an hour passed, and the Doctor, rifle in hand, was watching the bushes in front, when he saw a slight movement among the leaves on his right, the' side on which Bathurst was stationed. "That's him, Bathurst; he has headed back; he caught sight of either your elephant or mine ; he will make a bolt in another minute now unless he turns back on the beaters. " A minute later there was a gleam of tawny yellow among the long grass, and quick as thought the Doctor fired. With a sharp snarl the tiger leaped out and with two short bounds sprang on to the head of the elephant ridden by Bathurst. The mahout gave a cry of pain, for the talons of one of the forepaws was fixed in his leg. Bathurst leaned forward and thrust the spear he held deep into the animal's neck. At the same mo- ment the Doctor fired again, and the tiger shot through the head fell dead, while with a start Bathurst lost his balance and fell over the elephant's head on to the body of the tiger. It was fortunate indeed for him that the ball had passed through the tiger's skull from ear to ear, and that life was extinct before it touched the ground. Bathurst sprang to his feet, shaken and bewildered, but otherwise unhurt. " He is as dead as a door nail," the Doctor shouted, " and lucky for you he was so ; if he had had a kick left in him you would have been badly torn. " " I should never have fallen off, " Bathurst said angrily, " if you had not fired. I could have finished him with a spear. " " You might or you might not, I could not wait to think about that ; the tiger had struck its claws into the mahout's leg, and would have had him off the elephant 1 84 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. in another moment. That is a first-rate animal you were riding on or he would have turned and bolted; if he had done so you and the mahout would have both been off to a certainty. " By this time, the shouts of some natives, who had taken their posts in some trees near, told the beaters that the shots they had heard had been successful, and with shouts of satisfaction they came rushing down. The Doctor at once dispatched one of them to bring up his trap and Bathurst's horse, and then examined the tiger. It was a very large one, and the skin was in good condition, which showed that he had not taken to man- eating long. The Doctor bound up the wound on the mahout's leg, and then superintended the skinning of the animal while waiting for the arrival of the trap. When it came up, he said, " You might as well take a seat by my side, Bathurst , the syce will sit behind and lead your horse." Having distributed money among the beaters, the Doctor took his place in his trap, the tiger skin was rolled up and placed under the seat, Bathurst mounted beside him, and they started. "There, you see. Doctor," Bathurst, who had not opened his lips from the time he had remonstrated with the Doctor for firing, said, " you see it is of no use. I was not afraid of the tiger, for I knew that you were not likely to miss, and that in any case it could not reach me on the elephant. I can declare that I had not a shadow of fear of the beast, and yet directly that row began, my nerves gave way altogether. It is hide- ous, and yet the moment the tiger charged I felt per- fectly cool again, for the row ceased as you fired your first shot. I struck it just behind the shoulder, and I was about to thrust the spear right down and I believe should have killed it if you had not fired again and startled me so that I fell from the elephant." " I saw that the shouting and noise unnerved you, Bathurst, but I saw too that you were perfectly cool and steady when you planted your spear into him. If ■ IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 185 leve and r it had not got hold of the mahout's leg, I should not have fired." " Is there nothing to be done, Doctor? You know now what it is likely we shall have to face with the Sepoys, and what it will be with me if they rise. Is there nothing you can do for me?" The Doctor shook his head. " I don't believe in Dutch courage in any case, Bathurst. Certainly not in yours. There is no saying what the effect of spirits might be. I should not recommend them, lad. Of course^ I can understand your feelings, but I still believe that even if you do badly to begin with, you will pull round in the end. I have no doubt you will get a chance to show that it is only nerve and not courage in which you are deficient." Bathurst was silent, and scarce another word was spoken during the drive back to Deennugghur. The place had its accustomed appearance until they drove up. The Doctor, as he drew up before his bunga- low, said, " Thank God, they have not begun yet. I was half afraid we might have found they had taken Advantage of most of us being away, and have broken out before we got back. " " So was I„ ' Bathurst said. " I have been thinking of nothing else since we started." " Well, I will go to the Major at once and see what arrangements have been made, and whether there is any further news.''" "I shall go off on my rounds," Bathurst said. "I had arranged yesterday to be at Nilpore this morning, and there will be time for me to get there now. It is only eleven o'clock yet. I shall go about my work as usual until matters come to a head." The Doctor found that the Major was over at the tent which served as the orderly office, and at once followed him there. " Nothing fresh, Major?" " No ; we have found everything going on as usual. It has been decided to put the court-house as far as we can in a state of defence. I shall have the spare am- munition quietly taken over there, with stores of pro- h ^, IMAGE EVALUATION TEST TARGET (MT-3) .^/ /. fc 1.0 1.1 •50 ~ "^ ■is m the garden. It was only an order to the men and male servants, but the ladies had all gone out to render their assistance. As fast as the natives filled the bags with earth the ladies sewed up the mouths of the bags and the men carried them away and piled them against the gate. The garrison consisted of the six military officers, the Doctor, seven civilians, ten ladies, eight children, thirty-eight male servants, and six females. The work^ therefore, went on rapidly, and in the course of two hours so large a pile of bags was built up against the gate that there was no probability whatever of its be- ing forced. "Now," the Major said, "we want four dozen bags at least for the parapet of the terrace. We need not raise it all, but we must build up a breastwork two bags high at each of the angles. " There was only just time to accomplish this when one of the watch on the roof reported that the Sepoys were firing the bungalows. As soon as they saw that the Europeans had gained the shelter of the court-house the Sepoys, with yells of triumph, had made for the houses of the Europeans, and their disappointment at finding that not only had all the whites taken refuge in the court-house, but that they had removed most of their property, vented itself in setting fire to the build- ings, after stripping them of everything, and then amused themselves by keeping up a straggling fire against the court-house. As soon as the bags were taken on to the roof, the defenders, keeping under the shelter of the two para- pets, carried them to the comers of the terrace, and piled them two deep on the parapet, these forming a breastwork four feet high. Eight of the best shots were then chosen, and two of them took post at each comer. " Now," the Doctor said cheerfully, as he sat behind a small loop-hole that had been left between the bags, " it is our turn, and I don't fancy we shall waste as much lead as you have been doing. " The fire from the defenders was slow, but it was ill fl' ao8 IN THE LAYS OF THE MUTINY. deadly, and in a very short time the Sepoys no longt r dared to show themselves in the open, but took refuj^e behind trees, whence they endeavored to reply to the fire on the roof, but even this proved so dangerous that it was not long before the fire ceased altogether, and they drew off under cover of the smoke from the burn- ing bungalows. Isobel Hannay had met Bathurst as he was carrying a sack of earth to the roof. " I have been wanting to speak to you, Mr. Bathurst, ever since yesterday evening, but you have never given me an opportunity. Will you step into the store-room for a few minutes as you come down?" As he came down he went to the door of the room in which Isobel was standing awaiting him. " I am not coming in, Miss Hannay. I believe I know what you are going to say. I saw it in your face last night when I had to tell that tiger story. You want to say that you are sorry you said that you despised cowards. Do not say it ; you were perfectly right ; you cannot despise me one-tenth as much as I despise my- self. While you were looking at the mutineers from the roof I was leaning against the wall below well-nigh fainting. What do you think my feelings must be that here, where every man is brave, where there are wo- men and children to be defended, I alone cannot bear my part? Look at my face, I know there is not a vestige of color in it ; look at my hands, they are not steady yet. It is useless for you to speak; you may pity me, but you cannot but despise me. Believe me, that death when it comes will be to me a happy release in- deed from the shame and misery I feel." Then, turning, he left the girl without another word, and went about his work. The Doctor had, just before going up to take his place on the roof, come across him. "Come in here, my dear Bathurst," he said, seizing his arm and dragging him into the room which had been given up to him for his drugs and surgical appli- ances, " let me give you a strong dose of ammonia and ginger; you want a pick-up, I can see by your face." "I want it, Doctor, but I will not take it," Bathurst ongtr to the IS that T, and burn- rrying thurst, • given e-room oom in lieve I ur face . You espised lit; you ise my- from 1-nigh 36 that re wo- )t bear vestige steady ty me, 3, that ase in- word, before 5S him. seizing :h had appli- lia and ^ce. ithurst IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. •09 t said. " That is one thing I have made up my mind to. I will take no spirits to create a courage that I do not possess. " " It is not courage ; it has nothing to do with cour- age, " the Doctor said angrily. " It is a simple ques- tion of nerves, as I have told you over and over again. " " Call it what you like. Doctor, the result is precisely the same. I do not mind taking a strong dose of qui- nine if you will give it me, for I feel as weak as a child, but no spirits. " With an impatient shrug of the shoulders the Doctor mixed a strong dose of quinine and gave it to him. An hour later a sudden outburst of musketry took place. Not a native showed himself on the side of the house facing the maidan, but from the gardens on the other three sides a heavy fire was opened. " Every man to the roof," the Major said, " four men to each of the rear comers, three to the others. Do you think you are fit to fire, Forster? Had you not better keep quiet for to-day? You will have opportunities enough. " "I am all right. Major," he said carelessly. "I can put my rifle through a loop-hole and fire, though I have one arm in a sling. By Jove!" he broke off sud- denly, "look at that fellow Bathurst, he looks like a ghost." The roll of musketry was unabated, and the defenders were already beginning to answer it, the bullets sang thickly overhead, and above the din could be heard the shouts of the natives. Bathurst's face was rigid and ghastly pale. The Major hurried to him. " My dear Bathurst," he said, " I think you had better go below. You will find plenty of work to do there. " " My work is here, " Bathurst said, as if speaking to himself, " it must be done. " The Major could not at the moment pay further at- tention to him, for a roar of fire broke out round the enclosure from the ruined bungalows and every bush as the Sepoys, who had crept up, now commenced the attack in earnest, while the defenders, lying behind the parapet, replied slowly and steadily, aiming at the puffs 14 aio IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. of smoke as they darted out. His attention wm sud- denly called by a shout from the Doctor : " Are you mad, Bathurst? Lie down, man, you are throwing away your life." Turning round the Major saw Bathurst standing upright by the parapet, facing the point where the enemy's fire was hottest. He held a rifle in his hand, but did not attempt to fire; his figure swayed slightly to and fro. "Lie down," the Major shouted. "Lie down, sir," and then as Bathurst still stood unmoved he was about to rush forward, when the Doctor from one side and Captain Forster from the other rushed toward Bathurst througii a storm of bullets, seized him in their arms, and dragged him back to the centre of the terrace. "Nobly done, gentlemen," the Major said as they laid Bathurst down ; " it was almost miraculous your not being hit." Bathurst had struggled fiercely for a moment, and then his resistance had suddenly ceased and he had been dragged back like a wooden figure. His eyes were closed now. " Has he been hit, Doctor?" the Major asked. " It seems impossible he can have escaped. What madness possessed him to put himself there as a target?" " No, I don't think he is hit," the Doctor said, as he examined him. " I think he has fainted. We had bet- ter carry him down to my room. Shake hands, Forster; I know you and Bathurst were not good friends, and you risked your life to save him." " I did not think who it was, " Forster said with a careless laugh. " I saw a man behaving like a madman and naturally went to pull him down. However, I shall think better of him in future, though I doubt whether he was in his right senses." "He wanted to be killed, " the Doctor said quietly, " and the effort that he made to place himself in the way of death must have been greater than either you or I can well understand, Forster. I know the circum- stances of his case. Morally I believe there is no braver man living than be is; physically he hus the IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 311 WM Sttd- you are standing here the lis hand, , slightly wn, sir," ras about side and Bathurst sir arms, ace. as they i your not lent, and I he had His eyes ;ed. " It madness d, as he lad bet- Forster ; nds, and with a madman r, I shall whether quietly. If in the r you or circum- e is no 1)^ tliQ constitution of a timid woman: it is mind against body." "The distinction is too fine for me, Doctor," Forster said, as he turned to go off to his post by the parapet. " I understand pluck an'l I understand cowardice, but this mysterious mixture you speak of is beyond me altogether. " The Major and Doctor Wade lifted Bathurst and car- ried him below. Mrs. Hunter, who had been appointed chief nurse, met them. " Is he badly wounded. Doctor?" "No; he is not wounded at all, Mrs. Hunter. He stood up at the edge of the parapet and exposed him- self so rashly to the Sepoys' fire that we had to drag him away, and then the reaction, acting on a nervous temperament, was too much for him, and he fainted. We shall soon bring him round. You can come in with me, but keep the others away. " The Major at once returned to the terrace. In spite of the restoratives the Doctor poured through his lips and cold water dashed in his face, Bathurst was some time before he opened his eyes. Seeing Mrs. Hunter and the Doctor beside him, he made an effort to rise. "You must be still, Bathurst, " the Doctor said, press- ing his hand on his shoulder. " You have done a very foolish thing, a very wrong thing. You have tried to throw away your life. " " No, I did not. I had no thought of throwing away my life," Bathurst said, after a pause. "I was trying to make myself stand fire. I did not think whether I should be hit or not. I am not afraid of bullets, Doctor; * it's the horrible, fiendish noise that I cannot stand." " I know, my boy, " the Doctor said kindly, " but it comes to the same thing. You did put yourself in the way of bullets when your doing so was of no possible advantage, and it is almost a miracle that you escaped unhurt. You must remain here quiet for the present. I shall leave you in charge of Mrs. Hunter. There is nothing for you to do on the roof at present. This attack is a were Qwtbreak of rage qo the part of the ai3 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. Sepoys that we have all escaped them. They know well enough they can't take this house by merely firing away at the roof. When they attack in earnest it will be quite time for you to take part in the affair again. Now, Mrs. Hunter, my order? are absolute that he is not to be alio ved to get up." On the Doctor leaving the room he found several of the ladies outside ; the news that Mr. Bathurst had been carried down had spread among them. " Is he badly hurt. Doctor?" " No, ladies. Mr. Bathurst is, unfortunately for himself, an extremely nervous man, and the noise of fire-arms has an effect upon him that he cannot by any effort of his own overcome. In order, as he says, to try and accustom himself to it he went and stood at the edge of the parapet in full sight of the Sepoys and let them blaze away at him. He must have been killed if Forster and I had not dragged him away by main force. Then came the natural reaction and he fainted. That is all there is about it. Poor fellow, he is ex- tremely sensitive on the ground of personal courage. In other respects I have known him do things requiring an amount of pluck that not one man in a hundred possesses, and I wish you all to remember that his nervousness at the effect of the noise of fire-arms is a purely constitutional weakness, for which he is in no way to be blamed. He has just risked his life in the most reckless manner, in order to overcome what he considers, and what he knows that some persons con- sider, is cowardice, and it would be as cruel and, I may say, as contemptible to despise him for a constitutional failing as it would be to despise a person for being born a humpback or a cripple. But I cannot stand talking any longer. I shall be more useful on the roof than I am here." Isobel Hannay was not among those who had gath- ered near the door of the room in which Bathurst was lying, but the Doctor had raised his voice and she heard what he said, and bent over her work of sewing strips of linen together for bandages with a paler face than had been caused by the outbreak of musketry. 4 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 213 y know ly firing t it will • again, it he is veral of lad been :ely for noise of mot by he says, stood at )oys and 3n killed by main fainted, le is ex- ^ourage. quiring hundred hat his rms is a in no e in the what he )ns con- Imay utional ng born talking than I d gath- irst was e heard strips ce than Gradually the firing ceased ; the Sepoys had suffered he-:vily from the steady fire of the invisible defenders, and gradually drew off, and in an hour from the com- mencement of the attack all was silent round the build- ing. "So far so good, ladies," the Major said cheerily, as the garrison, leaving one man on watch, descended from the roof. " We have had no casualties, and I think we must have inflicted a good many, and the mutineers are not likely to try that game on again, for they must see that they are wasting ammunition, and are not likely to frighten us. Now I hope the servants have got tiffin ready for us, for I am sure we have all excel- lent appetites. " "Tiffin is quite ready. Major," Mrs. Doolan, who had been appointed chief of the commissariat depart- ment, said cheerfully. "The servants were a little disorganized when the firing began, but they soon became accustomed to it, and I think you will find everything in order in the hall." The meal was really a cheerful one; the fact that the first attack had passed over without any one being hit raised the spirits of the women, and all were disposed to look at matters in a cheerful light. The two young subalterns were in high spirits, and the party were more lively than they had been since the first outbreak of the mutiny. All had felt severely the strain of wait- ing, and the reality of danger was a positive relief after the continuous suspense. It was much to them to know that the crisis had come at last, that they were still all together and the foe were without. "It is difficult to believe," Mrs. Doolan said, "that it was only yesterday evening we were all gathered at the Major's. It seems an age since then." "Yes, indeed," Mrs. Rintoul agreed; "the night seemed endless. The worst time was the waiting till we were to begin to move over. After that I did not so much mind, though it seemed more like a week than a night while the things were being brought in here." " I think the worst time was while we were waiting watching from the roof to see whether the troops would I B \> ( • r \ i I n« - i mi r I'll Si I 1 A I #:y 21^ IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. come out on parade as usual," Isobel said. "When once uncle and the others were all in, and Captain Forster, and the gates were shut, it seemed that our anxieties were over." **That was a mad charge of yours, Forster," the Major said. " It was like the Balaclava business, mag- nificent, but it wasn't war." " I did not think of it one way or the other," Captain Forster laughed. " I was so furious at the insolence ()f those dogs attacking me that I thought of nothing else, and just wei;t at them; but, of course, it was foolish." "It did good," the Doctor said. "It showed the Sepoys how little we thought of them, and how a single white officer was ready to match himself against a squadron. \t will render them a good deal more care- ful in their attack than they otherwise would have been. It brought them under our fire, too, and they suffered pretty heavily, and I am sure the infantry must have lost a good many men from our fire just now. I hope they will come to the conclusion that thw best thing they can do is to march away to Delhi and leave us severely alone. Now what are j'our orders. Major, for after breakfast?" " I think the best thing is for every one to lie down for a few hours," the Major said. " No one had a wink of sleep last night, and most of us have not slept much for some nights past. We must always keep two men on the roof to be relieved every two hours. T will draw lip a regular rota for duty, but except those two the rest had better take good sleep. We may be all called upon to be under arms at night. " " I will go on the first relief, Major," the Doctor said. " I feel particularly wide-awake. It is nothing new to me to be up all night. Put Bathurst down with me," he said, in a low tone, as the Major rose from the table. " He knows that I understand him, and it will be less painful for him to be with me than with any one else. I will go up at once, and send young Harpur down to his breakfast. There will be no occasion to have Bath- urrt up this 'iime. The Sepoys are not likely to be IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. ai5 '• When [Captain liat our r," the s, mag. Captain solence nothing it was red the I single ainst a re care- re been, jutfered st have I hope t thing ave us or, for down a wink t much vo men T will )se two be all 3r said, new to h me," 5 table, be less le else. 3wn to 3 Bath- to be trying any pranks at present. No doubt they have gone back to their lines to get a meal. " The Doctor had not been long at his post when Isobel Hannay came up on to the terrace. They had seen each other alone comparatively little of late, as tho Doctor had given up his habit of dropping in for a chat in the morning since their conversation about Bathurst. " Well, my dear, what is it?" he asked. " This is no place for you, for there are a few fellows still lurking among the trees, and they send a shot over the house occasionally." " I came up to say that I am sorry, Doctor. " "That is right, Isobel. Always say you are sorry when you are so, although in nine cases out of ten, and this is one of them, the saying so is too late to do much good." " I think you are rather hard upon me. Doctor. I know you were speaking at me to-day when you were talking to the others, especially in what you said at the end." " Perhaps I was, but I think you quite deserved it, " " Yes, I know I did, but it was hard to tell me it was as contemptible to despise a man for a physical weak- ness he could not help as to despise one for being born humpbacked or a cripple, when you know that my brother was so." " I wanted you to feel that your conduct had b-^en contemptible, Isobel, and I put it in the way that was mopt likely to come home to you. I have been disap- pointed in you. I thought you were more sensible than the run of young women, and I found out that you were not. I thought you had some confidence in my judgment, but it turned out that you had not. If Bath- urst had been killed when he was standing up a target for the Sepoys, I should have held you morally responsi- ble for his death. " " You would have shared the responsibility, anyhow, Doctor, for it was you who repeated my words to him." "We will not go over that ground again," said the Doctor quietly. " I gave you my reasons for doing so, and those reasons are to my mind convincing. Now I 2l6 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUtmV. will tell you how this constitutional nervousness on his part arose. He told me the story, but as at that time there had been no occasion for him to show whether he was brave or otherwise, I considered my lips sealed. Now that this weakness has been exhibited, I consider myself more than justified in explaining its origin." And he then repeated the story Bathurst had told him. "You see," he said, when he had finished, "it is a constitutional matter beyond his control ; it is a sort of antipathy. I have known a case of a woman courage- ous in all other respects, who at the sight of even a dead cockroach would faint dead away ; one of the most gallant officers of my acquaintance would turn pale at the sight of a spider. Certainly no one would have thought of calling either one or the other cowards, and certainly such a name should not be applied to a man who would face a tiger armed only with a whip in de- fence of a native woman, because his nerves go all to pieces at the sound of fire-arms. " " If you had told me all this before I should never have spoken as I did," Isobel pleaded. " I did not go into the full details, but I told you that he was not responsible for his want of firmness under fire, and that I know him in other respects to be a brave man, " the Doctor said uncompromisingly. " Since then you hpve by your manner driven him away from you. You have flirted — well, you may not call it flirting," he broke off in answer to a gesture of denial, " but it was the same thing, with a man who is undoubtedly a gal- lant soldier — a very paladin if you like — but who in spite of his handsome face and pleasant manner is no more to be compared with Bathurst in point of moral qualities or mental ability than light to dark, and this after I had like an old fool gone out of my way to warn you. You have disappointed me altogether, Isobel Hannay. " Isobel stood motionless before him, with downcast eyes. "Well, there, my dear," the Doctor went on hur- riedly, as he saw a tear glisten in her eyelashes, " don't let us say anything more about it. In the first place it i IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTInV. 417 is no affair of mine, and in the second place, your point of view was that most women would take at a time like this, only, you know, I expected you would not have done just as other women would. We cannot afford to quarrel now, for there is no doubt that although we may put a good face on the matter, our position is one of grave peril, and it is of no use troubling over trifles. Now run away, and get a few hours' sleep if you can. You will want all your strength before we are through with this business." st Ir- I't it While the Doctor had been talking to Isobel the men had gathered below in a sort of informal council, the subject being Bath lot's conduct on the roof. "I would not have believed it if I had not seen it," Captain Rintoul said. " The man was absolutely help- less with fright. I never saw such an exhibition ; and then his fainting afterward and having to be carried away \\ as disgusting ; in fact, it is worse than that. " There was a general murmur of assent. " It is disgraceful," one of the civilians said. " I am ashamed that the man should belong to our service ; the idea of a fellow being h«..ipless by fright when there are women and children to be defended, it is down- right revolting. " "Well, he did go and stick himself up in front," Wilson said; "you should remember that. He may have been in a blue funk, I don't say he wasn't; still, you know, he didn't go away and try to hide himself, but he stuck himself up in front for them to fire at. I think we ought to take that into consideration." " Doctor Wade says Bathurst put himself there to try and accustom himself to fire," Captain Forster said. "Mind, I don't pretend to like the man; we were at school together, and he was a coward then and a sneak, but for all that one should look at it fairly. The Doc- tor asserts that Bathurst is morally brave, but that somehow or other his nerves are too much for him. I don't pretend to understand it myself, but there is no doubt about the Doctor's pluck, and I don't think he would stand up for Bathurst as he does unless he really 9l8 IN THE DAYS Of THE MUTINY. 11 1 1 thought he was not altogether accountable for showing the white feather. I think, too, from what he let drop, that the Major is to some extent of the same opinion. What do you think, Doolan?" "I like Bathurst," Captain Doolan said. "I have always thought him a first-rate fellow, but one can't stick up, you know, for a fellow who can't behave as a gentleman ought to, especially when there are women and children in danger. " " It is quite impossible that we should associate with him," Captain Kintoul said. " I don't propose that we should tell him what we think of him, but I think wc ought to leave him severely alone." " I should say that he ought to be sent to Coventry," Richards said. " I should not put it in that way," Mr. Hunter said gravely. " I have always esteemed Bathurst. I look upon it as a terribly sad case, but I agree with Captain Rintoul that in the position in which we are now placed a man who proves himself to be a coward must be made to feel that he stands apart from us. I should not call it sending him to Coventry, or anything of that sort, but I do think that we should express by our manner that we don't wish to have any communication with him." There was a general expression of assent to this opinion, Wilson alone protesting against it. "You can do as you like," he said, "but certainly I shall speak to Bathurst, and I am sure the Doctor and Major Hannay will do so. I don't want to stand up for a coward, but I believe what the Doctor says. I have seen a good deal of Bathurst, and I like him ; be- sides, haven't you heard the story the Doctor has been telling about his attacking a tiger with a stick to save a native woman? I don't care what any one says, a fellow who is a downright coward couldn't do a thing like that." " Who told the Doctor about it?" Farquharson asked. "If he got it from Bathurst I don't think it goes for much after what we have seen. " Wilson would have replied angrily, but Captain Doolan put his hand on his shoulder. •1 I IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. ai9 "Shut up, Wilson," he said, "this is no time for dis- putes ; we are all in one boat here and must row to- gether like brothers. You go your own way about Bathurst, I don't blame you for it; he is a man every one has liked, a first-rate official, and a good fellow all round, except he is not one of the sociable kind. At any other time one would not think so much of this, but at present for a man to lack courage is for him to lack everything. I hope he will come better out of it than it looks at present. He will have plenty of chances here, and no one will be more glad than I shall to see him pull himself together." The Doctor, however, would have quarrelled with every one all round when he heard what had been de- cided upon, had not Major Hannay taken him aside and talked to him strongly. " It will never do, Doctor, to have quarrels here, and as commandant I must beg of you not to make this a personal matter. I am very sorry for this poor fellow. I accept entirely your view of the matter, but at the same time I really can't blame the others for looking at it from a matter of fact point of view. Want of cour- age is at all times regarded by men as the most unpar- donable of failings, and at a time like the present this feeling is naturally far stronger even than usual. I hope, with you, that Bathurst will retrieve himself yet, but we shall certainly do him no good by trying to fight his battle until he does. You and I, thinking as we do, will of course make no alteration in our manner toward him. I am glad to hear that young Wilson also stands as his friend. ^ave youeredit for more sense, Jem," Mrs. Doolan said indij>nantly, " and if you think that I am jjonijj to aj^reewith you men you are very much mistaken. You are ready to associate with a man like Forster, who is a notorious scamp, and you set yourself up aj^'ainst Hath- iirst, who is worth a thousand of him. I am ashamed of you." Isobel Hannay had turned pale when she heard the news, but had said nothing. CHAPTER XIV. But though obliged to defer to Major Hannay's wishes, and to abstain from arguing the qiiestion of Bathurst being given the cold shoulder, with the men. Doctor Wade had already organized the ladies in his favor. During the afternoon he had told them the tiger story, and had confidentially informed them how it was that Bathurst from his birth had been the victim of something like nervous paralysis at all loud sounds, especially those of the discharge of fire-anus. "Misconduct to-day," he said, "and his courage in rescuing that native girl from the tiger, illustrate his character. lie is cool, brave, and determined, as might be expected from a man of so well-balanced a mind as his, and even when his nerves utterly broke down im- der the din of musketry, his will was so far dominant that he forced himself to go forward and stand there under fire, an act which was, under the circumstances, simply heroic." There is little difficulty in persuading women as to the merits of a man they like, and Bathurst had, dur- ing the last month, been much more appreciated than before by the ladies of Deennugghur. They had felt that there was something strange and charming in his presence, for while not attempting to minimize the IN TH£ DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 331 danger, there was a calm confidence in his manner that comforted and reassured those he talked to. In the last twenty-four hours, too, he had unob- trusively performed many little kindnesses; had aided in the removals, carried the children, looked after the servants, and had been foremost in the arrangement of everything that could add to the comfort of the ladies. "I am glad you have told us all about it. Doctor," Mrs. Doolan said ; " and, of course, no one would dream of blaming him. I had heard that story about his leav- ing the army years ago; but although I had only seen him once or twice I did not believe it for a minute. What you tell us now, Doctor, explains the whole mat- ter. I pity him sincerely. It must be something awful for a man at a time like this not to be able to take his part in the defence, especially when there are us women here. Why, it would pain me less to see Jem brought in dead, than for him to show the white feather. What can we do for the poor fellow?" " Treat him just as usual. There is nothing else you can do, Mrs. Doolan. Any tone of sympathy, still less of pity, would be the worst thing possible. He is in the lowest depths at present ; but if he finds by your tone and manner that you regard him on the same foot- ing as before, hev/ill gradually come round, and I hope that before the end of the siege he will have opportuni- ties of retrieving himself. Not under fire, that is hope- less, but in other ways." "You may be sure we will do all we can. Doctor," Mrs. Doolan said warmly; "and there are plenty of ways he will be able to make himself most useful. There is somebody wanted to look after all those syces and servants, and it would be a comfort to us to have some one to talk to occasionally; besides all the chil- dren are fond of him." This sentiment was warmly echoed, and so it was that when the determination of the men to cut Bathurst became known, there was something like a feminine revolution. "You may do as you like," Mrs. Doolan said indig- nantly ; " but if you think that we are going to lo any- •aa IN TME DAYS OF THE MUTINY. thing SO cruel and unjust you are entirely mistaken, I can tell you. " Mrs. Rintoul was equally emphatic, and Mrs. Hunter quietly, but with equal decision, protested. "I have always regarded Mr. Bathurst as a friend," she said, " and I shall continue to do so. It is very sad for him that he cannot take part in the defence, but it is no more fair to blame him than it would be to blame us, because we, too, are non-combatants. " Isobel Hannay had taken no part in the first discus- sion amwng the ladies, nor did she say anything now. "It is cruel and imjust,"sho said to herself; "but they only think as I did. I was more cruel and unjust than they, for there was no talk of danger then. I ex- pressed my contempt of him because there was a sus- picion that he had showed cowardice ten years ago, while they have seen it shown now when thevQ is fear- ful peril. If they are cruel and unjust, what was I?" Later on the men gathered together at one end of the room and talked rver the situation. " Doctor Wade," the Major said quietly, " I shall be obliged if you will go and ask Mr. Bathurst to join us. He knows the people round here better than any of us, and his opinion will be valuable. " The Doctor, who had several times been in to see Bathurst, v/ent to his room. "The Major wants you to join us, Bathurst; we are having a talk over things, and he wishes to have your opinion. I had better tell you that the camp is divided into two parties. On one side are the Major, Wilson, and myself and all the ladies, who take, I need not say, a common-sense view of the matter, and recognize that you have done all a man could do to overcome your constitutional nervousness, and that there is no dis- credit whatever attached to you personally. The rest of the men, I am sorry to say at present, take another view of the case, and are disposed to show you the cold shoulder. " "That, of course," Bathurst said quietly; "as to the ladies' view of it, I know that it is only the TQSVU Qf your good olfiQes, Doctor." ■; IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 323 see 5 are " Then you will come, " the Doctor said, pleased that Bathurst seemed less depressed than he had expected. '* Certainly I will come, Doctor," Bathurst said, rising, " the worst is over now — every one knows that I am a coward, that is what I have dreaded. There is nothing else for me to be afraid of, and it is of no use hiding myself. " "We look quite at home here, Mr. Bathurst, don't we?" Mrs. Doolan said cheerfully as he passed her, * and I think we all feel a great deal more comfortable than we did when you gave us your warning last night ; the anticipation is always worse than the reality." "Not always, I think, Mrs. Doolan," he sai*^ quietly; " but you have certainly made yourselves wonderfully at home, though your sewing is of a more practical kind than that upon which you are ordinarily engaged." Then he passed on with the Doctor to the other end of the room. The Major nodded as he came up. "All right again now, Bathurst, I hope? We want your opinion, for you know, I think, more of the Zem- indars in this part of the country than any of us. Of course, the question is, will they take part against us?" " I am afraid they will, Major. I had hoped other- wise, but if it be true that the Nana has gone — and as the other part of the message was correct, I have no doubt this is so also — I ai 1 afraid they will be carried away with the stream." "And you think they have guns?" " I have not the least doubt of it ; the number given up was a mere fraction of those they were said to have possessed. " " I had hoped the troops would have marched away after the lesson we gave them this morning, but, so far as we can make out, there is no sign of movement in their lines; however, they may start at daybreak to- morrow. " "I will go out to see if ;^qu like, Major," Bathurst said quietly. " I can get sj^aljive clothes from the ser- vants, and I speak the la^^uage well enough to pa^ as a native; so if you giv^ijne, permission I will gio ou^t^. 1^ the lines ^n4 kam wViM their intentiooa are."^ ' ! f i 834 IN THE DAYS OK THE MUTINY. "It would be ft very danj^eroiis undertaking," the Major said grav^ely. ** I have no fear whatever of danj^^er of that kind, Major; my nerves are steady enoujfh, ex'jept when there is a noise of fire-arms, and tlicn, as you all saw this mornini;^, I cannot control them do what I will. Risks of any other kind I am (juitL; prepared to under- take, but in this matter I tliink the risk is very slight, the only difTiculty beinj^ to )^et throuj'h the line of sentries they have no doubt posted round the house ; once past them I think tliere is practically no risk whatever of their recognizing me when made up as a native. The Doctor lias, no doubt, got some iodine in his sur- gery, and a coat of that will bring me to the right color. " " Well, if you are ready to imdertake it I will not re- fuse," the Major said. "How would you propose to get out?" " I noticed yesterday that the branches of one of the trees in the garden entered beyond the top of the wall. I will climb up that and lower myself on the other side by a rope, that is a very simple matter. The spot is close to the edge of Mr. Hunter's compound, and I shall work my way through the slirubs there till I feel sure I am beyond any sentries that may be posted there; the chances are that they will not be thick anywhere ex- cept opposite the gate. By the way, Captain Forster, before I go I must thank you for having risked your life to save mine this morning. I heard from Mr. Hunter that it was you and the Doctor who rushed for- ward and drew me back." " It is not worth talking about," Captain Forster said carelessly. " You seemed bent on making a target of 5'ourself, and as the Major's orders were that every one was to lie down there was nothing for it but to remove you." Bathurst turned to Doctor Wade. " Will you super- intend my get-up, Doctor?" "Certainly," the Doctor said with alacrity. "I will guarantee that, with the aid of my boy, I wi'll turn you out so that no one would know you even in broad day- light, saying nothing of the dark." IN THE DAYS OK THK MUTINY. 225 i A quarter of an hour sufficed to mctanv iose Bath- urst into an Oudc peasant. He did not arn to the room but, accompanied by the Doctor, n^a u his vay to the tree he had spoken of. "By the way, you have taken no arms," the Doctor said suddenly. "They would be useless, Doctor; if I am discovered I shall be killed ; if I am not discovered — and the chanceij are very slight of my being so — I shall get back safely. By the way, we will tie some knots on that rope before I let myself down. I used to be able to climb a rope without them, but I doubt whether I could do so now." " Well, God bless you, lad, and bring you back safely. You may make as light of it as you will, but it is a dangerous expedition. However, I am glad you have undertaken it, come what will, for it has given you the opportunity of showing you are not afraid of danger when it takes any other form than that of fire-arms. There are plenty of men who would stand up bravely enough in a fight who would not like to undertake this task of going out alone in the dark into the middle of these blood-thirsty scoundrels. How long do you think you will be?" "A couple of hours at the outside." "Well, at the end of an hour I shall be back here again. Don't be longer than you can help, lad for I shall be very anxious until you return." When the Doctor returned to the house there was a chorus of questions : "Has Mr. Bathurst started?" "Why did you not bring him in here before you left? We should all have liked to have said good-by to him." " Yes, he has gone. I have seen him over the wall ; and it was much better that he should go without any fuss. He went off just as quietly and unconcernedly as if he had been going out for an ordinary evening'^ walk. Now I am going up on to the roof. I don't say we should hear any hubbub down at the lines if he were discovered there, but we should certainly hear a shout if he came across any of the sentries round the bouse." 3a6 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. M^ ■ p^^ K 1' a ■1 ^ r ^^b'^' to' " Has he taken any arms, Doctor?" the Major asked. " None whatever, Major. I asked him if he would not take pistols, but he refused. " "Well, I don't understand that," Captain Forster re- marked. " If I had gone on such a business I would have taken a couple of revolvers. I am quite ready to take my chance of being killed fighting, but I should not like to be seized and hacked to pieces in cold blood. My theory is, a man should sell his life as dearly as he can. " "That is the animal instinct, Forster," the Doctor said sharply; " though I don't say that I should not feel the same myself ; but I question whether Bathurst's is not a higher type of courage." " Well, I don't aspire to Bathurst's type of courage, Doctor," Forster said with a short laugh. But the Doctor did not answer. He had already turned away, and was making for the stairs. "May! go with you, Doctor?" Isobel Hannaysaid, following him. " It is very hot down here. " "Yes. Come along, child; but there is no time to lose, for Bathurst must be near where they are likely to have posted their sentries by this time." "Everything quiet, Wilson?" he asked the young subaltern, who, with another, was on guard on the roof. " Yes. We have heard nothing except a few distant shouts and noises out at the lines. Round here there has been nothing moving, except that we heard some one go out into the garden just now. " "I went out with Bathurst," the Doctor said. "He has gone in the disguise of a native to the Sepoy lines, to find out what are their intentions." " I heard the talk over it, Doctor. I only came up on watch a few minutes since. I thought it was most likely him when I heard the steps." " I hope he is beyond their sentries," the Doctor said. " I have come up here to listen. " "I expect he is through them before this," Wilson said confidently. " I wish I could have gone with him ; but, of course, it would not have been any good. It is IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 227 iked. rould 3r re- vould idy to hould Dlood. as he Doctor ot feel •st's is lurage, already ay said, time to 3 likely young on the distant re there ,rd some d. "He ,oy lines, came np was most ctor said. " Wilson Jvithhim; od. It is } a beautiful night — isn't it, Miss Hannay? and there is scarcely any dew falling." " Now, you go off to your post in the comer, Wilson. Your instructions are to listen for the slightest sound, and to assure us against the Sepoys creeping up to the walls. We did not come up here to distract you from your duties, or to gossip." " There are Richards and another posted somewhere in the garden," Wilson said. "Still, I suppose you are right. Doctor; but if you, Miss Hannay, have come up to listen, come and sit in my corner, it is the one near- est to the lines. " " You may as well go and sit down, Isobel, " the Doc- tor said; "that is, if you intend to stay up here long," and they went across with Wilson to his post. " Shall I put one of these sand-bags for you to sit on?" "I would rather stand, thank you," and they stood for some time silently watching the fires in the lines. "They are drawing pretty heavily on the wood stores," the Doctor growled; "there is a good deal more than the regulation allowance blazing in those fires. I can make out a lot of figures moving about round them, no doubt numbers of the peasants have come in." " Do you think Mr. Bathurst has got beyond the line of sentries?" Isobel said, after standing perfectly quiet for some time. " Oh, yes, a long way ; probably he was through by the time we came up here. They are not likely to post them more than fifty or sixty yards from the wall ; and indeed, it is, as Bathurst pointed out to me, likely that they are only thick near the gate. All they want to do is to prevent us slipping away. I should think that Bathurst must be out near the lines by this time." Isobel moved a few paces away from the others and again stood listening. " I suppose you do not think that there is any chance of an attack to-night, Doctor?" Wilson asked in low tones. " Not in the least ; the natives are not fond of night work. I expect they are dividing the spoil and quar- azS IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 4^ I'f relling over it ; anyhow they have had enough of it for to-day. They may intend to march away in the morn- ing, or they may have sent to Cav/npore to ask for orders, or they may have heard from some of the Zem- indars that they are coming in to join them ; that is what Bathurst has gone out to learn, but, anyhow, I do not think they will attack again with their present force. " " I wish there were a few more of us," Wilson said; "so that we could venture on a sally-out." " So do I, lad ; but it is no use thinking about it as it is. We have to wait ; our fate is not in our own hands. " " And you thi^ik matters look bad, Doctor?" " I think they could hardly look worse. Unless the mutineers took it into their heads to march away, there is, humanly speaking, but one chance for us, and that is that Lawrence may thrash the Sepoys so completely at Lucknow that he may be able to send out a force to bring us in. The chances of that are next to nothing; for, in addition to a very large Sepoy force, he has the population of Lucknow — one of the most turbulent in India — on his hands. Ah, what is that?" Two musket-shots in quick succession from the Sepoy lines broke the silence of the evening, and a startled exclamation burst from the girl standing near them. The Doctor went over to her. "Do you think — do you think," she said in a low, strained voice ; " that it was Bathurst " " Not at all. If they detected him, and I really do not see that there is a chance of their doing so dis- guised as he was, they would have seized him and probably killed him, but there would be no firing. He has gone unarmed, you know, and would offer no re- sistance. Those shots you heard were doubtless the result of some drunken quarrel over the loot." " Do you really think so. Doctor?" " I feel quite sure of it. If it had been Forster who had gone out and he had been detected, it would have been natural enough that we should hear the sound of something like a battle. In the first place, he would have defended himself desperately, and in the next, he IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 229 it for mom- isk for e Zem- that is w, I do present )n said; t it as it I hands." iless the ay, there and that )nipletely a force to » nothing; ,e has the bulent in the Sepoy a startled r them. in a low, I really do ing so dis- a him and tiring. He )fEer no re- ubtless the (. »» Forster who would bave he sound of ce, he would the next, he might hav^ made his way through them and escaped; but, as I sail, with Bathurst there would be no occasion for their finng. " "V^hy didn't he come in to say good-by before he went? that is what I wanted to ask you, Doctor, and why I came up here. I wanted to havo spoken to him, if only for a moment, before he started. I tried to catch his eye as he went out of the room with you, but he did not even look at me. It will be so hard, if he never comes back, to know that he went away without my having spoken to him again. I did try this morn- ing to tell him that I was sorry for what I said, but he would not listen to me." "You will have an opportunity of telling him when he comes back, if you want to, or of showing him so by your manner, which would be, perhaps, less painful to both of you." "I don't care about pain to myself," the girl said. " I have been unjust, and deserve it." " I don't think he thinks you unjust. I did, and told you so. He feels what he considers the disgrace so much that it seems to him perfectly natural he should be despised." "Yes, but I want him to see that he is not despised," she said quickly. "You don't understand, Doctor." "I do undcT-itand perfectly, my dear; at 1 st, I think — I think I do ; I see that you want to put your- self straight with him, which is very right and proper, especially placed as we all are; but I would not do or say anything hastily. You have spoken hastily once, you see, and made a mess of it. I should be careful how I did it again, unless, of course " and he stopped. " Unless what, Doctor?" Isobel asked shyly, after a long pause. But there was no reply; and, looking round, she saw that her companion had moved quietly away and had joined Wilson at his post. She stood for a few minutes in the same attitude, and then moved quietly across to the staircase in thfi centre of the terrace, and went down to the party below. A short time later the Doctor followed her, and, taking his rifle, went HW 9$0 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. il ' '■> out into the garden with Captain Doolan, who assisted him in climbing a tree, and handed his gun up to him. The Doctor made his way out on the branch to the spot where it extended beyond the wall, and there sat, straining his eyes into the darkness. Half an hour passed, and then he heard a light footfall on the sandy soil. " Is that you, Bathurst?" he whispered. " All right. Doctor," and a minute later Bathurst* sat on the branch beside him. " Well, what's your news?" *' Verj" bad. Doctor ; they expect the Rajah For Sing, who it seems is the leader of the party in this district, and several other Zemindars to be here with guns to- morrow or next day. The news from Cawnpore was true. The native troops mutinied and marched away, but were joined by Nana Sahib and "hh force, and he persuaded them to return and attack .he whites in their entrenchments at Cawnpore, as they would not be well received at Delhi imless they had properly accom- plished their share of the work of rooting out the Ferin- ghees." "The infernal scoundrel!" the Doctor exclaimed; " after pretending for years to be our best friend; I'm disgusted to think that I have drunk his champagne a dozen times. However, that makes little difference to us now, your other news is the most important. We could have resisted the Sepoys for a month, but if they bring up guns there can be but one ending to it." "That is so, Doctor. The only hope I can see is, that they may find our resistance so obstinate, as to be glad to grant us tf^rms of surrender." " Yes, there is that chance," the Doctor agreed; " but history shows there is but little reliance to be placed upon native oaths." Bathurst was silent ; his own experience of the natives had taught him the same lesson. " It is a poor hope," he said after a while, "but it is the only one so far as 1 can see." Not another word was spoken as they descended the tree and walked across to the house. y "but )laced IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 231 ;d the i] "Never mind about changing your things, come straight in. " "Our scout has returned," the Doctor said, as he en- tered the room. There was a general exclamation of gladness on the part of the ladies who had not retired. " I am very glad to see you safe back, Mr. Bathurst," Mrs. Hunter said, going up to him and taking his hand. " We have all been very anxious since you left." "The danger was very slight, Mrs. Hunter. I only wish I had brought you back the news that the native lines wefe deserted and the mutineers in full march for Delhi and Lucknow." " I was afraid you would hardly bring that news, Mr. Bathurst ; it was almost too good to hope for. How- ever, we are all glad that you are back. Are we not, Isobel?" " We are indeed, Mr. Bathurst ; though, as yet, I can hardly persuade myself that it is you in that get-up. " " I think there is no doubt of my identity. Can you tell me where your uncle is, Miss Hannay? I have to make my report to him. " " He is on the roof. There is a sort of general gathering of our defenders there." Two lamps had been placed in the centre of the ter- race, and round these the little garr " ^on were grouped, some sitting on boxes, others lying on mats, almost all smoking. Bathurst v^as greeted heartily by the Major and Wilson as soon as he was recognized. "I am awfully glad to see you back," Wilson said, shaking him warmly by the hand. " I wish I could have gone with you. Two together does not seem so bad, but I should not like to start out by m ^If as you did." There was a hearty cordiality in the young fellow's voice that was very pleasant to Bathurst. " We have all our gifts, as Hawkeye used to say, as I have no doubt you remember, Wilson. Such gifts as I have lay in the way of solitary work, I fancy." "Now, light a cheroot, Bathurst," the Major said, " and drink off this tumbler of brandy and soda, and then Jet us hear your story. " 233 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. T' ' :i If i 11 ml cWf 'he story is simple enough, Major. I got through without difficulty. The sentries are some distance apart round the garden wall. As soon as I discovered by the sound of their footsteps where they were, it was easy enough to get through them. Then I made a longish detour, and came down on the lines on the other side. There was no occasion for concealment then. Numbers of the country people had come in, and were gathered round the Sepoys' fires, and I was able to move about among them and listen to the conversation without the smallest hindrance. " The Sepoys were loudly expressing their dissatis- faction at their officers leading them against the house to-day, when they had no means of either battering down the walls or scaling them. Then there was a general opinion that treachery was at work; for how else should the Europeans have known they were going to rise that morning, and so moved during the night into the house? There was much angry recrimination and quarrelling, and many expressed their regret they had not marched straight to Cawnpore after burning the bungalows. "All this was satisfactory; but I learned that Por Sing and several other Zemindars had already sent in assurances that they were wholly with them, and would be here, with guns to batter down the walls, some time to-morrow." "That is bad news, indeed," the Major said gravely, when he had finished. "Of course, when we heard that Nana Sahib had thrown in his lot W7'"h the muti- neers, it was probable that many of the land-owners would go the same way; but if the Sepoys had marched off they might not have attacked us on their own ac- count. Now we know that the Sepoys are going to stay, and that they will have guns, it alters our posi- tion altogether." There was a murmur of assent. " I should tell you before you talk the matter over further," Bathurst went on, "that during the last hour some hundreds of peasants have taken up their posts round the house in addition to the Sepoy sentries. I IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 233 came back with one party about a hundred strong. They are posted a couple of hundred yards or so in front of the gate. I slipped away from them in the dark and made my way here. " " Well, gentlemen, what do you think we had better do?" the Major said; "we are all in the same boat, and I should like to have your opinions. We may defend this very successfully for days, possibly we may eyen tire them out, but on the other hand they may prove too strong for us. If the wall were breached we could hardly hope to defend it, and, indeed, if they con- structed plenty of ladders they could scale it at night in a score of places. We must therefore regard the house as our citadel, close up the lower windows and doors with sand-bags, and defend it to the last. Still if they are determined the lookout is not a very bright one." " I am in favor of our cutting our way out. Major," Captain Forster said ; " if we are cooped up hei 3, we must, as you say, in the long run be beaten." " That would be all very well, Captain Forster, if we were all men, " Mr. Hunter said. " There are sixteen of us, and there are in all eighteen horses, for I and Farquharson have two each ; but there are eight women and fourteen children ; if all the horses carried double and counting two children as one woman, we might ride away if nobody opposed us ; but there are your troopers to begii with, and we certainly could not hope to escape from them with our horses so laden, and if they came up with us what fighting could we do with women?" " Besides, where could we go?" the Doctor as!.ed. '* The garrison at Cawnpore, we know, are besieged by overwhelming numbers. We do not know much as to the position at Lucknow, but certainly the Europeans arc immensely outnumbered there, and I think v;e may assume that they are also besieged. It is a very long distance either to Agra or to Allahabad, and with the whole country up in arms against us, and the cavalry here at our heels, the prospect seems absolutely hope- less. What do you think, Doolan? You and Rintoul 234 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. •21 have your wives here and you have children. I con- sider that the question concerns you married men more than us. " " It is a case of the frying-pan and the fire as far as I can see, Doctor. At any rate, here we have got walls to fight behind and food for weeks, and plenty of am- munition. I am for selling our lives as dearly as we can here rather than go outside to be chased like jackals." "I agree with you, Doolan," Captain Rintoul said. " We may be able to make terms with them, but onoe outside the walls, we should be at the scoundrels' mercy. If it were not for the women and children, I should agree entirely with Forster, that our best plan would be to throw open our gates and make a dash for it, keeping'togetheras long as we could and then, if neces- sary, separating and trying to make our way down to Agra or Allahabad as best we could, but with ladies that does not seem to be possible." The opinion of the married civilians was entirely in accord with that of Mr. Hunter. " But what hope is there of defending this place in the long run?" Captain Forster said. "If I saw any chance at all, I should be quite willing to wait, but I would infinitely rather sally out at once and go for them and be killed, than wait here day after day and per- haps week after week, seeing one's fate drawing nearer inch by inch. Whatdoyou say, Bathurst? We haven't had your opinion yet." " I do not think that the defence is so hopeless as you suppose, although I admit that the chances are greatly against us," Bathurst said quietly. " I think there is a hope of tiring the natives out. The Sepoys know well enough there can be no great amount of loot here, while they think that were they at Cawnpore, at Luck- now, or still more at Delhi, their chances of plunder would be much greater. Moreover, I think that men in their position, having offended as it were without hope or pardon, would naturally desire to flock together. There is comfort and encouragement in numbers. Therefore, I am sure they will very speedily become ,1 IN THE DAYS CF THE MUTINY. 235 impatient if they do not meet with success, and would be inclined to grant terms rather than waste time here. " It is the same thing with the native gentry. They will want to be off to Lucknow or Delhi, where they will know more how things are going, and where, no doubt, they reckon upon obtaining posts of importance and increased possessions, under the new order of things. Therefore, I think they, as wel as the Sepoys, are likely, if they find the task longer and more difficult than they expect, to be ready to grant terms. I have no great faith in native oaths. Still they might be kept. "Captain Forster's proposal I regard as altogether impracticable. We are something like two hundred and fifty miles from the nearest British post where we could hope to find refuge, and with the horses carry- ing double, the troopers at our heels directly we start, and the country hostile, I see no chance whatever, not a vestige of one, of our getting safely away. " But there is a third alternative by which some might escape: it is that we should make our way on foot, break up into parties of twos and threes; steal or fight our way through the sentries, and then for each party to shift for itself, making its way as best it can, travell ing by night and lying up in woods or planta- tions by day; getting food at times from friendly na- tives, and subsisting, for the most part, upon what may be gathered in the field. In that way some might es- cape, but the suffering and hardships of the women and children would be terrible." "I agree with you," Mr. Hunter said, "such a jour- ney would be frightful to contemplate, and I don't think, in our case, that my wife could possibly perform such a journey ; still some might do so. At any rate I think the chances are better than they would be were we to ride out in a body. I should suggest. Major, when the crisis seems to be approaching, that is, when it is clear that we can't defend ourselves much longer, it would be fair that each should be at liberty to try to get out and make down the country." " Certa'nly," the Major agreed ; " we are in a position w 236 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. ir i lit i of men on board a sinking; ship with the boats gone; we should try to the end to save the ship, but when all hope of doing that is over, each may try to get to shore as he best can. As long as the house can be defended, all must remain and bear their share in the struggle, but when we decide that it is but a question of hours, all who choose will be at liberty to try to escape." "It will be vastly rflore difficult then than now," Captain Forster said; " Bathurst made his way out to- night without difficulty, but they will be a great deal more vigilant when they know we cannot hold out much longer. I don't see how it would be possible for women and children to get through them." " We might then adopt your scheme, to a certain ex- tent, Forster," Major Hannay said; "we could mount, sally out suddenly, break through their pickets, and as soon as we are beyond them scatter; those who like can try to make their way down on horseback ;, those who prefer it try to do so on foot. That would at least give us an alternative should the siege be pushed on to the last, and we find ourselves unable to make terms." There was general assent to the Major's proposal, which seemed to offer better chances than any. There was the hope that the mutineers might tire of the siege and march away, that if they pressed it terms might be at last obtained from them, and that, failing every- thing else, the garrison might yet make their way down country. " As there is evidently no chance of an attack during the night," the Major said, "we will divide into twj watches and relieve each other every four hours, that will give two as lookouts on the roof and six in the en- closure. As you are senior officer next to mjfself, Doolan, you will take charge of one watch; I shall, mj^self, take charge of the other. Forster and Wilson will be with me, Rintoul and Richards with you. Mr. Hardy, will you and the other gentlemen divide your numbers into two watches? Dr. Wade counts as a combatant until his hospital begins to fill." " I fancy he may be counted as a combatant all through, " the Doctor muttered. IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 237 "To-morrow morning," the Major went on, "we will continue the work of filling sand-bags. There are still a large number of empty bags on hand. Wc shall want them for all the lower windows and doors, and the more there are of them the better; and we must also keep a supply in readiness to make a retrenchment if they should breach the wall. Now, Mr. Hunter, as soon as you have made out your list my watch can go on duty, and I should advise the others to turn in with- out delay." When the ladies were informed that half the men were going on watch, Mrs. Doolan said : " I have an amendment to propose, Major. Women's ears are just as keen as men's, -and I propose that we supply the sentries on the roof. I will volunteer for one." The whole of the ladies at once volunteered. "There is no occasion for so many," Mrs. Doolan said, " and I propose that to-night, at any rate, I should take the first watch with one of the Miss- Hunters, and that Miss Hannay and the other should take the second. That will leave all the gentlemen available for the watch in the enclosure. " The proposal was agreed to, and in a short time the first watch had taken their station, and the rest of the garrison lay down to rest. The night passed off quietly. The first work at which the Major set the garrison in the morning was to form six wooden stages against the wall, one by the gate, one against the wall at the other end, and two at each of the long sides of the enclosure. They were twelve feet in height, which enabled those upon them to stand head and shoulders above the level of the wall. When these were completed the whole of the garri- son, including the ladies and native servants, again set to work filling sand-bags with earth. As fast as they were finished they were carried in and piled two deep against the lower windows, and three deep against the dcors, only one small door being left undefended so as to allow passage in and out of the house. Bags were piled in readiness for closing this also in case of neces- sity. 238 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. \h r Mrs. Rintoul and another lady had volunteered for a third watch on the roof, so that each watch would go on duty once every twelve hours; the whole of the men, therefore, were available for work below. A scattered fire was opened at the house soon after daybreak, and was kept up without intermission from bushes and other cover, but the watches on the roof, seated behind the sand-bags at opposite angles, were well under shelter, peering out occasionally through the crevices between the bags to see that no general movement was taking place among the enemy. About mid-day there was a desultory discharge of fire-arms from the native lines, and the Major, on as- cending to the roof, saw a procession of elephants and men approaching the camp. "I expect there are guns there," he muttered, "and they are going to begin in earnest. Ladies, you are relieved of duty at present. I expect we shall be hear- ing from those fellows soon, and we must have some one up here who can talk back to them." Accordingly the Doctor and Mr. Farquharson, one of the civilians, who was also a good shot, took the places of the ladies on the roof. Half an hour later the Major went up again. " They have four cannon," the Doctor said. " There they are, on that slight rise to the left of the lines. I should fancy they are about eight hundred yards away. Do you see, there is a crowd gathering behind them? Ourjrifles will carry that distance easily enough, I think. You might as well let us have three or four more up here. The two lads are both fair shots and Hunter was considered a good shikari some years ago. We can drive their cannon off there ; the farther we make them take up their post the better, but even at that distance their shooting will be wild. The guns are no doubt old ones and as likely as not the shot won't fit. At any rate, though they may trouble us they will do no serious harm till they establish a battery at pretty close quarters. " The Major went down, and the two subalterns and Mr. Hunter joined the Doctor on the roof. IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 239 Ten minutes later the boom of four guns in quick succession was heard, and the party below stopped for a moment at their work as they heard the sound of shot rushing through the air overhead; then came four shots back from the parapet. Again and again the rifles spoke out, and then the Doctor shouted down to those in the court-yard "They have had enough of it al- ready, and are bringing up the elephants to move the cannon back. Now, boys, "he said to the subalterns, ** an elephant is an easier mark than a tiger — aim care- fully, and blaze away as quickly as you like." For five minutes a rapid fire was kept up; then Wil- son went below. "The Doctor asked me to tell you, sir," he said to the Major, " that the guns have been removed. There has been great confusion among the natives, and we can see with our glasses eight or ten bodies left on the ground. One of the elephants turned and went off at full speed among the crowd, and we fancy some of the others were hit. There was great trouble in getting them to come up to the guns. The Doctor says it is all over for the present. " Two other large parties with elephants were seen to come up to the native lines in the course of the after- noon. The defenders of the roof had now turned their attention to their foes in the gardens around, and the fire thence had gradually ceased, and by the evening everything was quiet. By this time the work of filling the sand-bags was completed, the doors and windows huubeen barricaded, and a large pile of bags lay in the enclosure ready for erection at any threatened point. CHAPTER XV. When the party met at dinner they were for a time somewhat silent, for all were exhausted by their hard work under a blazing sun, but their spirits rose under their surroundings. The native servants had laid the table with as scru- F 340 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 1 Mi ^1 pulous care as usual ; and except that there was no dis- play of flowers, no change was observable. AH had dressed after the work was over, and the men were in white drill, and the ladies had, from custom, put on light evening gowns. The cook had prepared an excellent dinner, and as the champagne went round no stranger would have supposed that the party had met under such unusual circumstances. The Doctor and the two subalterns were unaffectedly gay, and as the rest all made an ef- fort to be cheerful, the languor that had marked the comrr'^ncement of the dinner soon wore off. ""Wilson and Richards are becoming quite sports- men," the Doctor said. " They have tried their hands at tigers, but could hardly have expected to take part in elephant shooting. They can't quite settle between themselves as to which it was who sent the Rajah's elephant flying among the crowd. Both declare they aimed at that special beast. So as there is no deciding the point we must consider the honor as divided." " It was rather hard on us," Isobel said, "to be kept working below, instead of being up there seeing what was going on. But I consider we quite did our full share toward the defence to-day. My hands are quite sore with sewing up the mouths of those rough bags. I think the chief honors that way lie with Mrs. Rintoul. I am sure she sewed more bags than any of us. I had no idea that you were such a worker, Mrs. Rintoul. " " I used to be a quick worker, Mnss Hannay, till lately. I have not touched a needle iiince I came out to India." " I should recommend you to keep it up, Mrs. Rin- toul," the Doctor said. "It has done you more good than all my medicines. I don't believe I have pre- scribed for you for the last month, and I haven't seen you looking so well since you came out." "I suppose I have not had time to feel ill, Doctor," Mrs. Rintoul said, with a slight smile ; " all this has been a sort of tonic. " " And a very useful one, Mrs. Rintoul. We are all of us the better for a little stirring up sometimes." no dis- IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 241 nd the , from and as d have anusual Dalterns B an ef- ked the 5 sports- ir hands ake part between Rajah's tare they deciding bd." ) be kept ing what our full are quite bags. I Rintoul. LS. I had LtOUl." ^nay, till [came out .Irs. Rin- lore good |have pre- ^en't seen I, Doctor," il this has Jq are all lines." Captain Forster had as usual secured a place next to Isobel Hannay. He had been near her all day, carry- ing the bags as he filled them to her to sew up. Bath- urst was sitting at the other end of the table, joining but little in the conversation. " I thought Bathurst was going to faint again when the firing began, Miss Hannay," Captain Forster said, in a low voice. " It was quite funny to see him giv?. a little start each shot that was fired, and his face was as white as my jacket. I never saw such a nervous fellow." "You know he cannot help it, Captain Forster," Isobel said indignantly. " I don't think it is right to make fun of him for what is a great misfortune. " " I am not making fun of him. Miss Hannay. I am pitying him." " It did not sound like it, " Isobel said. " I don't think you can understand it. Captain Forster ; it must be ter- rible to be like that." ** I quite agree with you there. I know I should drown myself or put a bullet through my head if I could not show ordinary courage with a lot of ladies going on working quietly round me. " "You must remember that Mr. Bathurst showed plenty of courage in going out- among the mutineers last night. " "Yes, he did that very well, but, you see, he talks the language so thoroughly that, as he said himself, there was very little risk in it. " " I don't like you to talk so, Captain Forster," Isobel said quietly. " I do not see much 01 Mr. Bathurst. I have not spoken to him half a dozen times in the last month, but both my uncle and Doctor Wade have a high opinion of him, and do not consider that he should be personally blamed for being nervous under fire. I feel very sorry for him, and would much rather that you did not make remarks like that about him. We have all our weak points, and no doubt many of them are a good deal worse th^n a mere want of nerve." " Your commands shall be obeyed, Miss Hannay. I did not know that Bathurst was Q.proi^g^oi the Major's 16 343 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY, hi liH I. \ I i or of the estimable Doctor's, or I would have said noth- ing against him." " I don't think Mr. Bathurst is the sort of man to be any one's /r^/^/, Captain Forster," Isobel said coldly. " However, I think we had better change the subject. " This Captain Forster did easily and adroitly. He had no special feeling against Bathurst save a contempt for his weakness, and as he had met him but once or twice at the Major's since he came to the station, he had no thought of him in the light of a rival. Just as dinner was over Richards and one of the civilians came down from the terrace. " I think that there is something up, Major. I can hear noises somewhere near where Mr. Hunter's bun- galow was. " " What sort of noises, Richards?" " There is a sort of murmur as if there were a good many men there. " "Well, gentlemen, we had better go to our posts," the Major said. " Doolan, please place your watch on the platforms by the wall. I will take my part up on to the terrace. Doctor, will you bring up some of those rockets you made the other day? We must try and find out what they are doing. " As soon as he gained the terrace with his party, the Major requested everyone to remain perfectly still, and going forward to the parapet listened intently. In three or four minutes he returned to the others. " There is a considerable body of men at work there," he said. " I can hear muffled sounds, like digging, and once or twice a sharp click, as if a spade struck a stone. I am very much afraid they are throwing up a battery there. I was in hopes they would have begun in the open, because we could have commanded the ap- proaches ; but if they begin among the trees, they can come in and out without our seeing them, and bring up their guns by the road without our being able to inter- fere with them. Mr. Bathurst, will you take down word to Captain Doolan to put his men on the plat- forms on that side? Tell him that I am going to throw up a rocket, as I believe they are erecting a battery IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 243 noih- itobe joldly.^ biect." r. He atempt »nce or ion, he of the I can •'s bun- s a good • posts," vatch on rt up on of those and find arty, the still, and itly. In fk there," jing, and a stone. |a battery m in the the ap- they can bring up _ to inter- nke down the plat- to throw fa battery near Hunter's bungalow, and that the men are to be ready to give them a volley if they can make them out. Tell them not to expose themselves too much, for, if they are really at work there, no doubt they have num- bers of men posted in the shrubs all about to keep down our fire. Now, gentlemen, we will all lie down by the parapet. Take those spare rifles, and fire as quickly as you can while the light of the rocket lasts. Now, Mr. Wilson, we will get you to send up the rockets. You had better get in the comer and stoop down be- hind the sand-bags ; you can lay your rifles on them, so as to be able to fire as soon as you have lit the second rocket. " The Doctor soon came up with the rockets ; he had made three dozen the week before, and a number of blue lights, for the special purpose of detecting any movement that the enemy might make at night. "I will fire them myself," he said, as Wilson offered to take them. " I have had charge of the fireworks in a score of /S^es and that sort of thing, and am a pretty good hand at it. There, we will lean them against the sand-bags.. That is about it. Now, are you all ready, Major?" " All ready !" replied the Major. The Doctor placed the end of his lighted cheroot against the touch-paper, there was a momentary pause, then a rushing sound, and the rocket soared high in the air, and then burst, throwing out four or five white fire-balls, which lit up clearly the spot they were watching. "There they are," the Major exclaimed; "just to the right of the bungalow ; there are scores of them. " The rifles, both from the terrace and the platforms below, cracked out in rapid succession, and another rocket flew up into the air and burst. Before its light had faded out each of the defenders had fired his four shots. Shouts and cries from the direction in which they fired showed that many of the bullets had told, while almost immediately a sharp fire broke out from the bushes round them. "Don't mind the fellows in the bushes,' the Major I r r? .1: 244 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. said, " but keep up your fii c on the battery. We know its exact position now, though we cannot actually make them out." " Let them wait while I go down and get a bit of phosphorus," the Doctor said. "I have some in the surj^ery. They will only throw away their fire in the dark without it." He soon returned, and when all the fore and back sights had been rubbed by the phosphorus the firing recommenced, and the Doctor sent Wilson down with the phosphorus to the men on the platforms facing the threatened point. Bathurst was returning, after having given the message to Captain Doolan, when Mrs. Hunter met him in tlie passage. She put her hand kindly on his shoulder. " Now, Mr. Bathurst, if you will take my advice you will remain quietly here. The Doctor tells me they are going to open fire, and it is not the least use your going there exposing yourself to be shot when you know that you will be of no use. You showed us yesterday that you could be of use in other ways, and I have no doubt you will have opportunities of doing so again. I can assure you none of us will think any the worse of you for not being able to struggle against a nervous affection that gives you infinite pain. If they were attacking it would be different; I know you would be wanting to take your share then." "Thank you, Mrs. Hunter," he said, "but I must go up. I grant that I shall be of no use, but at least I will take any chance that the others run of being shot. A man does not flinch from a painful operation, and whatever the pain it has to be faced. I may get used to it in time, but whether I do or not I must go through it, though I do not say it doesn't hurt." At this moment the rattle of musketry broke out above. Bathurst gave a violent start, and a low cry as of pain ; then he rushed past Mrs. Hunter and up the staircase to the terrace, when he staggered rather than walked forward to the parapet, and threw himself down beside two figures, who were ii the act of firing. IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. US e knovj y make i bit of in the 3 in the nd back le firing wn with .cing the ven the Iter met ly on his dvice you me they , use your ;vhen you howed us ays, and I doing so ik any the against a If they you would I must go least I will shot. A fction, and get used o through broke out 1 low cry as Lnd up the rather than iself down bing. " Is that you, Bathurst?" the Major's voice asked. " Mind, mind, don't lift your head above the sand-bags in that way. There, you had best lie quiet; the natives have no idea of attacking, and it is of no use throwing away ammunition by firing unless your hand is steady, " But Bathurst did not hear, and remained with his head above the line of sand-bags until the Major put his hand on his shoulder and forced him down. He might have put his hand over his ears to deaden the sound, for in the darkness no one would have seen the action, but he would not do so, but with clenched teeth and quivering nerve lay there until the Major said, " I fancy we have stopped them working. Now, Doctor, do you, Hunter, Bathurst, and Farquharson go and lie down for four hours, when I will send for you to take our places. Before you lie down, will you tell Doolan to send half his party in? Of course you will lie down in your clothes, ready to fall in at your posts at a mo- ment's notice." " Let me send another rocket up first, Major, to see what they are doing. We can sleep to-morrow in the daytime; they won't dare to work under our fire then. Now, get ready, gentlemen, and don't throw away a shot, if the)^ are still working there. " The light of the rocket showed that there were now no natives at the spot where they had been seen at work. " I thought it would be too hot for them, Major, at such close quarters as these. We must have played the mischief with them." "All the better. Doctor; we will send a few shots there occasionally to show them we have not forgotten them. But the principal thing will be to keep our ears open to see that they don't bring up ladders and try a rush." " I think there is no fear of that to-night. Major. They would not have set to work at the battery if they had any idea of trying to scale the wall with ladders. That will come later on; but I don't think you will be troubled any more to-night, except by these fellows firing away from the bushes, and I should think they would get tired of wasting their ammunition soon. It II 246 IN THE DAYS OF THK MUTINY. is fortunate we brought all the spare ammunition in here." "Yes, they only had ten rounds of ball cartridge, and that must be nearly used up by this time. They will have to make up their cartridges in future, and cast their bullets, unless they can get a supply from some of the other mutineers." " Well, you will send for us in four hours, Major?" " You need not be afraid of my forgetting." Dawn was just breaking when the relief were called up; the firing had died away, and all was quiet "You will take command here, Rintoul," the Major said. " I should keep Farquharson up here, if I were you, and leave the Doctor and Bathurst to look after things in general. I think, Doctor, it would be as well if we appointed Bathurst in charge of the general ar- rangements of the house. We have a good amount of stores, but the servants will waste them if they are not looked after. I should put them on rations, Bathurst; and there might be regular rations of things served out for us too; then it would fall in your province to see that the syces water and feed the horses. You will examine the well regularly, and note whether there is any change in the look of the water. I think you will find plenty to do " "Thank you, Major," Bathurst said. "I appreciate your kindness, and for the present, at any rate, will gladly undertake the work of looking after the stores and servants; but there is one thing I have been think- ing of, and which I should like to speak to you about at once, if you could spare a minute or two before you tarn in." "What is that, Bathurst?" ■' I think that we are agreed. Major, that though we may hold this place for a time, sooner or later we must either surrender or the place be carried by storm." Major Hannay nodded. " That is what it must come to, Bathurst. If they will at last grant us terms, well and good; if not, we must either try to escape or die fighting." " It is about the escape I have been thinking, Major; ition in irtridge, . They ure, and ply from [ajor?" jre called it. :he Major if I were ,ook after be as well ;eneral ar- imoimt of ey are not Bathurst; gs served rovince to You will er there is k you will appreciate rate, will the stores Dcen think - you about before you though we er we must ;torm." it . If they if not, we :, IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 347 ing, Major; as our position grows more and more desperate, th'iy will close round us, and although we might have pos- sibly got through last night, our chances of doing so when they have once broken into the enclosure and begin to attack the house itself are very slight. A few of us who can speak the language well, might possibly in disguise get away, but it would be impossible for the bulk of us to do so." " I quite see that, Bathurst." "My proposal is, >.ajor, that we should begin at once to mine, that is, to drive a gallery from the cellar and to carry it on steadily as far as we can. I should say that we have ten days or a fortnight before us before matters get to an extremity, and in that time we ought to be able to get, working night and day, from fifty to a hundred yards beyond the wall, aiming at a clump of bushes. There is a large one in Farquharson's com- pound about a hundred yards off. Then, when things get to the worst, we can work upward and come out on a dark night. We might leave a long fuse burning in the magazine, so that there should be an explosion an hour or two after we had left. There is enough powder there to bring the house down, and the Sepoys might suppose that we had all been buried in the ruins." " I think the idea is a very good one, Bathurst. What do you think. Doctor?" " Capital," the Doctor said. " It is a light sandy soil, and we should be able to get though it at a good rate. How many can work together, do you think, Bathurst?" " I should say two of us in each shift, to drive, and if necessary, prop the roof ; with some of the natives to carry out the earth. If we have three shifts, each shift would go on twice in the twenty-four hours ; that would be four hours on and eight hours off." "Will you take charge of the operation, Bathurst?" " With pleasure. Major. " " Very well, then. You shall have with you Wilson and Richards and the three youngest of the civilians, Farquharson, Austin, and Herbert. You six will be relieved from other duty except when the enemy threaten an attack. I will put down Farquharson and I i 348 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. l' Austin together. Which of the others would you like to have with you?" "I will take Wilson, sir." " Very well, then, Richards and Herbert will make the third party. After breakfast we can pick out the twelve strongest of the natives. I will tell them that they have to work, but that they will be each paid half a rupee a day in addition to their ordinary wages. Then you will give a general supervision to the work, Bathurst, in addition to your own share in it?" "Certainly, Major, I will take general charge of it." So at breakfast the Major explained the plan agreed upon. The five men chosen at once expressed their willingness to undertake the work, and the offer of half a rupee extra a day was sufficient to induce twelve of the servants to volunteer for it. The Major went down to the cellars and fixed upon the spot at which the work should begin ; and Bathurst and Wilson, taking some of the intrenching tools from the store-room, began to break through the wall without delay. "I like this," Wilson said. "It is a thousand times better than sitting up there waiting till they choose to make an attack. How wide shall we make it?" "As narrow as we can for one to pass along at a time," Bathurst said. "The narrower it is, the less trouble we shall have with the roof. " " But only one will be able to work at a time in that case. " "That will be quite enough," Bathurst said. "It will be hot work and hard. We will relieve each other every five minutes or so." A very short time sufficed to break through the wall. "Thank goodness it is earth!" Wilson said, thrusting a crowbar through the opening as soon as it was made. " I had no fear of its being rock, Wilson. If it had been they would not have taken the trouble to have walled the sides of the cellar. The soil is very deep all over here. The natives have to line their wells thirty or forty feet down. " The enemy were quiet all day, but the garrison thought it likely that, warned by the lesson of the IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 249 that leep [ells ison the night before, they were erecting a battery some dis- tance farther back, masked by the trees, and that until it was ready to open fire they would know nothing about it. "So you have turned miner, Mr. Wilson?" Isobel Hannay said to him as, after a change and a bath, he came in to get his lunch. " I calculate I have lost half a stone in weight. Miss Hannay. If I were to go on at this for a month or two there would be nothing left of me." " And how far did you drive the hole?" "Gallery Miss Hannay, please call it a gallery, it sounds so much better. We got in five yards. I should hardly have believed it possible, but Bathurst is a tremendous fellow to work. He uses a pick as if he had been a sapper all his life. We kept the men pretty hard at work, I can tell you, carrying up the earth. Richards is at work now, and I bet him five rupees that he and Herbert don't drive as far as we did. " " There is not much use in betting now, Mr. Wilson," Isobel said sadly. " No, I suppose not. Miss Hannay ; but it gives a sort of interest to one's work. I have blistered my hands horribly, but I suppose they will get hard in a day or two." "I wish we could work at something," Isobel said. " Now that we have finished with the bags and band- ages, the time seems very long; the only thing there is to do is to play with the children and try to keep them good ; it is fortunate there is a bit of garden for them to play in." " It is not much of a garden. Miss Hannay. We had something like a garden when I was a boy at home: the governor's is a jolly old rectory, with a splendid garden. What fun we used to have there when I was a young one! I wonder what the dear old governor and mater would say if they knew the fix we were in here. You know, sometimes I think that Forster's plan was the best, and that it would be better to try and make a dash through them." " We are in your way, Mr. Wilson ; you wouldn't be n" 250 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. able to do much fighting if you had one of us clinging to you. " "I don't know, Miss Hannay," Wilson said quietly, " what my fighting powers are, but I fancy if you were clinging to me I could cut my way through a good deal. " '• I am sure you would do anything that any one could do," the girl said kindly; "but whatever you might feel, having another person behind you could not but hamper you awfully. I would infinitely rather try to escape on foot, for then I should be relying on myself, while if I was riding behind any one, and we were pursued or attacked, I should feel all the time I were destroying his chances, and that if it were not for me he would get away. That would be terrible. I don't know whether we were wise to stay here instead of try- ing to escape at once ; but as uncle and Mr. Hunter and the others all thought it v/iser to stay, I have no doubt it was; but I am quite sure that it could not have been a good plan to go off like that on horseback. " Another day passed quietly, and then during the night the watch heard the sounds of blows with axes and of falling trees. " They are clearing the ground in front of their bat- tery," the Major, who was on the watch with his party, said; "it will begin in earnest to-morrow morning. The sound came from just where we expected ; it is about in the same line as where they made their first attempt, but a hundred yards or so further back." At daylight they saw that the trees and bushes had been levelled and a battery with embrasures for six guns erected at a distance of about four hundred yards from the house. More sand-bags were at once brought up from below and the parapet on the side facing the battery raised two feet and doubled in thickness. The garrison were not disturbed while so engaged. " Why the deuce don't the fellows begin?" Captain Forster said impatiently, as he stood looking over the parapet, when the work was finished. " I expect they are waiting for the Rajah and some of the principal Zemindars to come down, " replied the Major; "the guns are theirs, you see, and will most i IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 25' iging ietly, were ieal." could might )t but try to lyself, ; were [ were Eor me don't of try- iunter ive no Dthave e night and of iir bat- party, jming. s about tempt, es had :or six yards )rought ing the The i^aptain ver the d some ied the 11 most likely be worked by their own followers. No doubt they think they will knock the place to pieces in a few minutes. Listen ! there is music ; they are coming in state, no doubt. Rintoul, will you tell the workers in the mine to come up? By the way, who are at work now?" " Bathurst and Wilson, sir. " " Then tell Wilson to come up, and request Bathurst to go on with the gallery. Tell him I want that pushed forward as fast as possible, and that one gun will not make much difference here. Request the ladies and children to go down into the store-room for the present. I don't think the balls will go through the wall, but it is as well to be on the safe side." Captain Rintoul delivered his message to the ladies. They had already heard that the battery had been un- riiasked and was ready to open fire, and lamps had been placed in the store-room in readiness for them. There were pale faces among them, but their "thoughts were of those on the roof rather than of themselves. Mrs. Hunter took up the Bible she had been reading, and said, "Tell them, Captain Rintoul, we shall be praying for them." 'The ladies went into the room that served as a nursery, and with the ayahs and other female servants carried the children down .'.xto the store-room. " I would much rather be up there, " Isobel said to Mrs. Doolan ; " we could load the muskets for them, and I don't think it would be anything like so bad if we could see what was going on as being cooped up below fancy- ing the worst all the time." " I quite agree with you, but the men never will get to understand women. Perhaps before we are done they will recognize the fact that we are no more afraid than they are. " The music was heard approaching along the road where the bungalows had stood. Presently a number of flags were raised in the battery amid a great beating of drums. On the previous day a flagstaff had been erected on the roof, and a Union Jack was run up in answer to the enemy's demonstration. 93' IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. "A cheer for the old flag, lads," the Major said, and a hearty cheer broke from the little party on the roof, where, with the exception of Bathurst, all the garrison were assembled. The cheer was answered by a yell from the natives not only in the battery, but from the gardens and enclosures round the house. " Pa)'' no attention to the fellows in the gardens," the Major said ; " fire at their guns, they must expose them- selves to load. " The men were kneeling behind the parapet, where the sand-bags had been so arranged that they could .see through between those on the upper line, and thus fire without raising their heads above it. " Shall we wait for them or fire first, Major?" the Doctor asked. " I expect the guns are loaded and laid. Doctor, but if you see a head looking along them by all means take a shot at it. I wish we could see down into the battery itself, but it is too high for that." The Doctor lay looking along his rifle ; presently he fired, and as if it had been the signal five cannon boomed out almost at the same moment, the other be- ing fired a quarter of a minute later. Three of the shot struck the house below the parapet, the other shot went overhead. " I hit my man," the Doctor said, as he thrust another rifle through the loop-hole. " Now we will see if we can't keep them from loading." Simultaneously with the roar of the cannon a rattle of musketry broke out on three sides of the house, and a hail of bullets whistled over the heads of the defen- ders, who opened a steady fire at the embrasures of the guns. These had been run in, and the natives could be seen loading them. The Major examined the work through a pair of field-glasses. "You are doing well," he said presently; "I have seen several of them fall, and there is a lot of confusion among them; they will soon get tired of that game," Slowly and irregularly the guns were run out again, and the fire of the defenders was redoubled to prevent them from taking aim. Only one shot hit the house IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. <53 attle and efen- |)f the could \A7ork have "lusion ie." igain, revent I house this time, the others all going overhead. The fire of the enemy became slower and more irregular, and at the end of an hour ceased almost entirely. "Doctor," the Major said, "I will get you and Far- quharson to turn your attention to some fellows there are in that high tree over there. They command us completely, and many of their bullets have .struck on the terrace behind us. It would not be safe to move across to the stairs now. I think we have pretty well silenced the battery for the present. Here are my glasses. With them you can easily make out the fel- lows among the leaves. " " I sec them," the Doctor said, handing the glasses to Farquharson; **we will soon get them out of that. Now, Farquharson, you take that fellow out on the lower branch to the right; I will take the one close to the trunk on the same branch." Laying their rifles on the upper row of sand-bags, the two men took a steady aim. They fired almost to- gether, and two bodies were seen to fall from the tree. "Well shot!" the Major exclaimed. "There are somethi*^.rr like a dozen of them up there; but they will clear out if you keep that up." " They are not more than two hundred yards away," the Doctor said, " and firing from a rest we certainly ought not to miss them at that distance. Give me the glasses again." A similar success attended the next two shots, and then a number of figures were seen hastily climbing down. "Give them a volley, gentlemen," the Major said. A dozen guns were fired and three more men dropped, and an angry yell from the natives answered the shout of triumph from the garrison. "Will you go down, Mr. Himter, and tell the ladies that we have silenced the guns for the present, and that no one has received a scratch? Now let us see v'hat damage their balls have effected." This was found to be trifling. The stonework of i^e house was strong and the guns were light. Tlie sio. >^- workof one of the windows was broken andtw or f /ea I 1 V I 254 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. Stones in the wall cracked. One ball had entered a window, torn its way through two inner walls, and lay against the back wall. "It is a four-pound ball," the Major said, taking it up. "I fancy the guns are seven -pounders. They haye evidently no balls to fit, which accounts for the badness of their firing and the little damage they did: with so much windage the balls can have had but small velocity. Well, that is a satisfactory beginning, gentle- men; they will take a long time to knock the place about our ears at this rate. Now we will see if we cannot clear them out of the gardens. Captain Doolan, will you take the glasses and watch the battery? If you see any movement about the guns the fire will be re- opened at once ; until then all will devote their atten- tion to those fellows among the bushes : it is important to teach them that they are not safe there, for a chance ball might come in between the sand-bags. Each of you pick out a particular bush, and watch it till you see the exact position in which any one firing from it must be in, and then try to silence him. Don't throw away a shot if you can help it. We have a good stock of am- munition, but it is as well not to waste it, I will leave you in command at present, Doolan. " Major Hannay then went down to the store-room. " I have come to relieve you from your confinement, ladies," he said. " I am glad to say that we find their balls will not penetrate the .walls of the house alone, and there is therefore no fear whatever of their passing through them and the garden wall together : therefore, as long as the wall is intact, there is no reason what- ever why you should not remain on the floor above." There was a general exclamation of pleasure. "That will be vastly better, uncle," Isobel said; "it is hateful being hidden away down here when we have nothing to do but to listen to the firing; we don't see why some of us should not go up on to the terrace to load the rifles for you." "Not at present, Isobel, we are not pressed yet. When it comes to a real attack it will be time to con- sider about that. I don't think any of us would shoot d a lay igit 'hey the did: mall ntle- place f we olan, f you >e re- itten- )rtant hance Lch of ousee must away am- leave m. ment, their alone, assing efore, what- e." i; "it 3 have 't see ce to yet. |o con- shoot IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 25s straighter if there were women up among us in dan- ger." " I don't at all see why it should be worse our being in danger than for you men, Major," Mrs. Doolan said ; " we have just as much at stake and more, and I warn you I shall organize a female mutiny if we are not al- lowed to help. " The Major laughed. "Well, Mrs. Doolan, I shall have to convert this store-room into a prison, and all who defy my authority will be immured here — so now you know the conse- quence of disobedience. " "And has no one been hurt with all that firing, Major Hannay?" Mary Hunter asked. " A good many people have been hurt. Miss Hunter, but no one on our side. I fancy we must have made it very hot for them with the guns, and the Doctor and Mr. Farquharson have been teaching them not to ciimb trees. At present, that firing you hear is against those who are hiding in the gardens. " An hour later, the firing ceased altogether, the na- tives finding the fire of the defenders so deadly that they no longer dared, by discharging a rifle, to show where they were hiding. The had drawn off from the more distant clumps and bushes, but dared not try and crawl from those nearei the house until after nightfall. The next morning it was found that during the night the enemy had closed up their embrasures, leaving only openings sufficiently large for the muzzle of the gun to be thrust through, and soon after daybreak they renewed their fire. The Doctor and ^r. Farquharson alone remained on the roof, and throughout the day they kept up a steady fire at these openings whenever the guns were withdrawn. Several of the sand-bags were knocked off the parapet during the course of the day, and a few shot found their way through the walls of the upper story, but beyond this no damage was done. The mining was kept up with great vigor, and the gallery advanced rapidly, the servants finding it very hard work to remove the earth as fast as the mi- ners brought it down. 256 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 'I Captain Forster offered to go out with three others at night to try and get into the battery and spike the guns, but Major Hannay would not permit the attempt to be made. "We know they have several other guns," he said, " and the risk would be altogether too great, for there would be practically no chance of your getting back and being drawn up over the wall before you were over- taken, even if you succeeded in spiking the guns. There are probably a hundred men sleeping in the battery, and it is likely they would have sentries out in front of it. The loss of four men would seriously weaken the garrison." The next morning another battery to the left was un- masked, and on the following day three guns were planted, under cover, so as to play against the gate. The first battery now concentrated its fire upon the outer wall, the new battery played upon the upper part of the house, and the three guns kept up a steady fire at the gate. There was little rest for the besieged now. It was a constant duel between their rifles and the guns, varied by their occasionally turning their attention to men who climbed trees, or who, from the roofs of some buildings still standing, endeavored to keep down their fire, Wilson had been released from his labors in the gal- lery, Bathurst undertaking to get down the earth single- handed as fast as the servants could remove it. " I never saw such a fellow to work, Miss Hannay," Wilson said one day when he was off duty and hap- pened to find her working alone at some bandages. " I know you don't like him, but he is a first-rate fellow if there ever was one. It is unlucky for him being so nervous at the guns, but that is no fault of his after all, and I am sure in other things he is as cool as possible. Yesterday, I was standing close to him, shoving the earth back to the men as he got it down. Suddenly he shouted, 'Run, Wilson, the roof is coming down!' I could not help bolting a few yards, for the earth came pattering down as he spoke ; then I looked round and IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. *57 hers the sinpt said, there kand over- There ittery, •ont of en the vas tin- s were e gate. Don the per part y fire at It was a varied to men of some l^Yn their the gal- [h single- rlannay," [and hap- iges. /■ ; fellow if being so after all, p possible, loving the Iddenly he down'.' 1 Urth came [ronnd and saw him standing there, by the light of the lamp, like those figures you see holding up pillars ; I forget what they call them — catydigs or something of that sort. " " Caryatides, " Isobel put in. "Yes, that is the name. Some timber had given way above him, and he was holding it up with his arms ; I should say that there must have been half a ton of it, and he said, as quietly as possible: 'Get two of those short poles, Wilson, and put up one on each side of me. I can hold it a bit, but don't be longer than you can help about it. ' I managed to shove up the timber, so that he could slip out before it came down. It would have crushed us both to a certainty if he had not held it up." "Why do you say you know I don't like Mr. Bath-' urst?" " I don't exactly know. Miss Hannay, hut I have noticed you are the only lady who does not chat with him. I don't think I have seen you speak to him since we have come in here. I am sorry, because I like him very much, and I don't care for Forster at all." "What has Captain Forster to do with it?" Isobel asked, somewhat indignantly. "Oh, nothing at all, Miss Hannay, only, you know, Bathurst used.to be a good deal at the Major's before Forster came, and then after that I never met him there except on that evening before he came in here. Now you know, Miss Hannay, "he went on, earnestly, "what I think about you. I have not been such an ass as to suppose I ever had a chance, though you know I would lay down my life for you willingly ; but I did not seem to mind Bathurst. I know he is an awfully good fellow, and would have made you very happy; but I don't feel like that with Forster. There is nothing in the world that I should like better than to punch his head; and when I see that a fellow like that has cut Bathurst out altogether, it makes me so savage sometimes that I have to go and smoke a pipe outside so as not to break out and have a row with him." " You ought not to talk so, Mr. Wilson. It is very wrong. You have no right to say that any one has cut '7 258 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. i i (I any one ilse out as far as I am concerned. I know you are all fond of me in a brotherly sort of way, and I like you very much ; but that gives you no right to say such things about other people. Mr. Bathurst ceased his visits, not because of Captain Forster but from another reason altogether; and certainly I have neither said nor done anything that would justify your saying that Captain Forster had cut Mr. Bathurst out. Even if I had, you ought not to have alluded to such a thing. I am not angry with you," she said, seeing how Ci>wn- cast he looked ; " but you must not talk like that any more ; it would be wrong at any time ; it is specially so now, when we are all shut up here together, and none can say what will happen to us." " It seemed to me that was just the reason why I could speak about it. Miss Hannay. We may none of us get out of this fix we are in, and I do think we ought all to be friends together now. Richards and I both agreed that as it was certain neither of us had a chance of winning you, the next best thing was to see you and Bathurst come together. Well, now all that's over, of course, but is it wrong for me to ask how it is you have come to dislike him?" "But I don't di like him, Mr. Wilson." " Well then, why do you go on as if you didn't like him?" Isobel hesitated. From most men she would have considered the question impertinent, and would have resented it, but this frank-faced boy meant no imperti- nence ; he loved her in his honest way and only wanted to see her happy. " I can't speak to him if he doesn't speak to nie," she saia desperately. "No, of course not," he agreed, "but why shouldn't he speak to you? You can't have done anything to of- fend him except taking up with Forster. " " It is nothing to do with Captain Forster at all, Mr. Wilson; I — " and she hesitated, "I — said something at which he had the right to feel hurt and offended, and he has never given me any opportunity since of saying that I am sorry," IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 259 V you Hike ■ such sd his lother r said g that en if I ng. I down- at any ially so d none I could I us get tit all to agreed ance of ^ou and over, of ou have n't like Id have Id have [imperti- wanted le," she louldn't ig to of- all, Mr. Imething offended, I since of " I am sure you would not have said anything that he should have been offended about, Miss Hannay; it is not your nature, and I would not believe it whoever told me, not even yourself; so he must be in fault, and of course I have nothing more to say about it." " He wasn't in fault at all, Mr. Wilson. I can't tell you what I said, but it was very wrong and thoughtless on my part, and I have been sorry for it ever since, and he has a perfect right to be hurt, and not to come near me, especially as — " and she hesitated — "as I have acted badly since and he has no reason for supposing that I am sorry. And now you must not ask me any more about it; I don't know why I have said as much to you as I have, only I know I can trust you, and I like you very much, though I could never like you in the sort of way you would want me to. I wish you didn't like me like that." "Oh, never mind me," he said earnestly, "I am all right. Miss Hannay. I never expected anything, you know, so I am not disappointed, and it has been awfully good of you talking to me as you have, and not getting mad with me for interfering. But I can hear them coming down from the terrace, and I must be off. I am on duty there, you know, now. Bathurst has un- dertaken double work in that hole. I didn't like it, really, it seemed mean to be getting out of the work and letting him do it all, but he said that he liked work, and I really think he does. I am sure he is al- ways worrying himself because he can't take his share in the firing on the roof, and when he is working he hasn't time to think about it. When he told me that in future he would drive the tunnel our shift himself, he said, 'That will enable you to take your place on the rooi, Wilson, and you must remember you are firing for both of us, so don't throw away a shot.' It is awfully rough on him, isn't it? Well, good- by, Miss Hannay, " and Wilson hurried off to the roof. It if 260 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. CHAPTER XVI. i The next four days made a great alteration in the position of the defenders in the fortified house. The upper story was now riddled by balls, the para- pet round the terrace had been knocked away in several places, the gate was in splinters; but as the earth from the tunnel had been all emptied against the sand-bags, it had grown to such a thickness that the defence v/as still good here. But in the wall, against which one of the new batteries had steadily directed its fire, there was a yawning gap, which was hourly increasing in size and would ere long be practicable for assault. Many of the shots passing through this had struck the house itself. Some of these had penetrated, and the room in the line of fire could no longer be used. There had b°en several casualties. The young civil- ian, Herbert, had been killed by a shot that struck the parapet just where he was lying. Captain Rintoul had been seriously wounded, two of the natives had been killed by the first shot which penetrated the lower room. Mr. Hunter was prostrate with fever, the result of ex- posure to the sun, and several others had received wounds more or less severe from fragments of stone ; but the fire of the defenders was as steady as at first, and the loss of the natives working the guns was severe, and they no longer ventured to fire from the gardens and shrubberies round the walls. Fatigue, watching, still more the heat on the terrace, was telling heavily upon the strength of the garrison. The ladies went about their work quietly and almost silently. The constant anxiety and the confinement in the darkened rooms was telling upon them too. Sev- eral of the children were ill, and when not employed in other things there were fresh sand-bags to be made by the women to take the place of those damaged by the enemy's shot. When, of an evening, a portion of the defenders came ofl duty, there was more talk and conversation, as all endeavored to keep up a good face and assume a con- IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 261 in the e para- several th from id-bags, nee v/as [1 one of re, there asing in assault. :ruck the and the d. Ling civil- itruck the ntoul had had been werrooni. ultof ex- received of stone; IS at first, as severe, ^e gardens le terrace, » garrison, tnd almost Inement in I too. Sev- employed to be made imaged by Inders came Tition, as all tume a con- fidence they were far from feeling. The Doctor was perhaps the most cheery of the party, and during the daytime he was always on the roof, and his rifle seldom cracked in vain. In the evening he attended to his patients, talked cheerily to the ladies and laughed and joked over the events of the day. None among the ladies showed greater calmness and courage than Mrs. Rintoul, and not a word was ever heard from the time the siege began of her ailments or inconveniences. She was Mrs. Hunter's best assistant with the sick children. Even after her husband was wounded and her attention night and day was given to him, she still kept on patiently and firmly. ** I don't know how to admire Mrs. Rintoul enough," Mrs. Hunter said to Isobel Hannay, one day; "for- merly I had no patience with h-^t*, she was always queru- lous and grumbling; now sh, has turned out a really noble woman. One never knows people, my dear, till one sees them in trouble." "Everyone is nice," Isobel said. "I have hardl)' heard a word of complaint about anything since we came here, and every one seems to help others and do little kindnesses." The enemy's fire had been very heavy all that day, and the breach in the wall had been widened and the garrison felt certain that the enemy would attack on the following morning. "You and Farquharson, Doctor, must stop on the roof," the Major said. "In the first place, it is pos- sible they may try to attack by ladders at some other point, and we shall want two good shots up there to keep them back ; and in the second, if they do force the breach we shall want you to cover our retreat into the house. I will get a dozen rifles apiece, loaded and in readiness. Isobel and Mary Hunter, who have both volunteered over and over aga' 1, shall go up to load, they have both practised and can load quickly. Of course if you see that the enemy are not attacking at any other point you will help ns at the breach by keep- ing up a steady fire on them, but always keep six guns each in reserve. I shall blow my whistle as a signal 262 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. ;! ! rll, 1 for us to retire to the house if I find we can hold the breach no longer, so when you hear that, blaze away at them as fast as you can. Your twelve shots will check them long enough to give us time to get in and fasten the door. We shall be round the corner of the house before they can get fairly over the breastwork. We will set to work to raise that as soon as it gets dark." A breastwork of sand-bags had already been erected behind the breach, in case the enemy should make a sudden rush, and a couple of hours' labor transformed this into a strong work, for the bags were already filled and only needed placing in position. When completed it extended in a horse-shoe shape, some fifteen feet across, behind the gap in the wall. For nine feet from the ground it was composed of sand-bags, three deep, and a single line was then laid along the edge to serve as a parapet. "I don't think they will get over that," the Major said, when the work was finished. " I doubt if they will be disposed even to try when they reach the breach." Before beginning their work they had cleared away all the fallen brickwork from behind the breach and a number of bricks were laid on the top of the sand-bags to be used as missiles. " A brick is as good as a musket-ball at this dis- tance," the Major said, "and when our guns are empty we can take to them ; there are enough spare rifles for us to have five each, and with those and our revolvers and the bricks, we ought to be able to account for an army. There are some of the servants and syces who can be trusted to load. They can stand down behind us and we can pass our guns down to them as we empty them." Each man had his place on the work assigned to- him. Bathurst, who had before told the Major that when the time came for an assault to be delivered he was deter- mined to take his place in the breach, was placed at one end of the horse-shoe where it touched the v;all. " I don't promise to be of much use, Major," he said S-, f IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 263 quietly. " '" -now myself too well ; but at least I can run my chai "i of being killed." The Major nad put Wilson next to him. " I don't think there is much chance of their storming the work, Wilson; but if they do, you catch hold of Bathurst's arm, and drag him away when yoa hear me whistle ; the chances are a hundred to one against his hearing it or remembering what it means if he does hear it. " "All right, Major, I will look to him." Four men remained on guard at the breach all night, and at the first gleam of daylight the garrison took up their posts. "Now mind, my dears," the Doctor said, as he and Farquharson went up on the terrace with Isobel and Mary Hunter, " you must do exactly as you are told, or you will be doing more harm than good, for Farquhar- son and I would not be able to pay attention to our shooting. You must lie down and remain perfectly quiet till we begin to fire, then keep behind us just so far that you can reach the guns as we hand them back to you after firing; and you must load them either kneeling or sitting down, so that you don't expose your heads above the thickest part of the breastwork. When you have loaded, push the guns back well to the right of us, but so that we can reach them. Then, if one of them goes off, there won't be any chance of our being hit. The garrison can't afford to throw away a life at present. You will of course only half-cock them ; still, it is as well to provide against accidents." Both the girls were pale, but they were quiet and steady. The Doctor saw they were not likely to break down. " That is a rum-looking weapon you have got there, Bathurst," Wilson said, as, after carrying up the spare guns and placing them ready for firing, they lay down in their positions on the sand-bags. The weapon was a native one, and was a short mace, composed of a bar of iron about fifteen inches long, with a knob of the same metal, studded with spikes. The bar was covered rfT- 264 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 14 with leather to break the jar, and had a loop to put the hand through at the end. *' Yes," Bathurst said quietly, " I picked it up at one of the native shops in Cawnpore the last time I was there. I had no idea of ever having to use it at the time, and bought it rather as a curiosity; but I have kept it within reach of my bedside since these troubles began, and I don't think one could want a better weapon at close quarters. " "No, it is a tremendous thing; and after the way I have seen you using that pick I should not like to be within reach of your arm with that mace in it. I don't think there is much chance of your wanting that. I have no fear of the natives getting over here this time." " I have no fear of the natives at all," Bathurst said. " I am only afraid of myself. At present I am just as cool as if there was not a native within a thousand miles, and I am sure that my pulse is not going a beat faster than usual. I can think of the whole thing and calculate the chances as calmly as if it were an affair in which I was in no way concerned. It is not danger that I fear in the slightest, it is that horrible noise. I know well enough that the moment the firing begins I shall be paralyzed. My only hope is that at the last moment, if it comes to hand-to-hand fighting, I shall get my nerve again." "I have no doubt you will," Wilson said warmly, "and when you do I would back you at long odds against any of us. Ah, they are beginning." As he spoke there was a salvo of all the guns on the three Sepoy batteries. Then a roar of musketry broke out round the house, and above it could be heard loud shouts. "They are coming, Major," the Doctor shouted down from the roof, " the Sepoys are leading, and there is a crowd of natives behind them." Those lying in the middle of the curve of the horse- shoe soon caught sight of the enemy advancing tumul- tuously toward the breach. The Major had ordered that not a shot was to be fired until they reached it, and it was evident that the silence of the besieged awed the IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 365 Lttho t one ; was t the have ubles aetter way I to be don't [ have t said. just as )usand a beat ig and affair langer ise. I igins I e last shall irmly, odds )n the broke loud down :e is a Ihorse- lumnl- rdereJ It, and led the assailants with a sense of unknown danger, for their pace slackened, and when they got to within fifty yards of the breach they paused and opened fire. Then, urged forward by their officers and encouraged by their own noise, they again rushed forward. Two of their officers led the way, and as these mounted the little heap of rubbish at the foot of the breach, two rifles cracked out from the terrace, and both fell dead. There was a yell of iury from the Sepoys, and then they poured in through the breach. Those in front tried to stop as they saw the trap into which they were entering, but pressed on by those behind they were forced forward. And now a crackling fire of musketry broke out from the rifles projecting between the sand-bags, into the crowded mass. Every shot told. Wild shrieks, yells, and curses rose from the assailants. Some tried madly to climb up the sand-bags, some to force their way back through the crowd behind ; some threw themselves down ; others discharged their muskets at their invisi- ble foe. From the roof, the Doctor and his companion kept up a rapid fire upon the crowd struggling to enter the breach. As fast as the defenders' muskets were discharged they handed them down to the servants be- hind to be reloaded, and when each had fired his spare muskets he betook himself to his revolver. Wilson while discharging his rifles kept his eyes upon Bathurst. The latter had not tired a shot, but lay rigid and still, save for a sort of convulsive shuddering. Presently there was a little lull in the firing as the weapons were emptied and the defenders seizing the bricks hurled them down into the mass. "Look out!" the Major shouted, "keep your heads low, I am going to throw the canisters. " A number of these had been prepared, filled to the mouth with powder and bullets and with a short fuse attached; ropes being fastened round them to enable them to be slun^r some distance. The Major half -rose to throw one ot these missiles when his attention was called by a shout from Wilson. The latter was so occupied that he had not noticed j66 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. Bathurst, who had suddenly risen to his feet and, just as Wilson was about to grasp him and pull him down, leaped over the sand-bag in front of him down among the mutineers. The Major gave a swing to the canister, of which the fuse was already lighted, and hurled it through the breach among the crowd, who, ignorant of what was going on inside, were still struggling to enter. "Look out!" he shouted to the others; *' mind how you throw. Bathurst is down in the middle of them. Hand up all the muskets you have loaded," he cried to the servants. As he spoke he swung another canister through the breach, and almost immediately two heavy explosions followed one close upon the other. "Give them a volley at the breach," he shouted; "never mind those below." The muskets were fired as soon as received. " Now to your feet," the Major cried, " and give them the brick-bats," and as he stood up he hurled two more canisters among the crowd behind the breach. The others sprang up with a cheer. The enclosure below them was shallower now from the number that had fallen, and was filled with a confused mass of strug- gling men. In their midst was Bathurst fighting des- perately with his short weapon, and bringing down a man at every blow, the mutineers being too crowded together to use their fixed bayonets against him. In a moment Forster leaped down, sword in hand, and joined in the fight. "Stand steady," the Major shouted; "don't let an- other man move. " But the missiles still rainec down with an occasional shot, as the rifles were handed up by the natives, while the Doctor and Farquharson k'^pt up an almost con- tinuous fire from the terrace. Then the two last canisters thrown by the Major exploded. The first two had carried havoc among the crowd behind the breach, these completed their confusion, and they turned and fled; while those in the retrenchment, re- lieved of the pressure from behind, at once turned, and flying through the breach followed their companions. IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 267 own, nong ister, led it ant of Diiter. 1 how them, ied to gh the osions outed ; e them o more The below at had strug- g des- own a owded im. In id, and llet an- casional L while 1st con- 70 last le first tnd the Id they lent, re- |ed, and lions. A loud cheer broke ^rom the garrison, and the Major looking round saw the Doctor standing by the parapet waving his hat, while Isobel stood beside him looking down at the scene of conflict. " Lie down, Isobel," he shouted, "they will be open- ing fire again directly." The girl disappeared, and almost at the same mo- ment the batteries spoke out again, and a crackle of the musketry began from the gardens. The Major turned round. Bathurst was leaning against the wall breathing heavily after his exertions; Forster was coolly wipi ig his sword on the tunic of one of the fallen Sepoy&. *' Are either of you hurt?" he asked. " I am not hurt to speak of," Forster said; " I got a rip with a bayonet as I jumped down, but I don't think it is of any consequence." " How are you, Bathurst?" the Major repeated. "What on earth possessed you to jump down like that?" "I don't know, Major; I had to do something, and when you stopped firing I felt it was time for me to do my share. " " Y«u have done more than your share, I should say," the Major said, "for they went down like ninepins be- fore you. Now, Wilson, you take one of his hands and I will take the other, and help him up." It needed considerable exertion to get him up, for the reaction had now come, and he was scarce able to stand. " You had better go up to the house and get a glass of wine," the Major said. "Now, is any one else hurt?" "I am hit, Major," Richards said quietly; "a ball came in between the sand-bags just as I fired my first Fhot, and smashed my right shoulder. I think I have not been mudi good since, though I have been firing from my le- 1 as well as I could. I think I will go up and get the Doctor to look at it. " But almost as he spoke the young fellow tottered, and would have fallen had not the Major caught him. 268 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. ' I " Lend me a hand, Doolan," the latter said; " we will carry him in, I am afraid he is very hard hit. " The ladies gathered round the Major and Captain Doolan as they entered with their burden. Mary Hunter had already run down and told them that the attack had been repulsed and the enemy had retreated. " Nobody else is hit," the Major said as he entered, "at least not seriously. The enemy have been hand- somely beaten with such loss that they won't be in a hurry to try again. Will one of you run up and bring the Doctor down?" Richards was carried in the hospital room, where he was left to the care of the Doctor, Mrs. Hunter, and Mrs. Rintoul. The Major returned to the general room. " Boy, bring half a dozen bottles of champagne and open them as quickly as you can," he said, "we have got enough to last us for weeks, and this is an occasion to celebrate, and I think we have all earned it." The others were by this time coming in, for there was no chance of renewing the attack at present. Far- quharson v^ras on the roof on the look-out. Quiet greetings were exchanged between wives and husbands. "It didn't last long," Wilson said, "not above five minutes, I should say, from the time when we opened fire." " It seemed to us an age," Amy Hunter said ; " it was dreadful not to be able to see what was going on. It seemed to me every one must be killed with all that firing." "It was sharp while it lasted," the Major said, "but we were all snug enough except against a stray bullet such as that which hit poor young Richards. He be- haved very gallantly and none of us knew he was hit till it was all over." " But how did Captain Forster get his bayonet wound?" Mrs. Doolan asked. " I saw him go in just now into the surgery; it seemed to me he had a very serious wound, for his jacket was cut from the breast up to the shoulder, and he was bleeding terribly, though he made light of it." IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 969 "He jumped down into the middle of them," the Major said. " Bathurst jumped down first, and was fighting like a madman with a mace he has got. We could do nothing, for we were afraid of hitting him, and Forster jumped down to help him, and as he did so got that rip with the bayonet ; it is a nasty cut, no doubt, but it is onl"* a flesh-wound." "Where is Mi. B^^thurst?" Mrs. Doolan asked, "is he hurt too? Why did he jump down? I should not have thought " and she stopped. " I fancy a sort of fury seized him," the Major said; "but whatever it was he fought like a giant. He is a powerful man, and that iron mace is just the thing for such work. The natives went down like ninepins be- fore him. No, I don't think he is hurt. ' "I will go out and see," Mrs. Doolan said, and tak- ing a mug half -full of champagne from the table, she went out. Bathurst was sitting on the ground leaning against the wall of the house. "You are not hurt, Mr. Bathurst, I hope," Mrs. Doolan said, as she came up; " No, don't try to get up, drink a little of this; we are celebrating our victory by opening a case of champagne. The Major tells, us you have been distinguishing yourself greatly. " Bathurst drank some of the wine' before he replied. " In a way, Mrs. Doolan : I scarcely know what I did do. I wanted to do something even if it was only to get killed." "You must not talk like that," she said kindly; " Your life i.^^" as valuable as any here, and you know that we all like and esteem you, and, at any rate, you have shown to-day that you have plenty of courage." "The courage of a Malay running a-muck, Mrs. Doolan; that is not courage, it is madness. You can- not tell — no one can tell what I have suffered since the siege began. The humiliation of knowing that I alone of the men here am unable to take my part in the de- fence, and that while others are fighting I am useful only to work as a miner." UlT 270 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. I Ik i % i' " But you are as useful in that way as you would be in the other," she said. " I don't feel humiliated be- cause I can only help in nursing the sick while the others are fighting for us. We have all of us our gifts. Few men have more than you have. You have courage and coolness in other ways, and you are wrong to care nothing for your life because of the failing, for which you are not accountable, of your nerves to stand the effect of fire-arms. I can understand your feelings and sympathize with you, but it is of no use to exaggerate the importance of such a matter. You might live a thousand lives without being again in a position when such a failing would be of the slightest importance, one way or the other. Now come in with me. Cer- tainly this is not the moment for you to give way about it, for whatever your feelings may have been, or what- ever may have impelled you to the act, you have on this occasion fought nobly." "Not nobly, Mrs. Doolan," he said, rising to his feet, " desperately, or madly if you like. " At this moment Wilson came out. " Hallo, Bathurst, what are you doing here? Breakfast is just ready, and every one is asking for you. I am sure you must want something after your exertions. You should have seen him laying about him with that iron mace, Mrs. Doolan. I have seen him using the pick, and knew how strong he was, but I was astonished, I can tell you. It was a sort of Coeur-de-Lion business. He used to use a mace, you" know, and once rode through the Saracens and smashed them up, till at last, when he had done, he couldn't open his hand. Bring him in, Mrs. Doolan. If he won't come I will go in and send the Doctor out to him. Bad business poor Richards being hurt, isn't it? Awfully good fellow, Richards. Can't think why he was the one to be hit." So keeping up a string of talk the young subaltern led Bathurst into the house. After breakfast a white flag was waved from the roof, and in a short time two Sepoy officers came up with a similar flag. The Major and Captain Doolan went out to meet them, and it was agreed that hostilities should IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 271 )altern [e roof, with a mt out I should be suspended until noon, in order that the wounded and dead might be carried off. While this was being done the garrison remained under arms behind their work at the breach lest any- treacherous attempt should be made. The mutineers, however, who were evidently much depressed by the failure, carried the bodies off quietly, and at twelve o'clock firing recommenced. That evening, after it was dark, the men gathered on the terrace. "Well, gentlemen," the Major said, "we have beaten them off to-day and we may do it again, but there is no doubt how it must all end. You see this afternoon their guns have all been firing at a fresh place in the wall, and if they make another breach or two and attack at them altogether, it will be hopeless to try to defend them. You see now that we have several sick and wounded, the notion of making our escape is almost knocked on the head. At the last moment each may try to save his life, but there must be no desertion of the posts and the sick as long as there is a cartridge to be fired. Our best hope is in getting assistance from somewhere, but we know nothing of what is going on elsewhere. I think the best plan will be for one of our number to try to make his way out and go either to Lucknow, Agra, or Allahabad, and try and get help. If they could spare a troop of cavalry it might be suf- ficient ; the mutineers have suffered very heavily ; there were over a hundred and fifty bodies carried out to-day, and if attacked suddenly, I don't think they would make any great resistance. We may hold out for a week or ten days, but I think that is the outside, and if rescue does not arrive by that time, we must either surrender or try to escape by that passage." There was a general assent. "Bathurst would be the man to do it," the Doctor said. " Once through their lines he could pass without exciting the slightest suspicion ; he could buy a horse then, and could be at any of the stations in two days." "Yes, there is no doubt that he is the man to do it," the Major said; "where is he now?" 372 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. r > "At work as usual, Major; shall I go and speak to him? but I tell you fairly I don't think he will under- take it. " " Why not, Doctor? It is a dangerous mission, but no more dangerous than remaining here. " "Well, we shall see," the Doctor said, as he left the group. Nothing was said for a few minutes, the men sitting or ly . iig about smoking. Presently the Doctor returned. " Bathurst refuses, absolutely," he said. " He admits that he does not think there would be much difficulty foi- him to get through, but he is convinced that the mis ;!on would be a useless one, and that could help havi been spared it would have come to us before now." " But in that case he would have made his escape, " the Major said. " That is just why he won't go. Major. He says that corxie what will he will share the fate of the rest, and ;",it he will not live to be pointed to as the one man who made his escape of the garrison of Deennugghur." " Who can we send?" the Major said. " You are the orly other man who speaks the language well enough to pass as a native. Doctor." " I speak it fairly, but not well enough for that ; be- sides I am too old to bear the fatigue of riding night and day, and moreover my services are wanted here both as a doctor and as a rifle-shot."' "I will go, if you will send me, Major," Captain Forster said suddenly ; "not in disguise but in uniform, and on my horse's back. Of course, I should run the gantlet of their sentries. Once through I doubt if they have a horse that could overtake mine. " There was a general silence of surprise. Forster's reckless courage was notorious, and he had been con- spicuous for the manner in which he had chosen the most dangerous points during the siege, and this offer to undertake what, although a dangerous enterprise in itself, still offered a far better chance of life than that of remaining behind, surprised every one. It had been noticed that since the rejection of his plan to sally out in a body and cut their way through the enemy he had been 1 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 273 ik to ider- ,, but t the itting imed. idmits acuity at the i help now." icape," ys that St, and tie man ;ghur." . are the enough at; be- r night 'd here Captain Iniform, •un the ioubt if torster's len con- Isen the lis offer Drise in lan that lad been ly out in lad been moody and silent, except only when the fire was heavy and the danger considerable, then he laughed and joked and seemed absolutely to enjoy the excitement ; but he was the last man whom any of them would have expected to volunteer for a service that, dangerous as it might be, had just been refused by Bathurst on the ground that it offered a chance of escape from the common lot. The Major was the first to speak. " Well, Captain Forster, as we have just agreed that our only chance is to obtain aid from one of the stations, and as you are the only volunteer for the service, I do not see that I can decline to accept your offer. At which station do you think you would be most likely to find a force that could help us?" " I should say Lucknow, Major, if Ivelp is tc« be ob- tained anywhere I should say it was there. ' " Yes, I think that is the most hopeful. You will start 9c once, I suppose, the sooner the better." "As soo'. as they are fr.irly asleep: say twelve o'clock." " Very well. [ will go and write a dispatch for you to carry, g. ing an account of the fix we are in here. How will you sally out?" "I should think the easiest plan would be to make a gap in the. sar.d bags in the breach, lead the horse till fairly outside, and then mount." " I think you had better take a spare horse with you," the Doctor said ; " it will make a difference if yo^ . are chased if you can change from ore to the other. Bath- urst told me to say whoever went could have i which is a long way the best in the station, fancy as good as your own, " "I don't icnow," Forster said; "led horses are a nuisance — still, as you say, it might come in useful, if it is only to loose and turn down a side road and so puzzle any one who may be after you in the dark." The Major and Forster left the root together. "Well, that is a rum go," Wilson said. |'If it had been any one but Forster, I should have said that he fvinked and was taking th§ opportunity to get out of it, ^orse, hould f 274 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. but every one knows that hie has any amount of pluck ; look how he charged those Sepoys single-handed." "There are two sorts of pluck, Wilson," the Doctor said dryly. " There is the pluck that will carry a man through a desperate action and lead him to do deeds that are the talk of an army. Forster possessed that kind of pluck in an unusual degree. He is almost an ideal cavalryman, dashing, reckless, riding with a smile on his lips into the thickest of the fray, absolutely care- less of life when his blood is up. " There is another sort of courage, that which sup- ports men under long-continued strain, and enables them, . patiently and steadfastly, to face death when they see it approaching step by step. I doubt whether Forster possesses that passive sort of courage. He would ride up to a cannon's mouth, but would grow im- patient in a square of infantry condemned to remain inactive under a heavy artillery fire. " No one has changed more since this siege began than he has. Except when engaged under a heavy fire, he has been either silent, or impatient and short- tempered, shirking conversation even with women, when his turn of duty was over. Mind, I don't say for a moment that I suspect him of being afraid of death ; when tiie end came he would fight as bravely as ever, and no one could fight more bravely. But he cannot stand the waiting ; he is always pulling his mustache moodil}'' and muttering to himself ; he is good to do but not to suffer ; he would make a shockingly bad patient in a long illness. " Well, if any of you have letters you want to write to friends in England, I should advise you to take the opportunity; mind, I don't think they will ever get them. Forster may get through but I consider the chances stro gly against it. For a ride of ten miles through a country swarming with foes I could choose no messenger I would rather trust, but for a ride like this that requires patience and caution and resource he is not the man I should select. Bathurst would have succeeded almost certainly it" he had once got out. The two men are as different as light to dark, one pos- IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 275 pluck ; Doctor a man deeds d that ost an 1 smile y care- ;h sup- inables L when i^hether 3. He ow im- remain 3 began I heavy short- romen, say for death ; IS ever, cannot lustache do biit patient to write ike the |ver get ier the miles choose kde like \vLYce he Id have Jot out. jne pos- sesses just the points the other fails in. I have no one at home I want to write to, so I will undertake the watch here. " CHAPTER XVII. The men, on descending from the roof, foimd all the ladies engaged in writing, the Major having told them that there was a chance of their letters being taken out. Scarce one looked up as they entered : their thoughts at the moment were at home with thc^ i > whom they were writing what might well be their last farewells. Stifled sobs were heard in the quiet room ; mournful letters were blurred with tears even from eves that had not been dimmed before since the siege began. Isobel Hannay was the first to finish, for her letter to her mother was but a short one. As she closed it she looked up. Captain Forster was standing at the other side of the table with his eyes fixed on her, and he made a slight gesture to her that he wished to speak to her. She hesitated a moment, and then rose and quietly left the room. A moment later, he joined her outside. " Come out," he said, " I must speak to you," and to- gether they went out through the passage into the court-yard. " Isobel," he began, " I need not tell you that I love you ; till lately I have not known how much, but I feel now that I could not live v. ^'thout you. " "Why are you going away then, Captain Forster?" she asked quietly. "I don't want to go alone," he said, "I cannot go alone, I want you to go with me. Your uncle would surely consent, it is the only chance of saving your life. We all know that it is next to hopeless that they should be able to spare a force sufficient to rescue all ; there is just a chance, but that is all that can be said. We could be married at Allahabad. I would make for there instead of Luck, ow if you will go with me, and I could leave you there *n safety till these troubles are Pj! I 1 i :.. , •' t- 1 I 1 ( 1 276 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. over; I am going- to take another horse as well as my own, and two would be as likely to escape as one." " Thank you for the offer, Captain Forster," she said coldly, " but I decline it. My place is here, with my uncle and the others." *' Why is it?" he asked passionately. " If you love me, your place is surely with me, and you do love me, Isobel, do you not? Surely I have not been mistaken." Isobel was silent for a moment. "You were mistaken, Captain Forster," she 'said, after a pause. " You paid me attentions as I had heard )'ou paid to many others, and it was pleasant. That you were serious I did not think. I believed you were simply flirting with me; that you meant no more by it than you had meant before; and being forearmed and therefore having no fear that I should hurt myself more than you would, I entered into it in the same spirit. Where there was so much to be anxious about it was a pleasure and a relief. Had I met you elsewhere and under different circumstances I think I should have come to love you. A girl almost without experi- ence and new to the world, as I am, could hardly have helped doing so, I think. Had I thought you had been in earnest, I should have acted differently; and if I have deceived you by my manner, I am sorry; but even had I loved you, I would not have consented to do the thing you ask me. You are going on duty. You are going in the hope of obtaining aid for us, I should be simply escaping while others stay. I should despise myself. Besides, I do not think that even in that case mv uncle would have consented to my going off with you." *' I am sure that he would," Forster broke in. "He would never be mad enough to refuse you the chance of escape from such a fate as may now await you. " "We need not discuss the question," she said. " Even if I loved you, I would not go with you, and I do not love you." "They have prejudiced you against me," he said angrily. '* They warned me and they were right in doing so. as my •I e said th my Li love ^e me, aken." rsakl, I heard That »u were re by it ed and myself e same IS about jewhere should experi- ly have lad been nd if I ut even do the ou are ould be despise at case .£E with , "He chance bu." le said. I, and I Ihe said )ing SO. IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. «77 Ask yourself if they were not. Would you vSce a sister ot yours running the risk of breaking her heart without warning her? Do not be angry," she went on, putting her hand on his arm. " We have been good friends. Captain Forster, and I like you very much. We may never meet again, it is most likely we never shall do so. I am grateful to yoii for the many pleasant hours you have given me. Let us part thus." " Can you not give some hope that in the distance, when these troubles are over, should we both be spared, you may " *' No, Captain Forster, I am sure it could never be so; if we ever meet again we will meet as we part now — as friends. And now I can stay no longer; they will be missing me," and turning, she entered the house before he could speak again. It was some minutes before he followed her. He had not really thought that she would go with him ; perhaps he had hardly wished it, for on such an ex- pedition a woman would necessarily add to the difficulty and danger; but he had thought that she would have told him that his love was returned, and for perhaps the first time in his life he was serious in his protesta- tion of it. "What does it matter," he said at last, as he turned; " 'tis ten thousand to one against our meeting again ; if we do, I can take it up where it breaks off now. She half acknowledged that she would have liked me if she had been sure that I were in earnest. Next time I shall be in earnest. She was right, I was but amus- ing myself with her at first, and had no more thought of marrying her than I had of flying. But there, it is no use talking about the future, the thing now is to get out of this trap, I have felt like a rat in a cage with a terrier watching me for the last month, and long to be on horseback again, with the chance of making a fight for my life. What a fool Bathurst was to throw away the chance!" Bathurst, his work done, had looked into the hall where the others were gathered, and hearing that the Doctor was alone on watch, had gone up to him. 278 IN THK DAVS OF TirK MUTINY. "I was just thinking, Bathurst," the Doctor said, as he jt)ined him, " about that fight to-day. It seems to me th It whatever comes of this business, you and I are not likely to be among those who go down when the place is taken." •' How is that, Doctor? Why is our chance better than the rest? I have no hope, myself, that any will be spared." " I put my faith in the juggler, Bathurst. Has it not struck you that the first picture you saw has come true?" " I have never given it a thought for weeks," Bathurst said; "certainly I have not thought of it to-day. Yes, now you speak of it, it has come true. How strange! I put it aside as a clever trick — one that I could not understand iny more than I did the others, but, know- ing myself, it seemed beyond the bounds of possibility that it could come true. Anything but that I would have believed, but, as I told you, whatever might hap- pen in tlie future, I should not be found fighting des- perately as I saw myself doing there. It is true that I did so, but it was only a sort of a frenzy. I did not fire a shot, as Wilson may have told you. I strove like a man in a nightmare to break the spell that seemed to render me powerless to move, but when, for a moment, the firing ceased, a weight seemed to fall off me and I was seized with a sort of passion to kill. I have no distinct remembrance of anything until it was all over. It was still the nightmare, but one of a different kind, and I was no more myself then than I was when I was lying helpless on the sand-bags. Still, as you say, the picture was complete; at least, if Miss Hannay was standing up here." " Yes, she rose to her feet in the excitement of the fight. I believe we all did so. The picture was true in all its details, as you described it to me. And, that being so, I believe that other picture, the one we saw together, you and I and Isobel Hannay in native dis- guises, will also come true." Bathurst was silent for two or three minutes. " Itmay be so. Doctor — Heaven only knows. I trust for your sake and hers it may be so, though I care but IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 279 ,id, as ms to i I are in the better ly will it not true?" ithurst Yes, range! lid not know- sibility would ht hap- ig des- le that lid not »ve like imed to oment, I and I lave no II over, t kind, ti I was ay, the ay was of the ras true id, that we saw ive dis- I trust ;are but little about myself; but that picture wasn't a final one, and we don't know what may follow it." "That is so, Bathurst. But I think that you and I, once fairly away in disguise, might be trusted to make our way down the country. You see, we have a com- plete confirmation of that juggler's powers. He showed me a scene in the past — a scene which had not been in my mind for years — and was certainly not in my thoughts at the time. He showed you a scene in the future which, unlikely as it appeared, has actually taken place. I believe he will be equally right in this other picture. You have heard that Forster is going?" " Yes, Wilson came down and told me while I was at work. Wilson seemed rather disgusted at his volun- teering. I don't know that I am surprised myself, for, as I told you, I knew him at school, and he had no moral courage, though plenty of physical ; though un- der the circumstances I should not have thought he would have gone." "You mean because of Miss Hannay, Bathurst?" " Yes, that is what I mean. " " That sort of thing might weigh with you or me, Bathurst, but not with him. He has loved and ridden away many times before this, but in this case, fortu- nately, I don't think he will leave an aching heart be- hind him." "You don't mean to say, Doctor, that you don't think she cares for him?" " I have not asked her the question," the Doctor said dryly. " I dare say she likes him, in fact I am ready to admit that there has been what you may call a strong case of flirtation, but when a young woman is thrown with an uncommonly good-looking man, who lays him- self out to be agreeable to her, my experience is that a flirtation generally comes of it, especially when the young woman has no one else to make herself agreeable to, and is, moreover, a little sore with t\\e world in general. I own that at one time I was rather inclined to think that out of sheer perverseness the girl was go- ing to make a fool of herself with that good-looking scamp, but since we have been shut up here I have felt t -,% <^. IMAGE EVALUATION TEST TARGET (MT-S) 1.0 I.I 2.0 1.8 • 1.25 1.4 III 1.6 < 6" ► *% '^ « l^ fliotogiBphic Sdences Corporation M \ :\ \ ^ V 4"%^ '<»^ 23 WEST MAIN STREET WEBSTER, N.Y. M580 (716) 873-4503 ^ & 38o IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. I ' easy in my mind about it. And now, if you will take my rifle for ten minutes, I will go down and get a cup of tea; I volunteered to take sen try- work but I didn't bargain for keeping it all night without relief. By the way, I told Forster of your offer of your horse, and I think he is going to take it. " "He is welcome to it," Bathurst said carelessly, "it will be of no use to rae. " "Now look here," the Doctor said shortly. "Just put Miss Hannay out of 5''our head for the present, and attend to the business on hand. I do not think there is much chance of their trying it on again to-night, but they may do so, so please to keep a sharp lookout while I am below." "I will be careful, Doctor," Bathursc said, with a laugii; but t^e Doctor had so little faith in his watch- fulness that so soon as he went below he sent up Wilson to share his watch. At twelve o'clock the sand-bags were removed suf- ficiently to allow a horse to pass through, and Forster's and Bathurst's animals were led out through the breach, their feet having been muffled with blankets to prevent their striking a stone, and arousing the attention of the enemy's sentinels. Once fairly out, the mufflings were removed, and Forster sprang into his saddle. "Good-by, Major," he said; "I hope I may be back again in eight or nine days with a squadron of cavalry." " Good-by, Forst'^r, I hope it may be so. May God protect 5'ou. " The breach in the defences was closed the instant the horses passed through, and the others stood in the breach of the wall listening as Forster rode off. He went at a walk, but before he had gone fifty paces there was a sharp challenge, followed almost instantly by a rifle-shot, then came the crack of a revolver and the rapid beat of galloping hoofs. Loud shouts were heard and musket-shots fired in rapid succession. "They are not likely to have hit him in the dark," the Major said, as he climbed back over the sand-bags, " but they may hit his horses, which would be just as fatal." ' t IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. fiSl ' as Leaving two sentries — the one just outside the breach near the wall, the other on the sand-bags — the rest of the party hurried up on the roof. Shots were still be- ing fired, and there was a confused sound of shouting; then a cavalry trumpet rang out sharply, and presently three shots fired in quick succession came upon the air. " That is the signal agreed on, " the Major said ; " he is safely beyond their lines. Now it is a question of riding ; some of the cavalry will be in pursuit of him before many minutes are over." Forster's adieu had been brief. He had busied him- self up to the last moment in looking to the saddling of the two horses, and had only gone into the house and said good-by to the ladies just when it was time to start. He had said a few hopeful words as to the success of the mission, but had evidently needed an effort to do so. He had no opportunity of speaking a word apart with Isobel, and he shook her hand silently when it came to her turn. "I should not have given him credit for so much feeling, " Mrs. Doolan whispered to Isobel, as he went out; "he was really sorry to leave us, and I didn't think he was a man to be sorry for anything that didn't affect himself. I think he had absolutely the grace to feel a little ashamed of leaving us. " "I don't think that is fair," Isobel said warmly, " when he is going down to fetch assistance for us." "He is deserting us, as rats desert a sinking ship," Mrs. Doolan said, positively, " and I am only surprised that he has the grace to feel a little ashamed of the action. As for caring : there is only one person in the world he cares for — himself. I was reading * David Copperfield' just before we came in here, and Steerforth's character might have been sketched from Forster. He is a man without either heart or conscience ; a man who would sacrifice everything to his own pleasures, and yet even when one knows him to be what he is one can hardly help liking him. I wonder how it is, my dear, that scamps are generally much more pleasant than good men?" sSa IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. " I never thought about it, Mrs. Doolan," Isobel said, roused to a smile by the earnestness with which Mrs. Doolan propounded the problem, "and can give no reason except that we are attracted by natures the re- verse of our own. " Mrs. Doolan laughed. "So you think we are better than men, Isobel? I don't — not one bit. We are cramped in our opportuni- ties, but given equal opportunities and I don't think there is anything to choose between us. But we mustn't stay talking here any longer; we both go on duty in the sick ward at four o'clock." The enemy's batteries opened on the following morning more violently than before. More guns had been placed in position during the night, and a rain of missiles was "poured upon the house. For the next six days the position of the besieged became hourly worse. Several breaches had been made in the wall, and the shots now struck the house, and the inmates passed the greater part of their time in the basement. The heat was terrible, and as the firing was kept up night and day, sleep was almost impossible. The number of the besiegers had considerably increased, large numbers of the country people taking part in the siege, while a regiment of Sepoys from Cawnpore had taken the place of the detachment of the 103d Bengal Infantry, of whom, indeed, but few now remained. The garrison no longer held the court-yard. Several times masses of the enemy had surged up and poured through the breaches, but a large number of hand grenades of various sizes had been constructed by the defenders, and the effects of these thrown down from the roof among the crowded masses were so terrible that the natives each time fell back. The horses had all been turned out through the breach on the day after Captain Forster's departure, in order to save their lives. A plague of flies was not the least of the de- fenders' troubles. After the repulse of the assaults the defenders at night went out and carried the bodies of the natives, who had fallen in the court-yard, beyond the wall, but the odor of blood attracted such countless 1 m THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY, 283 swarms of flies that the ground was black with them, and they pervaded the house in legions. The number of the defenders decreased daily. Six only were able now to carry arms. Mr. Hunter, Cap- tain Rintoul, and Richards had died of fever. Far- quharson had been killed by a cannon-ball ; two civil- ians had been badly wounded ; several of the children had succumbed; Amy Hunter had been killed by a shell that passed through the sand-bag protection of the grating that gave light to the room in the base- ment used as a sick ward. The other ladies were all utterly worn out with exhaustion, sleeplessness and anx- iety. Still there had been no word spoken of sur- render. Had the men been alone they would have sallied out and died fighting, but this would have left the women at the mercy of the assailants. The work at the gallery had been discontinued for some time ; it had been carried upward until a number of roots in the earth showed that they were near the surface, and, as they believed, under a clump of bushes growing a hundred and fifty yards beyond the walls ; but of late there had been no talk of using this. Flight, which even at first had seemed almost hopeless, was wholly beyond them in their present weakened condi- tion. On the last of these six days, Major Hannay was severely wounded. At night, the enemy's fire relaxed a little, and the ladies took advantage of it to go up on to the terrace for air, while the men gathered for a council round the Major's bed. " Well, Doctor, the end is pretty near," he said; "it is clear we cannot hold out many hours longer. We must look the matter in the face now. We have agreed all along, that when we could no longer resist we would offer to surrender on the terms that our lives should be spared, and that we should be given safe con- duct down the country, and that if those terms were re- fused, we were to resist to the end and then blow up the house and all in it. I think the time has come for raising the white flag." " I think so," the Doctor said; " we have done every- a84 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. M ! i thing men could do. I have little hope that they will grant us terms of surrender ; for from the native ser- vants who have deserted us they must have a fair idea of our condition. What do you think, Bathurst?" " I think it probable there are divisions among them," he replied; "the Talookdars may have risen against us, but I do not think they can have the same deadly enmity the Sepoys have shown. They must be heartily sick of this prolonged siege, and they have lost large numbers of their men. I should say they would be willing enough to give terms, but probably they are over- ruled by the Sepoys, and perhaps by orders from Nana Sahib. I know several of them personally, and I think I could influence Por Sing, who is certainly the most pow- erful of the Zemindars of this neighborhood, and is prob- ably looked upon as their natural leader ; if you approve of it. Major, I will go out in disguise and endeavor to ob- tain an interview with him. He is an honorable man, and if he will give his guarantee for our safety, I would trust in him. At any rate, I can but try. If I do not return j'^ou will know that no terms can be obtained and can then decide when to end it all." "It is worth the attempt anyhow," the Major said. " I say nothing about the danger you will run ; for no danger can be greater than that which hangs over us all now. " " Very well, Major, then I will do it at once, but you must not expect me back until to-morrow night. I can hardly hope to obtain an interview with Por Sing to- night." " How will you go out, Bathurst?" " I will go down at once and break in the roof of the gallery," he said; "we know they are close round the wall, and I could not hope to get out through any of the breaches." " I suppose you are quite convinced that there is no hope of relief from Lucknow." " Quite convinced. I never had any real hope from it, but had there been a force disposable it would have started at once if Forster arrived there with his mes- sage, and might have been here by this time." I IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 285 US the the the " At any rate we can wait no longer. " ^ "Then we will begin at once," Bathurst said, and- taking a crowbar and pick from the place where the tools were kept, he lighted the lamp and went along the gallery, accompanied by the Doctor, who carried two light bamboo ladders. " Do you think you will succeed, Bathurst?" " I am pretty sure of it," he said confidently. " I be- lieve I have a friend there. " "A friend!" the Doctor repeated in surprise. "Yes. I am convinced that the juggler is there. Not once, but half a dozen times during the last two nights, when I have been on watch on the terrace, I have distinctly heard the words whispered in my ear, * Meet me at your bungalow. ' You may think I dozed off and was dreaming, but I was as wide awake then as I am now. I cannot say that I recognized the voice, but the words were in the dialect he speaks. At any rate, as soon as I am out I shall make my way there, and shall wait there all night on the chance of his com- ing. After what we know of the man's strange powers there seems nothing unreasonable to me in his being able to impress upon my mind the fact that he wants to see me." " I quite agree with you there, and his aid might be invaluable. You are not the sort of man to have delu- sions, Bathurst, and I quite believe what 3W)U say. I feel more hopeful now than I have done for some time. " An hour's hard work and a hole was made through the soil, which was but three feet thick. Bathurst climbed up the ladder and looked out. " It is as we thought. Doctor, we are in the middle of that thicket. Now I will go and dress if you will keep guard here with your rifle. " At the end of the gallery a figure was standing ; it was Isobei Hannay. " I have heard you are going out again, Mr. Bath- urst." " Yes, I am going to see what I can do in the way of jnaking terms for us. " '* You may not €9me back again," shes&id nervously. 286 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. i " That is, of course, possible. Miss Hannay, but I do not think the risk is greater than these run who stay here." " I want to speak to you before you go, " she said. " I have wanted to speak so long, but you have never given me an opportunity. We may not meet again, now, and I must tell you how sorry I am, how sorry I have been ever since for what I said. I spoke as a foolish girl, but I know better now. Have I not seen how calm you have been through all our troubles, how you devoted yourself to us and the children, how you have kept up all our spirits, how cheerfully you have worked, and as our trouble increased we have all come to look up to you and lean upon you. Do say, Mr. Bathurst, tnat you forgive mc, and that if you return we can be friends as we were before. " " Certainly I forgive you if there is anything to for- give, Miss Hannay," he said gravely. "Nothing that you or any one can say can relieve me of the pain of knowing that I have been unable to take any active part in your defence, that I have been forced to play the part of a woman rather than a man ; but assuredly, if I return, I shall be glad to be again your friend, which, indeed, I have never ceased to be at heart. " Perhaps she expected something more, but it did not come. He spoke cordially, but yet as one who felt that there was an impassable barrier between them. She stood irresolute for a moment, and then held out her hand. " Good-by then," she said. He held it a moment. "Good-by, Miss Hannay. May God keep you and guard j'ou. " Then gently he led her to the door, and they passed out together. A quarter of an hour later he rejoined the Doctor, having brought with him a few short lengths of bamboo. " I will put these across the hole when I get out," he said; "lay some sods over them and cover them up with leaves, in case any one should enter the bushes to- morrow. It is not likely, but it is as well to take the precaution. One of you had better stay on guard until I come back. It would not do to trust any of the na* ' IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. a87 not that She her tives; those that remain are all utterly disheartened and broken down, and might take the opportunity of purchasing their lives by going out and informing the enemy of the opening into the gallery. They must al- ready know of its existence from the men who have deserted. But, fortunately, I don't think any of them are aware of its exact direction ; if they had been, we should have had them countermining before this. " Having carefully closed up the opening, Bathurst went to the edge of the bushes and listened. He could hear voices between him and the house, but all was quiet near at hand, and he began to move noiselessly along through the garden. He had no great fear of meeting with any one here. The natives had formed a cordon round the wall and behind that there would be no one on watch, and as the batteries were silent all were doubtless asleep there. In ten minut*^ he stood before the charred stumps that marked the site of his bungalow. As he did so, a figure advanced to meet him. " It is you. Sahib. I was expecting you. I knew that you would come this evening. " " I don't know how you knew it, but I am heartily glad to see you. " " You want to see Por Sing? Come along with me and I will take you to him ; but there is no time to lose, " and without another word he walked rapidly away, fol- lowed by Bathurst. When they got into the open, the latter could see that his companion was dressed in an attogether dif- ferent garb to that in which he had before seen him, being attired as a person of some station and importance. He stopped presently for Bathurst to come up with him. " I have dene what I could to prepare the way for you, " he said. " Openly, I could for certain reasons do nothing, but I have said enough to make him feel un- comfortable about the future, and to render him anxious to find a way of escape for himself if your people should ever again get the mastery. " "How are things going, Rujub? We have heard nothing for three weeks. How is it at Cawnpore?" ■»*■ 288 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. " Cawnpore has been taken by the Nana. They sur- rendered on his solemn oath that all should be allowed to depart in safety. He broke his oath, and there are not ten of its defenders alive. The women are all in captivity. " Bathurst groaned. He had hardly hoped that the handful of defenders could have maintained themselves against such overpowering numbers, but the certainty as to their fate was a heavy blow. "And Lucknow?" he asked. " The Residency holds out at present, but men say that it must soon fall." "And what do you say?" " I say nothing," the man said; " we cannot use our art in matters which concern ourselves. " "And Delhi?" " There is a little force of whites in front of Delhi ; there are tens of thousands of Sepoys in the town, but as yet the whites have maintained themselves. The chiefs of the Punjaub have proved faithless to their countrj'', and there the British rule is maintained. " " Thank God for that ! " Bathurst exclaimed, " as long as the Punjaub holds out the tables may be turned. And the other Presidencies?" " Nothing as yet," Rujub said, in a tone of discontent. " Then you are against us, Rujub. " The man stopped. " Sahib, I know not what I wish now. I have been brought up to hate the whites. Two of my father's brothers were hung as Thugs, and my father taught me to hate the men who did it. For years I have worked quietly, as have most of those of my craft, against you. We have reason to hate you. In the old times, we were honored in the land — honored and feared; for even the great ones knew that we had powers such as no other men have. But the whites treat us as if we were mere buffoons, who pi ay for their amusement; they make no distinction between the wandering conjurer with his tricks of dexterity, and the masters, who have powers that have been handed down from father to soi) igv thousands of years, whQ can communicate witli each fj ul Hi IN THE DAYS Ok THE MUTINY. a89 5 e ay our Ihi ; but The ;heir long ■ned. Itent. other though separated by the length of India, who can, as you have seen, make men invisible ; who can read the past and the future. They see these things, and though they cannot explain them, they persist in treating us all as if we were mere jugglers. "They prefer to deny the evidences of their own senses rather than admit that we have powers such as they have not; and so, even in the eyes of their own countrymen, we have lost our old standing and posi- tion; while the whites would bribe us with money to divulge the secrets in which they profess to disbelieve. No wonder that we hate you and that we long for the return of the old days, when even princes were glad to ask favors at oui hands. It is seldom that we show our powers now. Those who aid us, and whose servants we are, are not to be insulted by the powers they be- stow upon us being used for the amusement of men who believe in nothing. " The Europeans who first came to India have left records of the strange things they saw at the courts of the native princes. But such things are no longer done for the amusement of our white masters. Thus then for years I have worked against you, and just as I saw that our work was successful, just as all was pre- pared for the blow that was to sweep the white men out of India, you saved my daughter ; then my work seemed to come to an end. Would any of my countrymen armed only with a whip have thrown themselves in the way of a tiger to save a woman — a stranger — one alto- gether beneath him in rank — one as it were dust be- neath his feet? That I should be ready to give my life for yours was a matter of course ; I should have been an ungrateful wretch otherwise. But this was not enough. At one blow the work I had devoted myself to for years was brought to nothing. Everything seemed to me new, and as I sat by my daughter's bedside, when she lay sick with the fever, I had to think it all out again then. I saw things in another light. I saw that though the white men were masterful and often hard, though they had little regard for our customs, and viewed our be- liefs as superstitious, and scoffed at the notion of ther^ 19 r 290 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. t I being powers of which they had no knowledge, yet that they were a great people. Other conquerors, many of them, India has had, but none who have made it their first object to care for the welfare of the people at large. The Feringhees have wrung nothing from the poor to be spent in pomp and display; they permit no tyranny or ill-doing; under them the poorest peasant tills his fields in peace. " I have been obliged to see all this, and I feel now that their destruction would be a frightful misfortune. We should be ruled by our native lords, but as soon as the white man was gone the old quarrels would break out and the country would be red with blood. I did not see this before, because I had only looked at it with the eyes pf my own caste ; now I see it with the eyes of one whose daughter has been saved from a tiger by a white man. I cannot love those I have been taught to hate, but I can see the benefit their rule has given to India. " But what can I do now? I am in the stream and I must go with it. I know not what I wish or what I would do. Six months ago I felt certain. Now I doubt. It seemed to me that in a day the English Raj would be swept away. How could it be otherwise when the whole army that had conquered India for them were against them ? I knew they were brave, ^DUt we have never lacked bravery. How could I tell that they would fight one against a hundred? " But come, let us go on. Por Sing is expecting you. I told him that I knew that one from the garrison would come out to treat with him privately to-night, and he is expecting you, though he does not know who may come. " Ten minutes' walking and they approached a large tent surrounded by several smaller ones. A sentry challenged when they approached, but on Rujub giv- ing his name, he at once resumed his walk up and down, and Rujub, followed by Bathurst, advanced and entered the 'tent. The Zemindar was seated on a divan, smok- ing a hooka. Rujub bowed, but not with the deep reverence of one approaching his superior. '" '"'^ "'"'S OF T.,E MUTmV. 991 ; He is here, "he said. , "How Sir/r:.triV- «"^"''" have done what I said and 1, "T'" '^"J"'' said " I him to you rather than to7hl '^'^^^y- ^ ^a^e brought ^"ght of this s.eL a„dt'' "^^ ''^^^ b"™e the you who should dicide the con.r,'^ ''^^' "^at it is -sorwr„rr-^^^^^^^^ theEnglSh.^^*''^ -n Who have been"lK?-„\° ^,| Smg?" Bathurst said sten^- " 1^ "°* ^"^w me Por jnst officer and fha^en^^^ "^^^^ P^ved your^l? f have often broken bread to??i^'°' ^^^««' you. We me to know that you wllT"'^''' ^"<^ '* has grieved come to me on your own J" ^°"^^'" ''ouse. ^o ^ou who commands?" °^'' ^<=<=°"'"t, or from the SahiS Icome°as%°mSrengeyfrom''hr ^r"'''""' «-'".• "when iy"srhlee•'roi^!-^^^^^^^^^ y Msake that you should have S t ^"^ ?f ^' ^or ueen 1': . to take part ir- 292 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. with these mutineers against 11s. Believe me, chief, you have been terribly misled. You have been told that it needed but an effort to overthrow the British Raj. Those who told you so lied. It might have seemed easy to destroy the handful of Europeans scat- tered throughout India. You have not succeeded in do- ing so, but had you done so, you would not even have begun the work. There are but few white soldiers here. Why? Because England trusted in the fiJ,elity of her native troops, and thought it necessary to keep but a handful of soldiers in India; but if need be, for every soldier now here she could send a hundred, and she will send a hundred if it be needed to reconquer India. Already you may be sure that ships are on the sea laden with troops, and if you find it it so hard to overcome the few soldiers now here, what would you do against the great armies that will pour in ere long? Wh5% all the efforts of the Sepoys gathered at Delhi are insufficient to defeat the four or five thousand British troops that hold their posts outside the town waiting only till the succors anive from England to take a ter- rible vengeance. Woe be then to those who have taken part against us; still more to those whose hands are stained with British blood!" " It is too late now," the native said gloomily; "the die is cast, but since I have seen how a score of men could defend that shattered house against thousands, do you think I have not seen that I have done wrong? Who would have thought that men could do such a thing? But it is too late now. " " It is not too late, " Bathurst said ; " it is too late in- deed to undo the mischief that has been done, but not too late for you to secure yourself against some of the consequences. The English are just, and when they shall have stamped out this mutiny, as assuredly they will do, they will draw a distinction between mutinous soldieis, who were false to their salt, and native chiefs who fought, as they believed, for the independence of their country. But one thing they will not forgive, whether in Sepoy or Prince — the murder of man, woman, or child in cold blood ; for that there will be no pardon« (I < .#..w IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 293 lief, told itish have scat- a do- have idiers .lelity > keep »e, for i, and ►nqvier on the lard to Id you e long? t Delhi British waiting e a ter- e taken ,ds are " the [of naen tnds, do [wrong? such a Jlatein- Ibut not of the |en they ily they lutinous ^e chiefs ience of [forgive, I woman, pardon, "But it is not upon that ground that I came to ap- peal to you, but as a nobie of Oude — a man who is a brave enemy, but who could never be a butcher. We have fought against each other fairly and evenly; the time has come when we can fi^ht no longer, and I de- mand of you, confidently, that if we surrender the lives of all within those walls shall be respected and a safe- conduct be granted them down the country. I know that such conditions were granted to the garrison at Cawnpore, and that they were shamelessly violated; for that act, Nana Sahib will never be forgiven. He will be hunted down like a dog and hung when he is caught, just as if he had been the poorest peasant. But I have not so bad an opinion of the people of India as to believe them base enough to follow such an example, and I am confident that if you grant us those terms you will see that the conditions are observed." " I have received orders from Nana Sahib to send all prisoners down to him," Por Sing said in a hesitating voice. "You will never send down prisoners from here," Bathurst replied firmly. " You may attack us again, and after the loss of the lives of scores more of your followers you may be successful, but you will take no prisoners, for at the last moment we will blow the house and all in it into the air. Besides, who made Nana Sahib your master? He is not the lord of Oude; and though doubtless he dreams of sovereignty, it is a rope, not a throne, that awaits him. Why should you nobles of Oude obey the orders of this peasant boy, ' iiough he was adopted by the Peishwa? The Peishwa himself was never your lord, and why should you obey this traitor, this butcher, this disgrace to India, when he orders you to hand over to him the prisoners your sword has made?" "That is true," Por Sing said gloomily; "but the Sepoys will not agree to the terms. " "The Sepoys are not your masters," Bathurst said; " we do not surrender to them but to you. We place no confidence in their word, but we have every faith in the honor of the nobles of Oude. If you and your r ■,'m^' \ m v-'" > m m <' mi >ii!m m m * III 294 IN THR DAYS OF THR MUTINY. friends grant na the terms wo ask, the Sepoys may clamor, but they will not venture to do nior?. Neither they nor Nana Sahib dare at this moment affront the people of Oudc. There are Sepoys round Lucknow, but it is the men of Oude who are really pressing; the siejje. If you are firm they will not dare to break with you on such a question as the lives of a score of Euro- peans. If you will gi\e me your word and your honor that all shall be spared I will come out in the morninjj with a ilajj of truce to treat with you. If not, we will defend ourselves to the last, and then blow ourselves into the air." "And you think," Por Smj; .said doubtfully, "that if I agreed with this, it would be taken into consideration should the British Raj be restored. " "I can promise you that it will," Bathurst said. " It will be properly represented that it is to you that the defenders of Decnnugghui, and the women and children with them, owe their live:^, and you may be sure that this will go a very long way toward wiping out the part you have taken in the attack on the station. When tlie day of reckoning vxmir/ii the British Govern- ment will know how as well tj reward those who ren- dered them service in these duys, as to punish those who have been our foes." " I will do it," Por Sing said firmly. " Do not come out Until the afternoon. In the morning I will talk with the other Zemindars, and bring them over to agree that there shall be no move bloodshed. There is not one of us but is heartily sick of this !)usiness, and eager to put an end to it. Rujub may report what he likes to the Nana, I will do what is right." - After a hearty expression of thanks Bathurst left tho tent. Rujub was awaiting him cutside. " You have succeeded?" he asked. " Yes; he will guarantee the lives of a41 the garrison, but he seemed to be afraid of what you might report to Nana Sahib." " I am the Nana's agent here," Rujub said; " I have been working with him for months. I would I could undo it all now. I was away when they surrendered se IN TIIK DAYS OK TIIK MUTINY. 395 X /, ic Lh o- or rUl t\i Lion iaic\. that and ly be pinvc tion. ern- ren- who Iconic talk I agree lis not eager likes ;f t th<^ Irrison, )ort to 1 1 have could Endered at Cawnporo — had I not l)ccn that mnssacro would never have taken place, for I am one of the few who have influence with him. Ho knows my power and fears it. " They made their way back without interruption to the chimp of bu.shes near the house. "When shall I sec you aj^ain?*' Hathurst asked. " I do not know," replied Rujub, ''but bo sure that I shall bo ut hand to aid you, if possible, should danger arise." CHAPTER XVni. As soon as Bathurst began to remove the covering of the hole a voice came from below. " Is that you, Bathurst?" "All right. Doctor." "Heaven be praised! You are bp<^k sooner than I expected by a long way. I heard voices talking, so I doubted whether it was you." " The ladder is still there, I suppose. Doctor?" " Yes, it is just as you got o^ it. What arc you going to do about the hole?" " Rujub is here, he will cover it up after me." "Then you were right," the Doctor said, as Bathurst stepped d6wn beside him, " and you found the juggler really waiting for you?" "At the bungalow, Doctor, as I expected." "And what have you done? You can hardly have seen Por Sing; it is not much over an hour since you left. " " I have seen him, Doctor, and what is more, he has pledged his word for our safety. " •' Thank God for that, lad! it is more than I expected. This will be news, indeed, for the poor women. And do you think he will be strong enough to keep his pledge?" " I think so. He asked me to wait until to-morrow afternoon before going out with a flag of truce, and said that by that time he would get the other Talook- iflF^ :xi: UBS 296 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. dars to stand by him, and would make terms whether the Sepoys liked it or not. " " Well, you shall tell us all about it afterward, Bath- urst. Let us take the news in to them at once; it is long since they had good tidings of f*ny kind ; it would be cruel to keep them in suspense, even for five minutes. " There was no noisy outburst of joy when the news was told. Three weeks before it would have been re- ceived with the liveliest satisfaction, but now the bit- terness of death was well-nigh passed ; half the children lay in their graves in the garden, scarce one of the ladies but had lost husband or child, and while women murmured, " Thank God !" as they clasped their children to them, the tears ran down as they thought how dif- ferent it would have been had the news come sooner. The men, although equally quiet, yet showed more outward satisfaction than the women. Warm grasps of the hands were exchanged by those who had fought side by side during these terrible days, and a load seemed lifted at once off their shoulders. Bathurst stayed but a moment in the room after this news was told, but went in with Doctor Wade to the Major and reported to him in full the conversation that had taken place between himself and Por Sing. "I think you are right, Bathurst; if the Oude men hold together, the Sepoys will scarcely risk a breach with them. Whether he will be able to secure our safety afterward is another thing. " " I quite see that. Major, but it seems to me that we have no option but to accept his offer and hope for the best." "That is it," the Doctor agreed; "it is certain death if we don't surrender. There is a chance that he will be able to protect us if we do. At any rate, we can be no worse off than we are here. " Isobel had been in wiih Mrs. Doolan nursing the sick children when Bathurst arrived, but they presently came out. Isobel shook hands with him without speaking. "We are all heavily indebted to you, Mr. Bathurst," IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 297 this the that men reach oixr it we kthe leath will mbe sick ititly thout irst," Mrs. Doolan said. " If we escape from this, it will be to you that we humanly owe our lives." She spoke in a voice that all in the room could hear. " You are right, Mrs. Doolan," the Doctor said, " and I think that there are some who must regret now the manner in which they have behaved to Bathurst since this siege began. " " I do for one," Captain Doolan said, coming forward. " I have regretted it for some time, though I have not had the manliness to say so. I am heartily sorry I have done you a great and cruel injustice. I ought to have known that the Doctor, who knew you vastly bet- ter than I did, was not likely to be mistaken. Putting that aside I ought to have seen, and I did see, though I woula not acknowledge it, even to myself, that no man has borne himself more calmly and steadfastly through this siege than you have, and that by twice venturing out among the enemy you gave proof that you possessed as much courage as any of us. I do hope that you will give me your hand. " All the others who had held aloof from Bathurst came forward and expressed their deep regret for what had occurred. Bathurst heard them in silence. " I do not feel that there is anything to forgive, " he said quietly. " I am glad to hear what you say, and I know you mean it, and I accept the hands you offer; but what you felt toward me has affected me but little, for your contempt for me was nothing to my contempt of myself. Nothing can alter the fact that here, where every man's hand was wanted to defend the ladies and children, my hand was paralyzed; that whatever I may be at other times, in the hour of battle I fail hopelessly ; nothing that I can do can wipe out that disgrace. " "You exaggerate it altogether, Bathurst," Wilson broke in hotly. " It is nonsense your talking like that, after the way you jumped down into the middle of them with that mace of yours. It was splendid. " "More than that, Mr. Bathurst," Mrs. Doolan said. " I think we women know what true courage is ; and ^ere is not one of us but has, since this siege began, ^ - •mm 298 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. been helped and strengthened by your calmness — not one but has reason to be deeply grateful for your kind- ness to our children during this terrible time. I won't hear even you speak against yourself. " "Then I will not do so, Mrs. Doolan," he said with a grave smile. " And now I will go and sit with the Major for a time. Things are quieter to-night than they have been for some time past, and I trust he will get some sleep. " So saying he quietly left the room. " I don't believe he has slept two hours at a time since the siege began," Mrs. Doolan said with tears in her eyes. "We have all suffered, God only knows what we have suffered, but I am sure that he has suf- fered more than any of us. As for you men, you may well say you are sorry and ashamed of your treatment of him. Coward, indeed ! Mr. Bathurst may be nervous, but I am sure he has as much courage as any one here. Come, Isobel, 3''ou were up all last night and it's past two o'clock now. We must try to get a little sleep before morning, and I should advise every one else off duty to do the same. " At daybreak firing recommenced and was kept up energetically all the morning. At two o'clock a white flag was hoisted from the terrace, and its appearance was greeted with shouts of triumph by the assailants. The firing at once ceased, and in a few minutes a native officer*carrying a white flag advanced toward the walls. "We wish to see the Zemindar Por Sing," Bathurst said, " to treat with him upon the subject of our sur- render. " The officer withdrew, and returned in half an hour saying, that he would conduct the officer in command to the presence of the chief of the besieging force. Captain Doolan, therefore, accompanied by Bathurst and Dr. Wade, went out. They were cen ducted to the great tent where all the Talookdars and the princi- pal officers of the Sepoys were assembled. Bathurst acted as spokesman. "Por Sing," he said, "and you Zemindars of Oude, Major Hannay being disabled. Captain Doolan, who is jecj wei prif caq can! hm onl; his « IN THE DAYS OP THE MUTINY. 299 't a le an ill me »in )WS snf- nay it of ous, lere. past jfore duty it up rhite ance ants, ative alls, thnrst snr- hour imand [force. Ithnrst ted to jrinci- tthnrst Oude, Iwho is now in command of the garrison, has come to represent him and to offer to surrender to you under the condition that the lives of all British and natives within the walls be respected, and that you pledge us your faith and honor that we shall be permitted to go down the country without molestation. It is to you, Por Sing, and you nobles of Oude, that we surrender, and not to those who, being sworn soldiers, have mutinied against the officers, and have in many cases treacherously murdered them. With such men Major Hannay will have no dealings, and it is to you that we surrender. Major Hannay bids me say, that if this offer is refused, we can for a long time prolong our resistance. We are amply supplied with provisions and munitions of war, and many as are the numbers of our assailants who have fallen already, yet more will die before you obtain possession of the house. More than that, in no case will we be taken p -Isoners, for one and all have firmly resolved to fire the magazine when resistance is no longer possible, and to bury ourselves and our assail- ants in the ruins. " When Bathurst ceased, a hubbub of voices arose, the Sepoy officers protesting that the surrender should be made to them. It was some minutes before anything like quietness was restored, and then one of the officers said: " Here is Rujub, he speaks in the name of Nana. What does he say to this?" Rujub, who was handsomely attired, stepped forward. " I have no orders from His Highness on this sub- ject," he said. "He certainly said that the prisoners were to be sent to him, but at present there are no prisoners, nor, if the siege continnes and the English carry out their threat, will there be any prisoners. I cannot think that Nana Sahib would wish to see some hundreds more of his countrymen slain or blown up, only that he may have these few men and women in his power. " "We have come hereto take them and kill them," one of the officers said defiantly, " and we will do so." Por Sing, who had been speaking with the Talook- dars round him, rose from his seat. T t-"" 300 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. " It seems to me that it is for us to decide this mat- ter," he said. "It is upon us that the losses of this siege have fallen. At the order of Nana Sahib we col- lected our retainers, abandoned our homes, and have for three weeks supported the dangers of this siege. We follow the Nana but we are not his vassals, nor do we even know what his wishes are in this matter, but it seems to us that we have done enough and more than enough. Numbers of our retainers and kinsmen have fallen, and to prolong the siege would cause greater loss, and what should we gain by it? The pos- session of a heap of stones. Therefore, we are all of opinion that this offer to surrender should be accepted. We war for the freedom of our country, and have no thirst for the blood of these English Sahibs, still less for that of their wives and children." Some of the officers angrily protested, but Por Sing stood firm and the other Talookdars were equally de- termined. Seeing this the officers consulted together, and the highest in rank then said to the Talookdars, " We protest against these conditions being given, but since you are resolved we stand aside and are ready to agree for ourselves and our men to what you may decide. " "What pledges do you require?" Por Sing asked Bathurst. " We are content, Rajah, with your personal oath that the lives of all within the house shall be respected, and your undertaking that thej" shall be allowed to go unharmed down the country. We have absolute faith in the honor of the nobles of Oude and can desire no •better guarantee." " I will give it," Por Sing said, "and all my friends will join me in it. To-night I will have boats collected on the river. I will furnish you with an escort of my troops, and will myself accompany you and see you safely on board. I will then not only give you a safe- conduct, praying all to let you pass unharmed, but my son with ten men shall accompany you in the boats to inform all that my honor is concerned in your safety, and that I have given my personal pledge that no m THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 3OZ oath [cted, :ogo ifaith e no liends lected ^f my you safe- it my its to ifety, It no molestation shall be offered to you. I will take my oath, and my friends will do the same, and I doubt not that the commander of the Sepoy troops will join me in It. Bathurst translated what had been said to Captain Doolan. "It is impos'^^ble for him to do more than that," he concluded ; " I do not think there is the least question as to his good faith." "He is a fine old heathen," Captain Doolan said. "Tell him we will accept his terms." Bathurst at once signified this, and the Rajah then took a solemn oath to fulfil the conditions of the agree- ment; the other Talookdars doing the same, and the commander of the Sepoys also doing so without hesita- tion. Por Sing then promised that some carts should be collected before morning, to carry the ladies, the sick and wounded, down to the river, which was eight miles distant. " You can sleep in quiet to-night," he added ; " I will place a guard of my own men round the house, and see that none trouble you in any way." A few other points were settled, and then the party returned to the house, to which they were followed a few minutes later by the son of Por Sing and three lads, sons of other Zemindars. Bathurst went down to meet them when their approach was noticed by the lookout on the roof. " We have come to place ourselves in your hands as hostages. Sahib," Por Sing's son said; "my father thought it likely that the Sepoys or others might make trouble, and he said that if we were in your hands as hostages all our people would see that the agreement must be kept, and would oppose themselves more vigor- ously to the Sepoys." " It was thoughtful and Hind of your father," Bathurst said. " As far as accommodation is concerned, we can do little to make you comfortable, but in other respects we are not badly provided " Some of the native servants were at once told off to «rect an awning over a portion of the terrace. Tables ,J J ass 30a IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. I: 1 and couches were placed here, and Bathurst undertook the work of entertaining the visitors. He was glad of the precaution that had been taken in sending them, for with the glass he could make out that there was much disturbance in the Sepoy lines, men gathering in large groups v^rith much shouting and noise. Muskets were discharged in the direction of the house, and it was evident that the mutineers were very discontented with the decision that had been ar- rived at. In a short time, however, a body, some hundred strong, of the Oade fighting men moved down and surrounded the house, and when a number of the Sepoys approached with excited and menacing gest- ures, one of the Zemindars went out to meet them, and Bathurst, watching the conference, could see by his pointing to the roof of the house that he was informing them that hostages had been given to the Europeans for the due observance of the treaty, and doubted not he was telling them that their lives would be endan- gered by any movement. Then he pointed to the bat- teries, as if threatening that if any attack was made the guns would be turned upon them. At any rate, after a time they moved away, and gradually the Sepoys could be seen returning to their lines. There were but few preparations to be made by the garrison for their journey. It had been settled that they might take their personal effects with them, but it was at once agreed to take as little as possible, as there would probably be but little room in the boats, and the fewer things they carried the less there would be to tempt the cupidity of the natives. " Well, Bathurst, what do you think of the lookout?" the Doctor asked, as late in the evening they sat together on some sand-bags in a comer of the terrace. " I think that if we get past Cawnpore in safety there is not much to fear. There is no other large place on the rivef, and the lower we get down the less likely the natives are to disturb us ; knowing, as they are al- most sure to do, that a force is gathering at Allahabad. " " After what you heard of the massacre of the prison- IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 303 3poys y the that but Lhere the [be to out?" ether ers at Cawnpore> whom the Nana and his officers had all sworn to allow to depart in safety, there is little hope that this scoundrel will respect the arrangements made here. " " We must pass the place at night, and trust to drift- ing down unobserved — the river is wide there — and keeping near the opposite shore we may get past in the darkness without being perceived, and even if they do make us out the chances are they will not hit us. Ther> are so few of us that there i? no reason why they should trouble greatly about us. " " I am sorry to say, Bathurst, that I don't like the ap- pearance of the Major's wound. Everything has been against him; the heat, the close air, and his anxiety of mind have all told on him. He seems very low and I have great doubts whether he will even see Allahabad. " " I hope you are wrong, Doctor, but I thought myself there was a change for the worse when I saw him an hour ago ; there was a drawn look about his face I did not like. He is a splendid fellow ; nothing could have been kinder than he has been to me. I wish I could change places with him. " The Doctor grunted. " Well, as none of us may see Allahabad, Bathurstj you need not trouble yourself on that score. I wonder what has become of your friend the conjurer. I thought he might have been in to see you this afternoon." " I did not expect him," Bathurst said; " I expect he went as far as he dared in what he said at the Durbar to-day. Probably he is doing all he can to keep mat- ters quiet. Of course he may have gone down to Cawn- pore to see Nana Sahib, but I should think it more probable that he would remain here until he knows we are safe on board the boats. " "Ah, here is Wilson," said the Doctor; "he is a fine young fellow, and I am very glad he has gone through it safely." "So am I," Bathurst said warmly. "Here we are, Wilson." "I thought I would find you both smoking here," Wilson said, as he seated himself. " It is awfully hot ■sm 304 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. below and the ladies are all at work pickinfif out the things they are going to take with them and packing them, and as I could not be of any use at that, I thought I would come up for a little fresh air, if one can call it fresh, but in fact, I would rather sit over an open drain, for the stench is horrible. How quiet everything seems to-night ! After crouching here for the last three weeks ' listening to the boom of their cannon and the rush of their balls overhead, or the crash as they hit something, it seems quite unnatural ; one can't help thinking that something is going to happen. I don't believe I shall be able to sleep a wink to-night ; while generally, in spite of the row, it has been as much as I could do to keep my eyes open. I suppose I shall get accustomed to it in time. At present it seems too unnatural to en- joy it." " You had better get a good night's sleep if you can, Wilson, " the Doctor said. " There won't be much sleep for us A the boats till we see the walls of Allahabad." " I suppose not, Doctor. I expect we shall be hor- ribly cramped up. I long to be there. I am sure to get attached to one of the regiments coming up and to help in giving the thrashing to these scoundrels that they deserve. I would give a year's pay to get that villain Nana Sahib within reach of my sword. It is awful to think of the news you brought in, Bathurst, and that there are hundreds of women and children in his power now. What a day it will be when we march into Cawnpore!" "Don't count your chickens too soon, Wilson," the Doctor said. " The time I am looking forward to is when we shall have passed Cawnpore on our way down ; that is quite enough for me to look forward to at present. " "Yes, I was thinking of that myself ," Wilson replied. " If the Nana could not be bound by the oath he had taken himself he is not likely to respect the agreement made here." " We must pass the place at night, " Bathurst said, " and trust to not being seen. Even if they do make US out we shan't be under fire long unless they follow i ! IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 305 the ing ght Hit ain, ems eeks ihof ling, that shaU ly, in do to omed to en- a can, 1 sleep bad/' pe hor- iire to and to s that !t that It is :hurst, [ren in march |i,' the to is down ; to at leplied. le had jement It said, make follow us down the bank ; but if the night is dark they may not make us out at all. Fortunately there is no moon, and boats are not very large marks even by daylight, and at night it would only be a chance shot that would hit us." " Yes, we should be as difficult to hit as a tiger," the Doctor put in. Wilson laughed. " I have gained a lot of experience since then. Doctor. What ages that seems back ! Years almost. " " It does, indeed," the Doctor agreed ; " we count time by incidents and not by days. Well, I think I shall turn in. Are you coming, Bathurst?" " No, I could not sleep, " Bathurst said ; '* I shall watch till morning. I feel sure it is all safe, but the muti- neers might attempt something. " The night, however, passed off quietly, and soon after daybreak eight bullock carts were seen approaching, with a strong body of Oude men. Half an hour later the luggage was packed, and the sick and wounded laid on straw in the wagons. Several of the ladies took their places with them, but Mrs. Doolan, Isobel, and Mary Hunter said they would walk for a while. It had been arranged that the men might carry out their arms with them, and each of the ten able to walk took their rifles, while all, even the women, had pistols about them. Just as they were ready, Por Sing and several of the Zemindars rode up on horseback. "We shall see you to the boats," he said. "Have you taken provision for your voyage? It would be bet- ter not to stop to buy anything on the way." This precaution had been taken, and as soon as all was ready they set out, guarded by four hundred Oude matchlock men. The Sepoys had gathered near the house, and as soon as they left it there was a rush made to secure the plunder. " I shoud have Hked to have emptied the contents of some of my bottles into the wine," the Doctor growled; " it would not have been strictly professional perhaps, but it would have been a good action. " " I am sure you would not have given them poison, 20 • p ssssssisiaiiifam I 306 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. Doctor," Wilson laughed, "but a reasonable dose of ipecacuanha might hardly have gone against your con- science. " " My conscience has nothing to do with it," the Doc- tor said. " These fellows came from Cawnpore, and I have no doubt took part in the massacre there My conscience wouldn't have troubled me if I could have poisoned the whole of the scoundrels or put a slow match in the magazine and blown them all into the air, but under the present conditions it would hardly have been politic, as one couldn't be sure of annihilating the whole of them. Well, Miss Hannay, what are you thinking of?" " I am thinking that my uncle looks worse this morning, Doctor; does it not strike you so too?" " We must hope that the fresh air will do him good. One could not expect any one to get better in that place ; it was enough to kill a healthy man, to say nothing of a sick one." Isobel was walking by the side of the cart in which her uncle was lying, and it was not long before she took her place beside him. The Doctor shook his head. "Can you do nothing. Doctor?" Bathurst said, in a low tone. " Nothing ; he is weaker this morning. Still the change of air may help him and he may have strength to fight through ; the wound itself is a serious one, but he would under other circumstances have got over it. As it is, I think his chance a very poor one, though I would not say as much to her. " After three hours ' travel they reached the river. Here two large native boats were lying by the bank; the baggage and sick were soon placed on board, and the Europeans with the native servants were then divided between them and the Rajah's son and six of the re- tainers took their places in one of the boats. The Doc- tor and Captain Doolan had made out the list dividing the party. The Major and the other sick men were all placed in one boat, and in this were the Doctor, Bath- urst, and four civilians, with Isobel Hannay, Mrs. 5 of :on- 3oc- id I My have slow 5 air, have g the '. you this good, place; ig of a which e took in a ill the [rengtli le, but Iver it. lough I Here Ik; the Ind the Uvided 1 the re- leDoc- lividing rere all Bath- Mrs. IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 307 Hunter, and her daughter. Captain Doolan, his wife, Mrs. Rintoul, and the other three ladies, with the six children who had alone survived, and the rest of the party, were in the other boat. Por Sing and his companions were thanked heartily for the protection they had given. Bathurstgave them a document which had been signed by all the party, testifying to the service they haci rendered. " If we don't get down to Allahabad," Bathurst said, as he handed it to him, " this will ensure you good treatment when the British troops come up. If we get there we will represent your conduct in such a light that I think I can promise you that the part you took in the siege will be forgiven. " Then the boats pu.shed off and started on their way down the stream. The distance by water to Cawnpore was over forty miles; it was already eleven o'clock and slow progress only could be made with the heavy boats, but it was thought that they would be able to pass the town be- fore daylight began to break next morning, and they therefore pushed on as rapidly as they could, the boat- men being encouraged to use their utmost efforts by the promise of a large reward upon their arrival at Al- lahabad. There was but little talk in the boats. Now that the strain was over all felt its effects severely. The Doc- tor attended to his patients, Isobel sat by the side of her uncle, giving him some broth that they had brought with them, from time to time, or moistening his lips with weak brandy and water. He spoke only occasion- ally. " I don't much think I shall get down to Allahabad, Isobel," he said. " If I don't, go down to Calcutta, and go straight to Jamieson & Son, they are my agents, and they will supply you with money to take you home ; t' cy have a copy of my will, my agents in London have another copy. I had two made in case of accident. " " Oh, uncle, you will get better now you are out of that terrible place." I am afraid it is too late, my dear, though I should i( 3o8 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. \ like to live for your sake. But I think I see happiness before you, if you choose to take it; he is a noble fel- low, Isobel, in spite of that unfortunate weakness." Isobel made no answer, but a slight pressure of the hand she was holding showed that she understood what he meant. It was no use to tell her uncle that she felt that what might have been was over now. Bathurst lad chatted with her several times on the evening be- fore and during the march that morning, but she felt the difference between his tone and that in which hf> had addressed her in the old times before the troubles began. It was a subtle difference that she could hardly have explained even to herself, but she knew that it v.'as as a friend, and as a friend only, that he would treat her in the future, and that the past was a closed book, which he was determined not to reopen. Bathurst talked to Mrs. Hunter and her daughter, both o^ whom were mere shadows, worn out with grief, anxiety and watching. At times he went forward to talk to the young noble, who had taken his seat there. Both boats had been arched in with a canopy of boughs to serve alike as a protection from the sun and to screen those within from the sight of natives in boats or on the banks. "You don't look yourself, Bathurst, " the Doctor said to him late in the afternoon; "everything seems going on well, no boats have passed us, and the boatmen all say that we shall pass Cawnpore about one o'clock at the rate at which we are going." " I feel nervous. Doctor ; more anxious than I have been ever since this began ; there is an apprehension of cf anger weighing over me that I can't account for. As you say, everything seems going on well, and yet I feel that it is not so. I am afraid I am getting superstitious, but I feel as if Rujub knows of some danger impending, and that he is somehow conveying that impression to me. I know that there is nothing to be done, and that we are doing the only thing that we can do, unless we were to land and try and make our way down on foot, which would be sheer madness. That the man can in some way impress my mind at a distance is evident IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY, 309 said joing jn all Ick at from that summons he gave me to meet him at the ruins of my bungalow, but I do not feel the same clear distinct perception of his wishes now as I did then. Perhaps he himself is not aware of the particulars of the danger that threatens, or, knowing them, he can see no way of escape out of them. It may be that at night, when everything is quiet, one's mind is more open to such impressions than it is when we are surrounded by other people and have other things to think of, but I feel an actual consciousness of danger." " I don't think there can be any danger until we get down near Cawnpore. They may possibly be on the lookout for us there, and may even have boats out on the stream. It is possible that the Sepoys may have sent down word yesterday afternoon to Nana Sahib that we had si^rrendered and should be starting by boat this morning, but I don't think there can be any dan- ger till we get there. Should we meet native boats and be stopped, Por Sing's son will be able to induce them to let us pass. Certainly none of the villagers about here would be likely to dispute it^ Once beyond Cawnpore, I believe that he would have sufficient in- fluence, speaking as he does in the name, not only of his father, but of other powerful land-owners, to induce any of these Oude people to let us pass. No, I regard Cawn- pore as our one danger. I believe it to be a very real danger. I have been thinking, indeed, that it would be a good thing when we get within a -ouple of miles of the place, for all who are able to walk to land on the opposite bank and make their way along past Cawnpore and take to the boats again a mile below the town." " That would be an excellent plan. Doctor; but if the boats were stopped and they found the sick, they would kill them to a certainty. I don't think we could leave them. I am quite sure Miss Hannay would not leave her uncle." " I think we might get over even that, Bathurst. There are only the Major and the other two men, and Mrs. Forsyth and three children, too ill to walk. There are eight of the native servants, ourselves, and the young Rajah's retainers. We ought to have no dif- IHIiHIi 310 IN THK DAYS OF THE MUTINY. ficulty in carrying the wounded. As to the luggage, that must be sacrificed, so that the boatmen can go dov;n with empty benches. It must be pitched over- board. The loss would be of no real consequence; every one could manage with what they have on until we get to Allahabad. There would be no difficulty in getting what we require there." " I think the plan is an excellent one, Doctor. I will ask the young chief if his men will help us to carry the sick. If he says yes, we will go alongside the other boat and explain our plan to Doolan. " The young Rajah at once assented, and the boat being rowed up to the other, the plan was explained and ap- proved of. No objection was raised by any one, even to the proposal of getting rid of all the luggage; and as soon as the matter was arranged, a general disposition toward cheerfulness was manifested. Every one had felt that the danger of passing Cawnpore would be im- mense, and this plan for avoiding it seemed to lift a load from their minds. It was settled they should land at some spot where the river was bordered by bushes and young trees; that stout poles should be cut, and blankets fastened between them, so as to form stretchers on which the sick could be carried. As far as possible the boats were kept on the left side of the river, but at times shallows rendered it necessary to keep over by the right bank. Whenever they were near the shore silence was observed lest the foreign tongue should be noticed by any one near the bank. Night fell and they still continued their course. An hour after sunset they were rowing near the right bank — the Major had fallen into a sort of doze, and Isobel was sitting next to Bathurst, and they were talking in low tones together, when suddenly there was a hail from the shore, not fifty yards away. "What boats are those?" " Fishing-bc'ts going down the river," one of the boatmen answered. " Row alongside, we must examine you." There was a moment's pause, and then the Doctor i IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 311 ir- e; til in ill ;he ler ing ap- ven 1 as tion had itn- ifta ere Ithat een uld Iside jsary ^ere jign An )ank lobel From the ;tor said in the native language, " Row on, men, and the oars of both boats again dipped into the water. "We are pressed for time," the young Zemindar shouted, and then, dropping his voice, urged the men to row at the top of their speed. " Stop, or we fire," came from the shore. No answer was returned from the boats ; they were now nearly opposite the speaker. Then came the word, "Fire." Six cannon loaded with grape were dis- charged, and a crackle of musketry at the same moment broke out. The shot tore through the boats, killing and disabling many, and bringing down the arbor of boughs upon them. A terrible cry arose, and all was confusion. Most of the rowers were killed, and the boats drifted help- lessly amid the storm of rifle-bullets. As the cannon flashed out and the grape swept the boats, Bathurst, with a sharp cry, sprr.ng to his feet and leaped overboard, as did several others from both boats. Diving, he kept under water for some distance, and then swam desperately till he reached shallow water on the other side of the river, and then fell head- foremost on the sand. Eight or ten others alsd gained the shore in a body, and were running toward the bank, when the gnns were again fired, and all but three were swept away by the iron hail. A few straggling musket- shots were fired, then orders were shouted and the splashing of an oar was heard, as one of the native boat- men rowed a boat toward the shore. Bathurst rose to his feet and ran, stumbling like a drunken man, toward the bushes, and just as he reached them fell heavily forward and lay there insensible. Three men came out from the bushes and dragged him in. As they did so loud screams arose from the other bank, then half a dozen muskets were fired, and all was quiet. It was not for a quarter of an hour that Bathurst was conscious of what was going on around him. Some one was rubbing his chest and hands. " Who is it?" he asked. "Oh, it is you, Bathurst," he heard Wilson's 'Choice exclaim. " I thought it was you, but it is so dark now ( fifiBKi J. I >•■ 3" IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. y/e are off that white sand that I could not see. Where are you hit?" "I don't know," Bathurst said. "I felt a sort of shock as I got out of the water, but I don't know that I am hurt at all. " " Oh, you must be hit somewhere. Try and move your arms and legs. " Bathurst moved. " No, I don't think I am hit; if I am it is on the head. I feel something warm round the back of my neck. " "By Jove!* yes," Wilson said; "here is where it is; there is a cut all along the top of your head, the bullet seems to have hit you at the back and gone right along over the top. It can't have gone in or else you would not be able to talk." " Help me up, " Bathurst said, and he was soon on his feet. He felt giddy and confused. "Who have you with you?" he asked. "Two natives. T think one is the young chief and the other is one of his followers. " Bathurst spoke to them in their native language and found that Wilson was not mistaken. As soon as he found that he was understood, the young chief poured off a volley of curses upon those who had attacked them. Bathurst stopped him. " We shall have time for that afterward, Murad," he said; "the first thing is to see what had best be done. What has been done since I landed, Wilson?" "Our boat was pretty nearly cut in two," Wilson said, " and was sinking when I jumped over ; the other boat has been rowed ashore. " "What did you hear, Wilson?" " I heard the women scream, " Wilson said reluctantly ; " and five or six shots were fired. There has been no sound since then. " Bathurst stood silent for a minute. " I do not think they will have killed the women, " he said ; " they did not do so at Cawnpore ; they will take them there. No doubt they killed the men. Let me think for a moment. Now, " he said, after a long pause, " we must be doing. Murad, your father and friends IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 3»3 no he ike I me i have given their word for the safety of those you took prisoners ; that they have been massacred is no fault of your father or of you. This gentleman and myself are the only ones saved, as far as we know. Are you sure that none others came ashore?" "The others were all killed; we alone remaining," Murad said. " I will go back to my father and he will go to Cawnpore and demand vengeance. " "You can do that afterward, Murad; the first thing is to fulfil your promise, and I charge you to take this Sahib in safety down to Allahabad. You must push on at once, for they may be sending out from Cawn- pore at daylight to search the bushes here to see if any have escaped. You must go on with him to-night as far as you can, and in the morning go into some village, buy native's clothes and disguise him, and then jour- ney on to Allahabad." "I will do that," the young Rajah said, "but what about yourself?" " I shall go into Cawnpore and try to rescue any they may have taken. I have a native cloth round me imder my other clothes, as I thought it might be necessary for me to land before we got to Cawnpore to see if danger threatened. So I have everything wanting for a disguise about me." "What are you saying, Bathurst?" Wilson asked. " I am arranging for Murad and his follower to take you down to Allahabad, Wilson. I shall stop at Cawn- pore. " " Stop at Cawnpore! are you mad, Bathurst?" " No, I am not mad ; I shall stop to see if any of the ladies have been taken prisoners, and if so try to rescue them. Rujub, the juggler, is there, and will help me." " But if you can stay I can, Bathurst. If Miss Han- nay has been made prisoner I would willingly be killed to rescue her. " " I know you would, Wilson, but you would be killed without being able to rescue her, and as I should share your fate you would render her rescue impossible. I can speak the native language perfectly, and know native ways. I can move about among them without 3'4 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. fear of exciting their suspicion. If you were with me this would be impossible ; the first native who addressed you you would be detected ; your presence would add to my difficulties a hundredfold. It is not now a question of fighting. Were it only that I should be delighted to have you with me. As it is the thing is impossible. If anything is done I must do it alone. If I ever reach Miss Hannay, she shall know that you were ready to run all risks to save her. No, no, you must go on to Allahabad, and if you cannot save her now, you will be with the force that will rescue her, if I Should fail to do so, and which will avenge us both if we should arrive too late to rescue her. Novr I must get you to bandage my head, for I feel faint with loss of blood. I will take off my shirt and tear it in strips. I have got a native disguise next to the skin. We may as well leave my clbthes behind me here. " As soon as Wilson, with the assistance of Murad, had bandaged the wound, the party struck off from the river, and after four hours' walking came down upon it again two miles below Cawnpore. Here Bathurst said he would stop, stain his skin and complete his disguise. " I hate leavin,!* you, " Wilson said in a broken voice. " There are only you and me left of all our party at Deennugghur. It is awful to think they have all gone — the good old chief, the Doctor, and Richards and the ladies. There are only we two left. It does seem such a dirty, cowardly thing for me to be making off and leaving you here alone. " " It is not cowardly, Wilson, for I know you would willingly stay if you could be of the slightest use ; but as, on the contrary, you would only add to the danger, it must be as I have arranged. Good-by, lad; don't stay; it has to be done. God bless you! Good-by, Murad. Tell your father when you see him that I know no shadow of broken faith rests on him. " So saying, he turned and went into a clump of bushes, while Wilson, completely broken down, started on his way down country with the two natives. i IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 3IS CHAPTER XIX. shes, his Once alone, Bathurst threw himself down among the bushes in an attitude of utter depression. "Why wasn't I killed with the others?" he groaned. "Why was I not killed when I sat there by her side?" So he lay for an hour, and then slowly rose and looked round. There was a faint light in the sky. " It will be light in another hour," he said to himself, and he again sat down. Suddenly he started. Had some one spoken, or had he fancied it? "Wait till I come." He seemed to hear the words plainly, just as he had heard Rujub's summons before. " That's it; it is Rujub. How is it that he can make me hear in this way? I am sure it was his voice. Anyhow, I will wait. It shows he is thinking of me, and I know he will help me. I know I could do nothing by myself. " Bathurst assumed with unquestioning faith that Isobel Hannay was alive. He had no reason for his confidence : that first shower of grape might have killed her as it killed others, but he would not admit the doubt in his mind. Wilson's description of what had hap- pened while he was insensible was one of the grounds of this confidence. He had heard women scream. Mrs. Hunter and her daughter were the only other women in the boat. Isobel would not have screamed had those muskets been pointed at her, nor did he think the others would have done so. They screamed when they saw the natives about to murder those who were with them. The three women were sitting together, and if one had fallen from the grape-shot all would probably have been killed. He felt confident, therefore, that she had escaped ; he believed he would have known it had she been killed. " If I can be influenced by this juggler surely I should have felt it had Isobel died," he argued, and was sat- isfied that she was still alive. What, however, more than anything else gave him hope was the picture on the smoke. " Everything else isasm 316 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. I h.l has come tnie," he said to himself, "why should not that? Wilson spoke of the Doctor as dead. I will not believe it, for if he is dead the picture is false. Why should that thing, of all others, have been shown to me unless it had been true? What seemed impossible to me — that I should be fighting like a brave man — has come true. Why should not this? I should have laughed at such superstition six months ago; now I cling to it as my one ground for hope. Well, I will wait if I have to stay here until to-morrow night. " Noiselessly he moved about in the little wood, going to the edge and looking out, pacing to and fro with quick steps, his face set in a frown, occasionally mut- tering to himself. He was in a fever of impatience. He longed to be doing something, even if that some- thing led to his detention and death. He said to him- self that he did not care so that Isobel Hannay did but know that he had died in trying to rescue her. The sun rose, and he saw the peasants in the fields, and caught the sound of a bugle sounding from the lines at Cawnpore. At last — it had seemed to him an age, but the sun had been up only an hour — he saw a figure coming along the river bank. As it approached he told himself that it was the juggler; if so he had laid aside the garments in which he last saw him, and he was now attired as when they first met. When he saw him turn off from the river bank and advance straight toward the wood he had no doubt that it was the man he ex- pected. " Thanks be to the holy ones that you have escaped. Sahib," Rujub said, as soon as he came within speaking distance of Bathurst. " I was in an agony last night. I was with you in thought, and saw the boats approach- ing the ambuscade. I saw you leap over and swim to shore. I saw you fall and cried out; for a moment I thought you were killed. Then I saw you go on and fall again, and saw your friends carry you in. I watched you recover and come on here, and then I willed it that you should wait here till I came for you. I have brought you a disguise, for I did not know that you had one with you. But, first of all, sit down and IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 317 not not ) me le to -has have ow I will joing with mut- lence. some- )him- idbut fields, ^ lines I age, figure le told 1 aside le was w him oward he ex- [caped, making night, jroach- rim to loment Ion and lin. I ithen I )r you. )W that m and let me dress your wound afresh. I have brought all that is necessary for it. " " You are a true friend, Rujub. I relied upon you for aid; do you know why I waited here instead of going down with the others?" " I know, Sahib. I can tell your thoughts as easily when you are away from me as I can when we are to- gether. " "Can you do this with all people?" "No, my lord — to be able to read another's thoughts it is necessary there should be a mystic relation estab- lished between them. As I walked beside your horse when you carried my daughter before you after saving her life, I felt that this relation had commenced, and that henceforward our fates were connected. It was necessary that you should have confidence in me, and it was for that reason that I showed you some of the feats that we rarely exhibit, and proved to you that I possessed powers with which you were unacquainted. But in thought reading my daughter has greater powers than I have, and it was she who last night followed you on your journey, sitting.with her hand in mine, so that my mind followed hers. " " Do you know all that happened last night, Rujub?" Bathurst said, summoning up courage to ask the ques- tion that had been on his lips from the first. " I only know, my lord, that the party was destroyed, save three white women who were brought in just as the sun rose this morning; one was a lady behind whose chair you stood the night I performed at Deennugghur, the lady about whom you are thinking. I do not know the other two; one was getting on in life, the other was a young one. " The relief was so great that Bathurst turned away unable for a while to continue the conversation. When he returned he asked : " Did you see them yourself, Rujub?" " I saw them, Sahib; they were brought in on a gun- carriage. " ■ " How did they look, Rujub?" "The old one looked calm and sad. She did not 3i8 IN THE PAYS or THK MUTINY. seem to hear the shouts of the budmashes as they passed alonj;^. She held the younjj one close to her. That one seemed worn out with jjrief and terror. Your meni-Sahih.sat uprijjht; she was very pale and changed from the time I saw her that eveninj^, but she held her head hijjh and looked almost scornfully at the men who shook their arms and cried at her." •• And they put them with the other women that they have taken prisoners?" Rujub hesitated. " They have put the other two there, Sahib, but her they took to Bithoor. " Bathurst started and an exclamation of horror and rage burst from him. "To the Rajah's!" he exclaimed. "To that scoim- drel! Come, let us go. Why are we staying here?" "We can do nothing for the moment. Before I started I sent off my daughter to Bithoor ; she knows many there, and will find out what is being done and bring us word, for I dare not show myself there. The Rajah is furious with me because I did not support the Sepoys, and suffered coi'ditions to be made with your people, but now that all ..as turned out as he wished I will in a short time present myself before him again, but for the moment it was better that my daughter should go, as I had to come to you. But first you had better put on the disguise I have brought you. You are too big and strong to pass without notice in that peasant's dress. The one I have brought you is such as is worn by the rough people, the budmashes, of Cawnpore. I can procure others afterward when we see what had best be done. It will be easy enough to enter Bithoor, for all is confusion there, and men come and go as they choose, but it will be well-nigh impo - sible for you to penetrate where the mem -Sahib wi^^ oe placed. Even for me, known as I am to all the P jah's officers, it would be impossible to do so; : , is my daughter in whom we shal^ have to trust. " Bathurst rapidly put on the clothes that Rujub had brought with him, thrust a sword, two daggers, and a, IN THE DATS OF THE MUTINY. 3«9 they her. ^our ngcd I her who they it her r and scoiin- •e?" fore I knows le and The Drt the 1 your ivished lb had and a, brace of long-barrelled pistols into the sash round his wp.ist. "Your color is not dark enough, Sahib. I have brought dye with me, but first I must dress the wound on your head, and bandage it more neatly, so that the swathings will not show below the folds of your turban. " Bathurst submitted himself impatiently to Rujub's hands. The latter cut off all the hair that would show under the turban, dyed the skin the same color as the other parts, and finally, after darkening his eyebrows, eyelashes and moustache, pronounced that he would pass anywhere without attracting attention. Then they started at a quick walk along the river, crossed by the ferry-boat to Cawnpore, and made their way to a quiet street in the native town. "This is my house for the present," Rujub said, pro- ducing a key and unlocking a door. He shouted as he closed the door behind him and an old woman appeared. " Is the meal prepared?" he asked. " It is ready," she said. " That is right. Tell Rhuman to put the pony into the cart. " He then led the way into a comfortably furnished apartment where a meal was laid. "Eat, my lord," he said, "you need it, and will re- quire your strength. " Bathurst, who during his walk had felt the effects of the loss of blood and anxiety, at once seated himself at the table and ate, at first languidly, but, as appetite came, more heartily, and felt still more benefited by a bottle of excellent wine Rujub had placed beside him. The latter returned to the room just as he had finished. He was now attired as he had been when Bathurst last met him at Deennugghur. "I feel another man, Rujub, and ready for any- thing." "The cart is ready," Rujub said. "I have already taken my meal ; we do not eat meat, and live entirely on vegetables. Meat clouds the senses, and simple food and little of it is necessary for those who would enter the inner brotherhood." 320 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. ;P' fi :i 1? At the door a small native cart was standing with a pony in the shafts. "You will go with us, Rhuman," Rujub said, as he and Bathurst took their seats in the cart. The boy squatted down at R.ujub's feet, taking the reins and whip, and the pony started off at a brisk pace. Upon the way, Rujub talked of various matters, of the reports of the force that was gathering at Allahabad, and the madness of the British in supposing that two or three thousan i men could withstand the forces of the Nana. " They would be eaten up," he said ; " the troops will go out to meet them ; they will never arrive within sight of Cawnpore. " As Bathurst saw that he was talking for the boy to hear, rather than to himself, he agreed loudly with all that he said, and boasted that even without the Nana's troops and the Sepoys the people of Cawnpore could cut the English dogs to pieces. The drive was not a long one, and the x"oad was full of parties going to or returning from Bithoor — groups of Sepoy officers, parties of budm ashes from Cawn- pore, mounted messengers, land-owners with their re- tainers, and others. Arriving within a quarter of a mile of the palace, Rujub ordered the boy to draw aside. " Take the horse down that road," he said, " and wait there until we return. We may be some time; if we are not back by the time the sun sets, you will return home." As they approached the palace Bathurst scanned every window, as if he hoped to see Isobel's face at one of them. Entering the garden they avoided the terrace in front of the house, and sauntering through the groups of people, who had gathered discussing the latest news, they took their seat in a secluded corner. Bathurst thought of the last time he had been there, when there had been a fete given by the Rajah to the residents of Cawnpore, and contrasted the present with the past. Then the gardens were lighted up, and a crowd of ofl&cers and civilians with ladies in white fi e I IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 321 wait if we -eturn lanned it one lerrace jroups 1 news, [there, to the it with and a white dresses had strolled along the terrace to the sound of gay music, while their host moved about among them courteous, pleasant, and smiling. Now the greater portion of the men were dead, the women were pris- oners in the hands of the native who had professed such friendship for them. "Tell me, Rujub," he said presently, "more about this force at Allahabad. What is its strength likely to be?" " They say there is one British regiment of the Line, one of the plumed regiments with bare legs, and one of the white Madras regiments; they have a few guns, a very few horsemen, that is all, while there are twenty thousand troops here. How can they hope to win?" "You will see they will win," Bathurst said sternly. " They have often fought well, but they will fight now as they never fought before ; every man will feel him- self an avenger of the foul treachery and the brutal massacres that have been committed. Were it but one regiment that is coming up instead of three I would back it against the blood-stained wretches. " " They are fighting for freedom," Rujub said. " They are fighting for nothing of the sort," Bathurst replied hotly; "they are fighting for they know not what — change of masters, for license to plunder, and because they are ignorant, and have been led away. I doubt not that at present, confident as they may be of victory, most of them in their hearts regret what they have done. They have forfeited their pensions, they have thrown away the benefits of their years of service, they have been faithless to their salt, and false to their oaths. It is true that they know they are fighting with ropes round their necks, but even that won't avail against the discipline and the fury of our troops. I feel as certain, Rujub, that in spite of the odds against them the English will triumph, as if I saw their column marching into the town. I don't profess to see the future, as you do, but I know enough to tell me that ere long that palace you can see through the trees will be levelled to the ground, that it is as assuredly doomed as if fire had already been applied to its gilded beams. " fiBi I 322 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. ] H Rujiibnodded. " I know the palace is doomed; while I have looked at it, it has seemed hidden by a cloud of smoke, but I did not think it was the work of the British, I thought of an accident." "The Rajah may fire it with his own hands," Bath- urst said, " but if he does not it will be done for him." " I have not told you yet, Sahib," Rujub said, chang- ing the subject, " how it was that I could neither pre- vent the attack on the boats nor warn you that it was coming. I knew at Deennugghur that news had been sent of the surrender to the Nana. I remained till I knew you were safely in the boats, and then rode to Cawnpore. My daughter was at the house when I ar- rived, and told me that the Nana was furious with me, and that it would not be safe for me to go near the palace. Thus, although I feared that an attack was intended, I thought that it would not be until the boats passed, the town. It was late before I learned that a battery of artillery and some infantry had set out that afternoon. Then I tried to warn you, but I felt that I failed. You were not in a mood when my mind could communicate itself to yours." " I felt very uneasy and restless," Bathurst said, "but I had not the same feeling when you were speaking to m% that I had that night at Deennugghur; but even had I known of the danger, there would have been no avoiding it. Had we landed, we must have been over- taken, and it would have come to the same thing. Tell me, Rujub, had you any idea when I saw you at Deen- nugghur that if we were taken prisoners Miss Hannay was to be brought here instead of being placed with the other ladies?" " Yes, I knew it, Sahib ; the orders he gave to the Sepoys were that every man was to be killed and that the women and children were to be taken to Cawnpore, except Miss Hannay, who was to be carried here at once. The Rajah had noticed her more than once when she was at Cawnpore, and had made up his mind that she should go to his Zenana." " Why did you not tell me when you were at Deen- nugghur?" IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 323 Ue [of the ath- a." mg- pre- was been till I de to . I ar- il me, It the k was i boats that a it that that I could 1, "hut 'ing to t even leen no jn over- Tell It Deen- .annay ith the ^ to the Ind that Iwnpore, There at Lee when kind that at Deen- " What would have been the use, Sahib? I hoped to save you all ; besides it was not until we saw her taken past this morning that we knew that the Miss Hannay who was to be taken to Bithoor was the lady whom my daughter, when she saw her with you that night, said at once that you loved. But had we known it, what good would it have done to have told you of the Rajah's or- ders? You could not have done more than you have done. But now we know, we will aid you to save her." " How long will your daughter be before she comes? It is horrible waiting here." " You must have patience, Sahib. It will be no easy work to get the lady away. There will be guards and women to look after her. A lady is not to be stolen out of a Zenana as a young bird is taken from its nest." " It is all very well to say ' Be patient, ' " Bathurst said, getting up and walking up and down with quick angry strides. "It is maddening to sit here doing nothing. If it were not that I had confidence in your power and will to aid me I would go into the palace and stab Nana Sahib to the heart, though I were cut to pieces for it the moment afterward." "That would do no good to the lady, Sahib," Rujub said calmly. " She would only be left without a friend, and his death might be the signal for the mur "er of every white prisoner. Ah, here comes my daughter." Rabda came up quickly and stopped before Bathurst with her head bowed and her arms crossed iit an atti- tude of humility. She was dresst d in the attire worn by the principal servants in attendance upon the Ze- nana of a Hindoo prince. "Well, what news, Rabda?" Bathurst asked eagerly. " The light of my lord's heart is sick. She bore up till she arrived here, and was handed over to the wo- men. Then her strength failed her, and she fainted. She recovered, but she is lying weak and exhausted with all that she has gone through and suffered." "Where is she now?" " She is in the Zenana, looking out into the women's court, that no men are ever allowed to enter. " " Has the Rajah seen her?" 324 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. ^ i: " No, Sahib. He was told the state that she was in, and the chief lady of the Zenana sent him word that for the present she must have quiet and rest, but that in two or three days she might be fit to see him." "That is something," Bathurst said thankfully. " Now we shall have time to think of some scheme for getting her out." "You have been in the Zenana yourself, Rabda?" Rujub asked. "Yes, father; the mistress of the Zenana saw me directly an attendant told her I was there. She has always been kind to me. I said that you were going on a journey, and asked her if I might stay with her and act as an attendant until you returned, and she at once assented. She asked if I should see you before yon left, and when I said yes she asked if you could not give her some spell that would turn the Rajah's thoughts from this white girl. She fears that if she should become first favorite in the Zenana she might take things in her hands as English women do, and make all sorts of changes. I told her that, doubtless, the English girl would do this, and that I thought she was wise to ask your assistance." ''You are mad, Rabda," her father said angrily; " what have I to do with spells and love philters?" " No, father, I knew well enough you would not be- lieve in such things, but I thought in this way I might see the fady, and communicate with her. " "A very good idea, Rabda," Bathurst said. "Is there nothing you can do, Rujub, to make her odious to the Nana?" " Nothing, Sahib. I could act upon some peop^ps's minds, and make them think that the young lady was afflicted by some loathsome diser.se, but not with the Nana. I have many times tried to influence him, but v/ithout success: his mind is too deep for mine to master, and between us there is no sympathy. Could I be present with him and the girl I might do some- thing, that is, if the powers that aid me would act against him; but this I do not think." "Rujub," Bathurst said suddenly, "there must have IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 325 been medical stores taker- when the camp was captured, drugs and things of that sort. Can you find out who has become possessed of them?" " I might find out, Sahib. Doubtless the men who looted the camp will have sold the drugs to the native shops, for English drugs are highly prized. Are there drugs that act as the mistress of the Zenana wishes?" "No; but there are drugs that applied externally woulo give the appearance of a terrible disease. There are acids whose touch would burn and blister the skin and turn a beautiful face into a dreadful mask." " But would it recover. Sahib?" " The traces might last for a long time, even for life, if too much were used, but I am sure Miss Hannay would not hesitate for a moment." "But you. Sahib — would you risk her being dis- figured?" ** What does it matter to me?" Bathurst asked sternly. " Do you think love is skin deep, and that 'tis only for a fair complexion that we choose our wives? Find me the drugs, and let Rabda take them into her with a line from me. One of them you can certainly get, for it is used, I believe, by gold and silver smiths. It is nHric acid; the other is caustic potash, or, as it is sometimes labelled, lunar caustic. It is in little sticks, but if you find out any one who has bought drugs or cases of medicines, I will go with you and pick them out." " There will be no difficulty about finding out where the English drugs are. They are certain to be at one of the shops where the native doctors buy their medi- cines." " Let us go at once then," Bathurst said. "You can prepare some harmless drink, and Rabda will tell the mistress of the Zenana it will bring out a disfiguring eruption. We can be back here again this evening. Will you be here, Rabda, at sunset, and wait until we come? You can tell the woman that you have seen your father, and that he will supply her with what she requires. Make some excuse if you can to see the prisoner. Say you are curious to see the white woman who has bewitched the Nana, and if you get the oppor- iid if^ jy iff in i waimw mm 326 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. I tunity whisper in her ear these words, *Do not despair, friends are working for you. ' " Rabda repeated the English words several times over until she had them perfect , then she made her way back to the palace, while Bathurst and his companion pro- ceeded at once to the spot where they had left their vehicle. They had but little difficulty in finding what they required. Many of the shops displayed garments, weapons, jewelry and other things, the plunder of the entrenchments of Cawnpore. Rujub entered sev- eral shops where drugs were sold, and finally one of the traders said: "I have a large black box full of drugs which I bought from a Sepoy for a rupee, but now that I have got it I do not know what to do with it. Some of the bottles doubtless contain poisons. I will sell it you for two rupees, which is the value of the box, which, as you see, is very strong and bound with iron. The contents I place no price upon." " I will take it, " Rujub said. " I know some of the English medicines and may find a use for them." He paid the money, called in a coolie and bade him take up the chest and follow him, and they were soon at the house in the quiet street. The box, which was a hospital medical chest, was filled with drugs of all kinds. Bathurst put a stick of caustic into a small phial and half filled one with a glass stopper with nitric acid, filling it up with water, and tried the effect of rubbing a few drops on his arm. "That is strong enough for anything," he said with a slight exclamation at the sharp pain. "And now give me a piece of paper and pen and ink," then sitting down, he wrote : My dear Miss Hannay: — Rujub, the juggler, and I will do what we can to rescue you. We are powerless to effect anything as long as you remain where you are. Th© bearer, Rujub 's daughter, will give you the bottles, one containing lunar caustic, the other nitric acid. The mis- tress of the Zenana, who wants to get rid of you, as she fears you might obtain influence over the Nana, has asked the girl to obtain from her father a philter which will make IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 327 you odious to him. The large bottle is perfectly narmless, and you can drink its contents without fear. The caustic is for applying to your lips ; it will be painful, but I am sure you will not mind that, and the injury w ill be only of a temporary nature. I cannot promise as much for the nitric acid ; pray apply it very carefully, merely moistening the glass stopper and applying it with that. I should use it principally round the lips. It will bum and blister the skin. The Nana will be told that you have a fever which is causing a terrible and disfiguring eruption. I should ap- ply it also to the neck and hands. Pray be very careful with the stuflE ; for, besides the application being exceed- ingly painful, the scars may possibly remain permanently. Keep the two small bottles carefully hidden in order to renew the application if absolutely necessary. At any rate, this will give us all time, and from what I hear our troops are likely to be here in another ten days' time. You will be, I know, glad to hear that Wilson has also escaped. Yours, R. Bathurst. ting Ind I s to The one mis- she sked nake A large bottle was now made up with elder-flower- water, and they drove back to Bithoor, which they reached before sunset. Rabda was punctual to her ap- pointment. " I have seen her," she said, " and have given her the message. I could see that she understood it, but as there were other women round she made no sign. I told the mistress of the Zenana that you had given me some magic words that I was to whisper to her to pre- pare the way for the philter, so she let me in without difficulty, and I was allowed to go close up to her and whisper to her. I put my hands on her before I did so, and I think she felt that it was the touch of a friend. She flushed up when I spoke to her. The mistress, who was standing close by, thought that this was a sign of the power of the words I had spoken to her. I did not stay more than a minute. I was afraid she might try to speak to me in your tongue, and that would have been dangerous. " "There are the bottle.s," Bathurst said ; "this large one is for her to take, the other two and this note are to be given to her separately. You had better tell the 328 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. I woman that the philter must be given by your own hands, and that you must then watch alone by her side for half an hour, and that after you leave her she will presently go off to sleep and must then be left absolutely alone till daybreak to-morrow, and that it will then be found that the philter has acted. Then she must tell the Nana that the lady is in a high fever, and has been seized with some terrible disease that has altogether disfigured her, and that he can see for himself the stat'. she is in." Rabda's whisper had given new life and hope to Isobel Hannay. Previous to that her fate had seemed to her to be sealed, and she had only prayed for death ; the long strain of the siege had told upon her; the scene in the boat seemed a species of horrible nightmare, cul- minating in a number of Sepoys leaping on board the boat as it touched the bank, and bayoneting her uncle and all on board except herself, Mrs. Hunter, and her daughter, who were seized and carried ashore. Then followed a night of dull despairing pain, while she and her companions crouched together, with two Sepoys standing on guard over them, while the others, after lighting fires, talked and laughed long into the night over the success of their attack. At daybreak they had been placed upon a limber and driven into Cawnpore. Her spirit had risen, as they were assailed by insults and imprecations by the roughs of the town, and she had borne up bravely till, upon their arrival at the entrance to what she supposed was the prison, she was roughly dragged from the limber, placed in a close carriage and driven off. In her despair she had endeavored to open the door in order to throw herself under the wheels, but a soldier stood on each step and prevented her from doing so. Outside of the town she soon saw that she was on the road to Bithoor, and the fate for which she was reserved flashed upon her. She remembered now the oily com- pliments of Nana Sahib, and the unpleasant thrill she had felt when his eyes were fixed upon her, and had she possessed a weapon of any kind she would have put an end to her life. But her pistol had been taken from IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 329 50. b the jrved com- ll she had je put from her when she landed, and in helpless despair she crouched in a corner of the carriage until they reached Bithoor. As soon as the carriage stopped a cloth was thrown over her head. She was lifted out and carried into the palace, through long passages and up stairs; then those who carried her set her on her feet and retired. Other hands took her and led her forward, till the cloth was taken off her head, a^ ,he found herself surrounded by women, who re^ aed her with glances of mixed curiosity and hostility. Then everything seemed to swim round, and for the first time in her life she fainted. When she recovered consciousness all strength seemed to have left her, and she lay in a sort of apathy for hours, taking listlessly the drink that was offered to her, but paying no attention to what was passing around, until there was a gentle pressure on her arm, the grasp tightening with a slight caressing motion that seemed to show sympathy; then came the English words softly whispered into her ear, while the hand again pressed her arm firmly, as if in warning. It was with difficulty that she refrained from uttering an exclamation and she felt the blood crimson her cheeks, but she mastered the impulse and lay perfectly quiet, glancing up into the face bent down close to hers. It was not familiar to her, and yet it seemed to her that she had seen it somewhere ; another minute and it was gone. But though to all appearances Isobel's attitude was unchanged, her mind was active now. Who could have sent her this message? Who could this native girl be who had spoken in English to her? Where had she seen the face? Her thoughts travelled backward, and she ran over in her mind all those with whom she had come in con- tact since her arrival in India ; her servants and tliose of her acquaintances passed before her eyes. She had scarcely spoken to another native woman since she had landed. After thinking over all she had known in Cawnpore, she thought of Deennugghur; whom had she met there? 330 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. Suddenly came the remembrance of the exhibition by the juggler, and she recalled the face and figure of his daughter, as, seated upon the growing pole, she had gone up foot by foot in the light of the lamps and up into the darkness above. The mystery was sAved, that was the face that had just leaned over her. But how could she be interested in her fate? Then she remembered that this was the girl whom Bathurst had saved from the tiger. If they were interested in her, it must be through Bathurst. Could he too have survived the attack of the night before? She had thought of him, as of all of them, as dead, but possibly he might have escaped. She remembered now what she had not recalled before, that he had been sitting beside her when that terrible fire opened, and she had a vague idea that he had leaped overboard. She had no after remembrance of him ; perhaps he had swam to shore and got off in safety. In that case he must be lingering in Cawnpore, had learned what had become of her, and was trying to rescue her. It was to the juggler he would naturally have gone to obtain assist- ance. He was risking his life now to save hers, and this was the man whom she despised as a coward. But what could he do? At Bithooi, in the power of this treacherous Rajah, secure in the Zenana, where no man save its master ever penetrated, how could he pos- sibly help her? Yet the thought that he was trying to do so was a happy one, and the tears that flowed between her closed lids were not painful ones. The view which Bathurst himself took of his escape from the boat did not even occur to her. To have remained in the boat would have been certain death, while he could have been of no assistance to her or any one else. That he should escape, then, if he could, seemed to her a per- fectly natural action ; she hoped that some of the others had done the same and that Bathurst was not working alone. It did not seem to her that there could be any possi- bility of the scheme for her rescue succeeding; as to that she felt no more hopeful than before, but it seemed to take away the sense of utter loneliness that she be- IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 331 ion of lad up hat hen urst i in lave had jibly what tting J had I had im to St be icome o the ssist- and rer of jre no le pos- ing to Itween Iwhich It did . boat have lathe la per- lothers )rking possi- ; as to leemed Ihe be- fore felt that some one should be interesting himself in her fate. Perhaps there would be more than a mere verbal message next time. How long would it be before she heard again? How long a respite had she before that wretch came to see her? Doubtless he had heard that she was ill. She would remain so. She would starve herself. Her weakness seemed to her her best protection. As she lay apparently helpless upon the couch she watched the women move about thj room. The girl who had spoken to her was not among them. The women were not unkind. They brought her cooling drinks, and tried to tempt her to eat something; but she shook her head as if utterly unable to do so, and after a time feigned to be asleep. Darkness came on gradually, some lamps were lighted in the room. Not for a moment had she been left alone since she was brought in — never less than two females remaining with her. Presently the woman who was evidently the chief of the establishment came in accompanied by a girl, whom Isobel recognized at once as the juggler's daughter. The latter brought with her a tray on which were some cakes and a silver goblet. These she set down on an oak table by the couch. The girl then handed her the goblet, which, keeping up the appearance of extreme feebleness, she took languidly. She placed it to her lips, but at once took it away. It was not cool and re- freshing like those she had tasted before. It had but little flavor, but had a faint odor, which struck her as not unfamiliar. It v;as a drug of some sort they wished her to drink. She looked up in the girl's face; Rabda made a re- assuring gesture, and said in a low whisper, as she bent forward, " Bathurst, Sahib. " This was sufficient; whatever it was it would do her no harm, and she raised the cup to her lips and emptied it. Then the elder woman said something to the other two, and they all left the room together, leaving her alone with Rabda. The latter went to the door quietly and drew the t 33» IN THR DAYS OF THE MUTINY. hangings across it, then she returned to the couch and from the folds of her dress produced two phials and a tiny note. Then, noiselessly, she placed a lamp on the table, and withdrew to a short distance while Isobel opened and read the note. Twice she read it through, and then, laying it down, burst into tears of relief. Rabda came and knelt down beside the couch, and taking one of her hands, pressed it to her lips. Isobel threw her arms round the girl's neck, drew her close to her, and kissed her warmly. Rabda then drew a piece of paper and a pencil from her dress and handed them to her. She wrote : Thanks a thousand times, dear friend; I will follow your instructions. Please send me if you can some quick and deadly poison that I may take in the last extremity. Do not fear that I will flinch from applying the things you have sent me. I would not hesitate to swallow them were there no other hope of escape. I rejoice so much to know that you have escaped from that terrible attack last night. Did any others get away ? Do you know if they murdered my uncle and all the others in the boat, except Mrs. Hunter and Mary? Pray do not run any risks to try and rescue me. I think that I am safe now, and will make myself so hideous that if the wretch once sees me he will never want to see me again. As to death, I have no fear of it. If we do not meet again God bless you. Yours most gratefully, Isobel. Rabda concealed the note in her garment and then motioned to Isobel that she should close her eyes and pretend to be asleep. Then she gently drew back the curtains and seated herself at a distance from the couch. Half an hour later the mistress of the Zenana came in. Rabda rose and put her finger to her lips and left the room, accompanied by the woman. "She is asleep," she said; "do not be afraid, the potion will do its work. Leave her alone all night. When she wakes in the morning she will be wild with fever, and you need have no fear that the Rajah will seek to make her the queen of his Zenana. " and ,nd a ithe iobel own, down essed girl's y- from EoUow quick etnity. gs yoti a. were I know night, [rdered Hunter rescue self so r want If we then es and ick the couch, a came md left lid, the night. Id with ah will IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. CHAPTER XX. 333 Prepared as the mistress of the Zenana was to find a great change in the captive's appearance, she was startled when, soon after daybreak, she went in to see her. The lower part of her face was greatly swollen, her lips were covered with white blotches. There were great red scars round the mouth and on her forehead, and the skin seemed to have been completely eaten away. There were even larger and deeper marks on her neck and shoulders, which were partly uncovered, as if by her restless tossing. Her hands and arms were similarly marked. She took no notice of her entrance, but talked to herself as she tossed restlessly on the couch. There was but little acting in this, for Isobel was suffering an agony of pain. She had used the acid much more freely than she had been instructed to do, determined that the disfigurement should be complete. All night she had been in a state of high fever, and had for a time been almost delirious. She was but slightly more easy now, and had difficulty in preventing herself from crying out from the torture she was suffer- ing. There was no tinge of pity in the face of the woman who looked at her, but a smile of satisfaction at the manner in which the potion had done its work. "The Nana can see her now," she said to herself; "there will be no change in the arrangements here." She at once sent out word that as soon as the Rajah was up he was to be told that she begged him to come at once. An hour later he came to the door of the Zenana. "What is it, Poomba?" he asked; "nothing the mat- ter with Miss Hannay, I hope?" " I grieve to say, your Highness, that she has been seized with some terrible disease. I know not what it is, for never did I see a woman so smitten. It must be an illness contracted from confinement and bad air dur- ing the siege, some illness that the Europeans have, for ;' I, 334 IN THE DAYS OP THE MUTINY. never did I see aught like it. She is in a high state of fever, and her face is in a terrible state. It must be a sort of plague. " "You have been poisoning her," the Nana said roughly; "if so, beware, for your life shall be the for- feit. I will see her for myself." " She has had no poison since she came here, though I know not but what she may have had poison about her. and may have taken it after she was captured." "Take me to her," the Rajah said. "I will see for myself. " " It may be a contagious disease, your Highness. It were best that you should not go near her.* The Rajah made an impatient gesture, and the wo- man, without another word, led iiim into the room where Isobel was lying. The Nana was prepared for some disfigurement of the face he had so admired, but he shrank back from the reality. " It is horrible," he said in a low voice. " What have you been doing to her?" he asked, turning furiously to the woman. " I have done nothing, your Highness. All day yesterday she lay in a torpor, as I told you in the even- ing, when you inquired about her, and I thought then she was going to be ill. I have watched her all night. She has been restless and disturbed, but I thought it better not to go nearer lest I should wake her, and it was not until this morning, when the day broke, that I perceived this terrible change. What shall we do with her? If the disease is contagious every one in the palace may catch it. " " Have a closed palanquin brought to the door, wrap her up and have her carried down to the Subada Ke Kothee. Let her give it to the women there. Burn all the things in this room and everything that has been worn by those who have entered it. I will inquire into this matter later on, and those I find have had a hand in any foul play shall wish that they had never been born." As soon as he had left the woman called Rabda in. " idl has gone well," she said, " your fathv^r's philter IN THE PAYS OF THE MUTINY. 335 ite of ;be a said e f or- lough about a." ee for ss. It le wo- 1 where r some but he lathave msly to ai day e even- ht then night. >ught it and it ., that I |do with in the kr, wrap lada Ke Burn las been inquire |e had a Id never Ida in. philter is powerful indeed. Tell him whenever he needs a service he has but to ask it of me. Look at her ; did you ever see one so disfigured? The Rajah has seen her and is filled with loathing. She is to be sent to the Subada Ke Kothee. Are you sure that the malady is not contagious? I have persuaded the Rajah that it is ; that is why he is sending her away." " I am sure it is not," Rabda said, " it is the result of the drugs. It is terrible to see her ; give me some oint- ment. " " What does it matter about her now that she is harm- less?" Poomba said scornfully. Being however desir- ous of pleasing Rabda, she went away and brought a pot of ointment, which the girl applied to the sores, the tears falling down her cheeks as she did so. The salve at once afforded relief from the burning pain, and Isobel gratefully took a drink prepared from fresh limes. She had only removed her gown when she had lain down, having done this in order that it should not be burnt by the acid, and that her neck and shoulders might be seen and the belief induced that this strange eruption was all over her. Rabda made signs for her to put it on again, and pointing in the direction of Cawnpore repeated the word several times, and Isobel felt with a thrill of intense thankfulness that the stratagem had succeeded and that she was to be sent away at once, probably to the place where the other prisoners were confined. Presently the woman re- turned. " Rabda, you had best go with her. It were well that you should leave for the present. The Rajah is suspicious ; he may come back again and ask questions, and as he knows you by sight, and as you told me your father was in disfavor with him at present, he might suspect that you were in some way concerned in the matter. " " I will go, " Rabda said. " I am sorry she has suffered so much. I did not think the potion would have been so strong. Give me a netful of fresh limes and some cooling lotion, that I may leave with her there. " \t 33<5 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. In a few minutes a woman came up to say that the palanquin was in readiness at the gate of the Zenana garden. A large cushion was taken off a divaii, and Isobel was laid upon it and covered with a light shawl. Six of the female attendants lifted it and carried it downstairs, accompanied by Rabda and the mistress of the Zenana, both closely veiled. Outside the gate was a large palanquin, with its bearers and four soldiers and an officer. The cushion was lifted and placed in the palanquin, and Rabda also took her place there. "Then you will not return to-day," the woman said to her in a voice loud enough to be heard by the officers. " You will remain with her for a time, and afterward go to see your friends in the town. I will send for you when I hear that you wish to return. " The curtains of the palanquin were drawn down ; the bearers lifted it and started at once for Cawnpore. On arrival at the large building known as the Subada Ke Kothee, the gates were opened at once at the order of the Nana's officer, and the palanquin was carried across the courtyard to the door of the building which was used as a prison for the white women and children. It was taken into the great arched room and set down. Rabda iepped out, and the bearers lifted out the cushion upon which Isobel lay. "You will not be wanted any more," Rabda said, in a tone of authority. " You can return to Bithoor at once. " As the door closed behind them several of the ladies came round to see this fresh arrival. Rabda looked round till her eye fell upon Mrs. Hunter, who was oc- cupied in trying to hush a fractious child. She put her hand on her arm and motioned to her to come along. Surprised at the summons, Mrs. Hunter followed her; when they reached the cushion Rabda lifted the shawl from Isobel's face. For a moment Mrs. Hunter failed to recognize her, but as Isobel opened her eyes and held out her hand she knew her, and with a cry of pity she dropped on her knees beside her. " My poor child, what have these fiends been doing to you?" hat the Zenana aii, and ; shawl, rried it tress of ate was soldiers aced in lere. an said officers, tervvard for you Arn; the re. Subada le order carried y which liildren. t down, out the said, in :hoor at le ladies . looked was oc- put her e along, 'ed her; le shawl )r failed and held pity she ;n doing lN,THEDAVSOFTHEMUTINy. ^i^il''e7et''"i^^^^ Mrs. Hunter •• T suffered a great d^aTof ^.t' V '''^' *^ W hat Bithoor, to Nana Sahib's Zen^n/ "^^5 J^^ned^away lo and I will nurse her- ittooti , -f t' ^"^ «y daughter burnt, somehow." ' "°°^' ^^ '* =he had beenteilfbiy befteT/ S^nSn'^all-''^' - the happy days pressed for her appeafanc/ qP"' ""^ the pity ex side of the wall, whS" n^ and M^"l.<=^"'«d to thl wade her as comfortable ?sthl'^'-,?"°ter at onci had now thrown back h|r ve f ? T'^' Rabda, wh| Mrs. Hunter took Pq1^^«' i. l-inguage thanked her for her HnH"*^' ^^ '" her own „ I have done as I was told - ^L'" ^=°^'«'- .t;as only right thar^l^-,? ^^^l^^ jn.| ttr •'?rarx''':;^h^:i «r'-r -^^- '- tnat^all were gone." ^ ^^^*' ^^ar, I was afraid ii^fr'-™ BiJhir 'li™ •eijt'^^.s'^ "-- *"«* -rtoburnmyface. He toirmTnT &„Tia%^,^^ 338 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. escaped, and perhaps some others may have got away, though he did not seem to know it. " " But surely there could be no occasion, to bum your- self as badly as you have done, Isobel. " " I am afraid I did put on too much acid," she said; " I was so afraid of not burning it enough, but it does not matter, it does not pain me nearly so much since I put on that ointment ; it will soon get well. " Mrs. Hunter shook her head regretfully. *' I am afraid it will leave marks for a long time. " "That is of no consequence at all, Mrs. Hunter; I am so thankful at being here with you that I should mind very little if I knew that it was always to be as bad as it is now. What does it matter?" " It doejs not matter at all at present, my dear ; but if you ever get out of this horrible place, some day you may think differently about it. " "I must go now," Rabda said. "Has the lady any message to send to the Sahib?" and she again handed a paper and pencil to Isobel. The girl took them and hesitated a little before writing : ■fa Thank God, you have saved me. Some day, perhaps, I may be able to tell you how gftateful I am ; but, if not, you will know that if the worst happens to us, I shall die blessing you for what you have dowe for me. Pray do not linger longer in Cawnpore. You may be discovered, and if I am spared it would embitter my life always to know that it had cost you yours. God bless you always. Yours gratefully, Isobel. She folded up the paper and gave it to Rabda, who took her hand and kissed it ; and then drawing her veil again over her face went to the door, which stood for a moment open. Some men were bringing in a large cauldron of rice. The sentries offered no opposition to her passing out, as the officer with the palanquin had told them that a lady of the Rajah's Zenana would leave shortly. A similar message had been given to the officer at the main gate, who, however, requested to see her hand and arm to IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 339 our- iaid; does ttcel k *• ter; I ;honld be as but if ly you idy any landed before jerhaps, L if not, ihall die ly do not ired, and Uo know tsOBEL. ^da, who 1 her veil Itood for of rice. Ig out, as [at a lady similar lain gate, Id arm to satisfy him that all was right. This was sufficient to assure him that it was not a white woman passing out in disguise, andRabda at once proceeded to her father's house. As she expected he and Bathurst were away, for she had arranged to meet them at eight o'clock in the garden. They did not return until eleven, having waited two hours for her, and returning home in much anxiety at her non-appearance. "What has happened? Why did you not meet us, Rabda?" her father exclaimed, as he entered. Rabda rapidly repeated the incidents that had hap- pened since she had parted from him the evening be- fore, and handed to Bathurst the two notes she had re- ceived from Isobel. "Then she is in safety with the others, "he exclaimed in delight. "Thank God for that, and thank you, Rabda, indeed, for what you have done." " My life is my lord's, " the girl said quietly. " What I have done is nothing. " "If we had but known, Rujub, that she would be moved at once, we might have rescued her on the way. " Rujub shook his head. " There are far too many people along the road, Sahib; it could not have been done. But, of course, there was no knowing, as she was sent off directly after the Nana had seen her." " Is she much disfigured, Rabda?" Bathurst asked. "Dreadfully," the girl said sorrowfully. "The acid must have been too strong. " " It was strong, no doubt," Bathurst said, " but if she had put it on as I instructed her, it could only have burned the surface of the skin." " It has burned her dreadfully. Sahib ; even I should hardly have known her. She must be brave indeed to have done it. She must have suffered dreadfully, but I obtained some ointment for her and she was better when I left her. She is with the wife of the Sahib Hunter." "Now, Rabda, see if the meal is prepared," Rujub said. " We are both hungry and you can have eaten noLhing this morning. " 34° IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. He then left the room, leaving Bathurst to read his letters, which he still held in his hand, feeling that they were too precious to be looked at until he was alone. It was some time before Rabda brought in his break- fast, and, glancing at him, she saw how deeply he had been moved by the letters. She went up to him and placed her hand on his shoulder. "We will get her for you. Sahib. We have been successful so far, be assured that we shall succeed again. What we have done is more difficult than what we have to do. It is easier to get twenty prisoners from a jail than one from a Rajah's Zenana." " That is true enough, Rabda. At the moment I was not thinking of that, but of other things." He longed for sympathy, but the girl would not have understood him had he told her his feelings. To her he was a hero, and it woi:ld have seemed to her folly had he said that he felt himself altogether unworthy of Isobel Hannay. After he had finished his breakfast Rujub again came in. " What does the Sahib intend to do now?" he asked. " As far as I can see there is nothing to do at present, Rujub," he said. " When the white troops come up she will be delivered." " Then will my lord go down to Allahabad?" " Certainly not. There is no saying what may hap- pen." "That is so," Rujub agreed. "The white women are safe at present, but if, as the Sahib thinks, the white soldiers should beat the troops of the Nana, who can say what will happen? The people will be wild with rage, the Nana will be furious — he is a tiger who, having once laid his paw on a victim, will not allow it to be torn from him." "He can never allow them to be injured," Bathurst said. " It is possible that as our troops advance he may ca^ry them all off as hostages, and by the threat of killing them may make terms for his own life, but he wo. lid never venture to carry out his threats. You think he would?" he asked. Rujub remained silent. IN THE DAYS OP THE MUTINY. 341 his ;hey ^ • eak- had and been gain, have \ jail I was thave roher r folly -thy of pakfast Lsked. resent, tip she \y hap- vvomen ks, the la, who )e wild r who, lUow it fathurst ihe may Ireat of but he You " I think so, Sahib ; the Nana is an ambitious man ; he had wealth and everything most men would desire to make life happy; but he wanted more: he thought that when the British Raj was destroyed he would rule over the territories of the Peishwa, and be one of the greatest rulers of the land. He has staked everything on that; if he loses he has lost all. He knows that after the breach of his oath and the massacre here, there is no pardon for him. He is a tiger — and a wounded tiger is most dangerous. If he is, as you be- lieve he will be, defeated, I believe his one thought will be of revenge. Every day brings news of fresh risings. Scindia's army will join us; Kolkar's wfll probably follow. All Oude is rising in arms. A large army is gathering at Delhi. Even if the Nana is defeated here all will not be lost. He has' twenty thousand men ; there are well-nigh two hundred thou- sand in arms round Lucknow alone. My belief is that if beaten his first thought will be to take revenge at once on the Feringees, and to make his name terrible, and that he will then go off with his army to Lucknow or Delhi, where he would be received as one who has dared more than all others to defy the whites, who has no hope of pardon, and can therefore be relied upon above all others to fight to the last. " " It may be so, Rujub, though I can scarce believe that there exists a monster who would give orders for the murder of hundreds of women and children in cold blood ; but, at any rate, I will remain on watch. We will decide upon what will be the best plan to rescue her from the prison, if we hear that evil is intended ; but, if not, I can remain patiently until our troops arrive. I know the Subada Ke Kothee : it is, if I remember right, a large quadrangle with no windows on the outside." " That is so. Sahib ; it is a strong place, and difficult indeed to get into or out of. There is only the main gate, which is guarded at night by two sentries outside, and there is doubtless a strong guard within. " " I would learn whether the same regiment always furnishes the guard; if so, it might be possible to bribe them." I 34* IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. " I am afraid it would be too dangerous to try. • There are scores of men in Cawnpore who would cut a throat for a rupee, but when it comes to breaking open a prison, to carry off one of these white v/oiiJien whom they hate, it would be too dangerous to try. " " Could you not do something with your art, Rujub?" " If there were only the outside sentries it would be easy enough, Sahib. I could send them to sleep with a wave of my hand, but I could not affect the men in- side, whom I do not know even by sight. Besides, in addition to the soldiers who guard the gate, there will be the men who have been told off to look after the prisoners. It will require a great deal of thinking over, Sahib, but I believe we shall manage it. I shall go to-morrow to Bithoor and show myself boldly to the Nana. He knows that I have done good service to him, and his anger will have cooled down by this time, and he will listen to what I have to say. It will be useful to us for me to be able to go in and out of the palace at. will, and so learn the first news from those about him. It '«i most important that we should know if he has evil inientions toward the captives, so that we may have lime to carry on our plons." "Very well, Rujub. You do not expect me to re- main in-doors, I hope, for I should wear myself out if I were obliged to wait here doing nothing. " " No, Sahib ; it will be perfectly safe for you to go about just as you are, and I can get you any other dis- guise you like. You would gather what is said in the town, can listen to the Sepoys, and examine the Subada Ke Kothee. If you like I will go there with you now. My daughter shall come with us ; she may be useful, and will be glad to be doing something. " They went out from the city toward the prison house, which stood in an open space where there were several other buildings, some of them surrounded with gardens and walls. The Subada Ke Kothee was a large building, form- ing three sides of a square, a strong high wall forming the fourth side. It was low, with a flat roof. There were no windows or openings in the outside wall, the here iroat en a ^hom jub?" Id be I with ;n in- 8S, in e will er the over, all go to the him, e, and useful palace 1 about vif he /e may to re- out if I to go ler dis- in the >ubada ku now. 1 useful, house, I several rardens form- forming There rail, the IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 343 chambers all facing the courtyard. Two sentries were at the gate. They were in the red Sepoy uniform, and Bathurst saw at once how much the bonds of discipline had been relaxed. Both had leaned their muskets against the wall, one was squatted on the ground beside his fire-arm, and the other was talking with two or three natives of his acquaintance. The gates were closed. As they watched a native officer came up. He stood for a minute talking wiui the soldiers By his gesticu- lations it could be seen he was exceedingly angry, and the men took their muskets and began to walk "p and down. Then the officer knocked at the gate, instead of its being opened a man appeared at a loop-hole in the gate tower, and the cfiicer handed to him a paper. A minute later the gate was opened sufficiently for him to pass in, and was then closed behind him. "They are evidently pretty strict," Bathurst said. "I don't think, Rujub, there is much chunce of our doing anything there. " Rujub shook his head. " No, Sahib, it is clear they have strict orders about opening and shutting the gate. " " It would not be very difficult to scale the wall of the house," Bathurst said, "with a rope and a hook at its end ; but that is only the first step. The real dif- ficulty lies in getting the prison room open in the first place — for no doubt they are locked up at night — and in the second getting her out of it and the building. " " You could lower her down from the top of the wall, Sahib." " Yes, if one could get her out of the room they are confined in without making the slightest stir, but it is almost too much to hope that one could be able to do that. These men in charge of them are likely to keep a close watch, for they know that their heads would pay for any captive they allowed to escape. " "I don't think they will watch much, Sahib; they will not believe that any of the women, broken down as they must be by trouble, would attempt such a thing, for even if they got out of the prison itself and then made their escape from the building, they would be caught before they could go far. " 4 I 344 IN THi DAYS OP THE MUTINY. • f! "Where does the prison-house lie, Rabda?" Bathurst asked. "It is on the left-hand side as you enter the gate; it is the farthest door. Along that side most of the build- ings — which have been used for storehouses, I should say, or perhaps; for the guardf when the place was a palace — have two floors one above the other. But this is a large vaulted room extending from the ground to the roof ; it has winc'ows with iron gratings ; the door is very strong and heavy." "And now, Sahib, we can do nothing more," Rujub said. " I will return home with Rabda, and then go over to P thooc." "Very well, Rujub, I will stay here, and hear what people a^e talking about." There wet-e indeed a considerable number of people near the building: the fact that the white prisoners were all there seemed to exercise a fascination, and even women brought their children and sat on the b .nks which marked where gardens had once been and talked of the white captives. Bathurst strolled about among the groups of Sepoys and towns-people. The former talked in loud tones of the little force that had already started from Allahabad, and boasted how easily they would eat up the Feringees. It seemed, however, to Bathurst that a good deal of this braggadacio was asi.umed and that among some, at least, there was an undercurrent of doubt and uneasinefjs, though they talked as loudly and boldly as their companions. The towns-people were of two classes ; there were the budmashes or roughs of the place, who uttered brutal and ferocious jokes as to the probable fate of the white women. There were others who kept in groups apart and talked in low voices. These were the traders, to whom the events that had taken place foreboded ruin. Already most of the shops had been sacked, and many of the principal inhabitants murdered by the mob. Those who had so far escaped, thanks in some instances to the protection afforded them by Sepoy officers, saw that their trade was ruined, their best customers killed, and themselves virtually at the mercy of the mob, who IN THE DAYS OF THF, MUTINY. 345 IS an I they mces saw tiled, who nii^'^^lit again break out upon the occasion of any excite- niLUt. These were silent when Bathurst approached tliem. His attire, and his arms so ostentatiously dis- played in his sasli, marked him as one of the dangerous class, perhaps a prisoner from the jail whose doors had been thrown open on the first night of the Sepoy rising. For hours Hathurst remained in the neighborhood of the prison. The sun set, and the night came on. Then a small party of soldiers came up and relieved the sentries. This- time the number of the sentries at the gate was doubled, and three men were posted one on each of the other sides of the building. After seeing this done he returned to the house. After he had fmishcd his evening meal Rujub and Rabda came into the room. " Now, Sahib," the former said, " I think that we can tell you how the lady is. Rabda has seen her, and spoken to her, and touched her; there is sympathy be- tween them." He seated Rabda in a chair, placed his hand on her forehead, and then drew the tips of his fingers several times slowly do«vn her face. Her eyes closed. He took up her hand, and let it fall again. It was limp and impassive. Then he said authoritatively, " Go to the prison." He paused a moment. "Are you there?" " I am there," she said. " Are you in the room where the ladies are?" " I am there," she repeated. " Do you see the lady Hannay?" "I see her." , "How is she?" " She is lying quiet. The other young lady is sitting beside her. The lower part of her face is bandaged up, but I can see that she is not suffering as she was this morning. She looks quiet and happy. " " Try and speak to her. Say 'Keep up your courage, we are doing what we can.' Speak, I order you." " I have spoken." " Did she hear you." "Yes. She has raised herself on her arm; she is looking round ; she has asked the other young lady if 346 IN THE DAYS OF THK MUTINY. she heard anything. The other shakes her head. She heard my words, but does not understand them." Rujub looked at Bathurst, who, mechanically, re- peated the message in English. "Speak to her again. Tell her these words," and Rujub repeated the message in English. " Does she hear you?" ** She hears me. She has clasped her hands, and is looking round bewildered." " That will do. Now go outside into the yard ; what do you see there?" " I see eight men sitting round a fire. One gets up and walks to one of the grated windows, and looks in at the prisoners." " Is the door locked?" "It is locked." "Where is the key?" She was silent for some time. " Where is the key?" he repeated. " In the lock," she said. " How many soldiers are there in the guard-room by the gate?" " There are no soldiers there. There are an officer and four men outside, but none inside. " " That will do," and he passed his hand lightly across her forehead. " Is it all true?" Bathurst asked, as the juggler turned to him. "Assuredly it is true. Sahib. Had I had my daughter with me at Deennugghur, I could have sent you a mes- sage as easily ; as it was I had to trust only to the power of my mind upon yours. The information is of use, Sahib. " " It is indeed ; it is a great thing to know that the key is left in the lock* and also that at night there are the prison keepers only inside the building." " Does she know what she has been doing?" he asked, as Rabda languidly rose from her chair. " No, Sahib, she knows nothing after she has re- covered from these trances." " I will watch to-morrow night, " Bathurst said, " and I i She , re- and ind is what etsup )ks in lom by officer across turned ^ughter a mes- power I of use, the key lare the asked, I has re- mand IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 347 see at what hour the sentries are relieved. It is evident that the Sepoys are not trusted to enter the prison, which is left entirely to the warders, the outside posts being furnished by some regiment in the lines. It is important to know the exact hour at which the changes are made, and perhaps you could find out to-morrow, Rujub, who these warders are; whether they are per- manently on duty or are relieved once a day." " I will do that, Sahib; if they are changed we may be able to get at some of them." " I have no money," Bathurst said; "but " " I have money. Sahib, and if they can- be bribed will do it ; our caste is a rich one. We sometimes re- ceive large presents, and we are everywhere made wel- come. We have little need of money. I am wealthy and practise my art more because I love it than for gain. There are few in the land that know the secrets that I do. Men die without having sons to pass down their knowledge; thus it is the number of those who possess the secrets of the Ancients grow smaller ever/ day. There are hundreds of jugglers, but very ^evv who know, as I do, the secrets of nature, and can control the spirits of the air. Did I need greater wealth than I have, Rabda could discover for me all the hidden treasures of India, and I could obtain them guarded though they may be by djins and evil spirits." " Have you a son to come after you, Rujub?" " Yes, he is travelling in Persia, to confer with one or two of the great ones there, who still possess the knowledge of the ancient magicians." "By the way, Rujub, I have not asked you how you got on with the Nana. " "It was easy enough," the juggler said. " He had lost all interest in the affairs of Deennugghur, and greeted me at first as if I had just letitrned from a jour- ney. Then he remembered, and asked me suddenly why I had disobeyed his orders and given my voice for terms being granted to the Feringees. I said that I had obeyed his orders; I understood that what he prin- cipally desired was to have the women here as prisoners, and that had the siege continued the Feringees would 348 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. have blown themselves into the air. Therefore the only plan was to make terms with them, which would in fact place them all in his power, as he would not be bound by the conditions granted by the Oude men. He was satisfied, and said no more about it, and I am re- stored to my position in his favor. Henceforth we shall not have to trust to the gossip of the bazaars, but I shall know what news is received and what is going to be done. " Your people at Delhi have beaten back the Sepoys several times, and at Lucknow they resist stoutly. The Nana is very angry that the place has not been taken, but from what I hear the entrenchments there are much stronger than they were here, and even here they were not taken by the sword, but because the whites had no shelter from the guns, and could not go to the well without exposing themselves to fire. At Lucknow they have some strong houses in the entrenchments and no want for anything, so they can only be captured by fighting. Every one says they cannot hold out many days longer, but that I do not know. It does not seem to me that there is any hope of rescue for them, for even if, as you think, the white troops should beat Nana Sahib's men, they never could force their way through the streets of Lucknow to the entrenchments there. " *' We shall see, Rujub. Deennugghur was defended by a mere handful, and at Lucknow they have half a regiment of white soldiers. They may, for anything I know, have to yield to starvation, but I doubt whether the mutineers and Oude men, however numerous they may be, will carry the place by assault. Is there any news elsewhere?" " None, vSahib, save that the Feringees are bringing down ref^fiments from the Punjaub to aid those at Delhi. " " The tide is beginning to turn, Rujub; the mutineers have done their worst and have failed to overthrow the English Raj. Now you will see that every day they will lose ground. Fresh troops will pour up the coun- try, and step by step the mutiny will be crushed out; it is a question of time only. If you could call up a picture on smoke of what will be happening a year IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 349 the 3uia t be He I re- we , but oing ipoys The aken, much were ad no well r they nd no ed by many seem for Nana rough e." ended alf a ingi ether they e any [nging )elhi." tineers )W the they coun- out; |1 up a year hence, you would see the British triumphant every- where." " I cannot do that, Sahib, I do not know what would appear on the smoke, and were I to try misfortune would surely come upon me. When a picture of the past is shown on the smoke, it is not a past I know of, but which one of those prejjent knows. I cannot say even which among them may know it; it is always one that has made a strong impression in the mind, but more than that I do not know. As to those of the future, I know even less; it is the work of the power of the air whose name I whisper to myself when I pour out the incense, and to whom I pray. It is seldom that I show these pictures, he gets angry if called upon too often. I never do it unless I feel that he is propitious." " It is beyond me altogether, Rujub. I can under- stand your power of sending messages, and of your daughter seeing at a distance. I have heard of such things at home, they are called mesmerism and clair- voyance. It is an obscure art ; but that some men do possess the power of influencing others at a distance seems to be undoubted ; still it is certainly never carried to such perfection as I see it in your case." "It could not be," Rujub said; "white men eat too much, and it needs long fasting and mortification to fit a man to become a mystic ; the spirit gains power as the body weakens. The Feringees can make arms that shoot long distances, and carriages that travel faster than the fastest horse, and great ships and machines. They can do many great and useful things, but they cannot do the things that have been done for thousands of years in the East. They are tied too fast to the earth to have aught to do with the spirits that dwell here. A learned Brahmin, who had studied your holy books, told me that your great teacher said that if you had faith you could move mountains. We could well-nigh do that if it were of use to mankind; but were we to do so merely to show our power we should be struck dead. It is wrong even to tell you these things ; I must say no more. " Four days passed. Rujub went ever)'- day for some » 3SO IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. I I hours to Bithoor, and told Bathurst that he heard that the British force, of about fourteen hundred whites and five hundred Sikhs, was pushing forward rapidly, mak- ing double marches each day. "The first fight will be near Futtehpore," he said. " There are fifteen hundred Sepoys, as many Oude tribes- men, and five hundred cavalry with twelve guns, and they are in a very strong position, which the British can only reach by passing along a road through a swamp. It is a position that the officers say a thou- sand men could hold against ten thousand. " " You will see that it will not delay our troops an hour, " Bathurst said. " Do they imagine they are go- ing to beat us, when the numbers are but two to one in their favor? If so, they will soon learn that they are mistaken. " The next afternoon when Rujub returned he said: " You were right, Sahib ; your people took Futtehpore after only half an hour's fighting. The accounts say that the Feringees came on like demons, and that they did not seem to mind our firing in the slightest. The Nana is furious, but they still feel confident that they will succeed in stopping the Feringees at Dong. They lost their twelve guns at Futtehpore, but they have two heavy ones at the Pandoo bridge, which sweep the straight road leading to it for a mile; and the bridge has been mined, and will be blown up if the Feringees reach it. But, nevertheless, the Nana swears that he will be revenged on the captives. If you are to rescue the lady it must be done to-night, for to-morrow it may be too late. " " You surely do not think he will give orders for the murder of the women and children?" " I fear he will do so," Rujub answered gloomily. Each day Bathurst had learned in the same manner as before what was doing in the prison. Isobel was no longer being nursed ; she was assisting to nurse Mary Hunter, who had, the day after she was transferred to the prison, been attacked by fever, and was the next day delirious. Rabda's report of the next two days left little doubt in Bathurst's mind that she was rapidly IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 351 that and lak- iaid. ibes- and itish gh a thou- ps an e gp- ine in '.y are said : ihpore ts say tthey The t they They e two p the ridge jingees at he Iresciie it may For the by- lanncr ras no Mary red to le next days [•apidly sinking. All the prisoners suffered greatly from the close confinement; many had died, and the girl's de- scription of the scenes she witnessed was often inter- rupted by her sobs and tears. CHAPTER XXI. While Bathurst was busying himself completing his preparations for the attempt, Rabda came in with her father. "My lord," she said, "I tremble at the thought of your venturing your life. My life is of no importance, and it belongs to you. What I would propose is this. My father will go to Bithoor, and will obtain an order from one of the Nana'S officers for a lady of the Zenana to visit the prisoners. I will go in veiled, as I was on the day I went there. I will change garments with the lady, and she can come out veiled and meet you outside. " " I would not dream of such a thing, Rabda. You would be killed to a certainty when they discovered the trick. Even if I would consent to the sacrifice. Miss Hannay would not do so. I am deeply grateful to you for proposing it, but it is impossible. You will see that with the aid of your father I shall succeed. " " I told her that would be your answer. Sahib," Rujub said, " but she insisted on making the offer. " It was arranged that they were to start at nine o'clock, as it was safer to make the attempt before everything became quiet. Before starting Rabda was again placed in a trance. In reply to her father's questions, she said that Mary Hunter was dead, and that Isobel was lying down. She was told to tell her that in an hour she was to be at the window next to the door. Rujub had found that the men inside the prison were those who had been employed as warders at the jail before the troubles began, and he had procured for Bathurst a dress similar to that which they wore, which was a sort of uniform. He had offered, if the attempt was successful, to conceal Isobel in his house until the II I 352 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. troops reached Cawnpore, but Bathurst preferred to take her down the country, upon the ground that every house might be searched, and that possibly before the British entered the town there might be a general sack of the place by the mob, and even if this did not take place there might be desperate house-to-house fighting when the troops arrived. Rujub acknowledged the danger, and said that he and his daughter would ac- company them on theii' way down country, as it would greatly lessen their risk if two of the party M^ere really natives. Bathurst gratefully accepted the offer, as it would make the journey far more tolerable for Isobel if she had Rabda with her. She was to wait a short distance from the prison while Bathurst made the attempt, and was left in a clump of bushes two or three hundred yards away from the prison. Rujub accompanied Bathurst. They went along quietly until within fifty yards of the sentry in the rear of the house, and then stopped. The man was walking briskly up and down. Rujub stretched out his arms in front of him with the fingers extended. Bath- urst, who had taken his place behind him, saw his muscles stiffen, while there was a tremulous motion of his fingers. In a minute or two the sentry's walk be- came slower. In a little time it ceased altogether and he leaned against the wall as if drowsy; then he slid dov/n in a sitting position, his musket falling to the ground. "You can come along now," Rujub said; "he is fast asleep and there is no fear of his waking. He will sleep till I bid him wake. " They at once moved forward to the wall of the house. Bathurst threw up a knotted rope to \^hich a large hook, round which flannel had been wrapped to prevent noise, was attached. After three or four attempts it caught on the parapet. Bathurst at once climbed up. As soon as he had gained the flat terrace, Rujub followed him; they then pulled up the rope, to the lower end of which a rope-ladder was attached, and fastened this securely; then they went to the inner side of the terrace and looked down at the courtyard. Two men were ) take every •e the [ sack t take rhting d the Id ac- would really , as it Isobel prison t in a y from y went itry in an was out his Bath- aw his ition of alk be- ler and he slid to the i is fast le will ; house, a large prevent rapts it bed np. oil owed r end of led this ; terrace in were IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. Standing- at one of fv. ^^^ S'Mr..?ffSr"' - arts l^ght was burning close to th. "^^^^ ^ ^^om wherTa and fixed his gaze upon the ' ^'"1°"''°^ ««" by the fire them wrapped himself i„h^;,i? " «^" time one of five mmutes two others hi/fn '""' 'ay down In Batht-t ^^r^?^^'rJr^l^ rn7? ^ A^t lf;^i",^^^ i^ n,y t„rn now. " ™ir-'-'SStf^^^^^ JJo you stay, Ruiub •• r° /i"^*^ ^^® courtyard "^ take me for onp nf II ' -^^^^urst said ''Tf^^, m, through the gate; and yo.S ^Lt"°^ LT^'J w^° °"' The door was st«n^- "r the way we a^heavy tulwar ^'e^f^"^^, °P^^. and Bathurst, grasping ">g close to the house hi *® court-yard Ke^n o wLch'th """'"^ withte to eS2? r '°°'"- Three r'-^wt ^hftZra fi«^ p-^^^^^^^^ II 354 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. ;( I f but if anything should go wrong, go and lie down again at once. " Without waiting for an answer he moved toward the fire. "Is that you, Ahmed?" one of the warders said. "We all seem sleepy this evening, there is something in the air; I felt half inclined to go off myself." " It is very hot to-night, " Bathurst replied. There was something in his voice unfamiliar to the man, and with an exclamation, "Who is it?" he sprang to his feet, but Bathurst was now but tl*ree paces away, and with a bound was upon him, bringing the tulwar down with such force upon his head that the man fell lifeless without a groan. The other two leaped up with shouts of " Treachery, " but Bathurst was upon them and, aided by the surprise, cut both down after a sharp fight of half a minute. Then he ran to the prison door, turned the key in the lock and opened it. "Come," he exclaimed, "there is no time to be lost, the guards outside have taken the alarm," for by this time there was a furious knocking at the gate. " Wrap yourself up in this native robe." " But the others, Mr. Bathurst, can't you save them too?" "Impossible," he said. "Even if they got out they would be overtaken and killed at once. Come!" And taking her hand^ he led her to the gate. " Stand back here so that the gate will open on you," he said. Then he undid the bar, shouting, "Treachery, the prisoners are escaping. " As he undid the last bolt the gate opened and the soldiers rushed in, firing at random as they did so. Bathurst had stepped behind the gate as it opened, and as the soldiers ran up the yard he took Isobel's hand, and, passing through the gate, ran with her round the building until he reached the spot where Rabda was awaiting them. Half a minute later her father joined them. " Let us go at once, there is no time for talking," he said. " We must be cautious, the firing will wake the m again irard the rs said, mething ir to the 3 sprang ss away, e tulwar man fell [ up with lem and, arp fight on door, )be lost, ir by this " Wrap ive them out they e!" And I on you," :hery, the i and the iy did so. )ened, and el's hand, round the labda was her joined liking," he [ wake the '" ™^ °*VS OF T„. „„r,^. Whole quarter-" f^ri i. ^^^ am awake o/SreamLg""''' "^ '"^ ''^ «Me whether I ^■'--n^reS:..^'^^^"--^^ 3'o« a. safeo„t of ■I am not sure " f} • "<■ ui have been st-an^e sincp?""^ ^^^'d, speaking slowlv -t alUhis IS not fancy now^" ' ""'' ^ """ "«' ^We wheS -j' ',- rt"f;' ^i:,^--^-, Tate ., ,a„a and yo„ Mm.lar to those I heard J^,"""^'' ^O" heard wire hone flf nl ■'^ -Dithoor. There rliri « f ^"^® ^hat anTa: peraraTft""""- ^,'" --^h^t "wl alf ke T'"" despaired, to^ L 'Z f,', V°" '' ^''-^^ w:'^,'^^^' "P. "O one rniil^ • ' *^^ all Knew earli ^fl ^v """^ ^ck and tried to comfor 'thl^ ""''^'^d "'^ children and d>d at Deennugghur. Th^re was ^n'„' "'' ^''- »"" "e? was no crying and no ' 356 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. lamenting. It would have been a relief if any one had cried, it was the stillness that was so trying; when people talked to each other they did it in a whisper as ^'ley d< in a room where some one is lying dead. * V . 1 know Mary Hunter died yesterday; well, Mrs. U ante mite put aside her own griefs and tried to cheer otijers. I told her the last message I received and asked her go with me if it should be true. She said, 'No, Isobel, I don't know whether this message is a dream, or whether God has opened a way of escape for you; if so, may He be thanked, but you must go alone, one might escape where two might not. As for me, I shall wait here for whatever fate He may send me. My husband and my children have gone before me. I may do some good among these poor creatures, and here I shall stay. You are young and full of life and have many happy days in store for you. My race is nearly run — even did I wish for life I would not cumber you and your friends; there will be perils to encounter and fatigues to be undergone. Had not Mary left us I would have sent her with you, but God did not will it so. Go therefore to the window, dear, as you were told by this message you think you have received, but do not be disappointed if no one comes. If it turns out true and there is a chance of escape, take it, dear, and may God be with you. ' As I stood at the window I could not go at once as you told me to the door, I had to stand there. I saw it all till you turned and ran to the door, and then I came to meet you." " It was a pity you saw it," he said gently. " Why? Do you think that, after what I have gone through, I was shocked at seeing you kill three of those wretches? Two months ago I suppose I should have thought it dreadful, but those two months have changed us altogether. Think of what we were then and what we are now. There remain only you, Mrs. Hunter, myself, and the note said, 'Mr. Wilson too;' is that true?" "Yes." " Well, we four, and all the others gone, Uncle and Mary and Amy and the Doolans and the dear Doctor, IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. ■ •57 J had when )er as Mrs. cheer i and 3 said, ;e is a ipe for alone, r me, I rid me. me. I nd here nd have s nearly ber you liter and eft ns I 3t will it ere told , but do urns out [ear, and jvindow I Lor, I had id ran to lave gone three of 1 should iths have ,,/ere then lyou, Mrs. ^son too; incle and Doctor, all the children. Why, if the door had been open, and I had had a weapon I would have rushed to help you kill. I shudder at myself sometimes." After a pause she went on. " Then none of those in the other boat came to shore, Mr. Bathurst, except Mr. Wilson?" " I fear not, the other boat sank directly. Wilson told me it was sinking as he sprang over. You had better not talk any more, Miss 1 . "nay, for you are out of breath now and will need all }or. strength." "Yes, but tell me why you h ;ve l. ..en mo away; you said there was great danger?" "Our troops are coming up," ne said, "and I had reason to fear that when th^ rebels are defeated the mob may break open the pn ^ " They surely could not murder women and children who have done them no harm." "There is no saying what they might do, Miss Han- nay, but that was the reason why I dared not leave you where you were. I will tell you more about it after- ward. Now, please take my arm ; we must be miles away from here before morning. They will find out then that you have escaped, and will no doubt scour the country." They had left the road and were passing through the fields. Isobel's strength failed rapidly, as soon as the excitement, that had at first kept her up, subsided. Rujub several times urged Bathurst to go faster, but the girl hung more and more heavily on his arm. "I can't go any farther," she said, at last; "it is so long since I walked, and I suppose I have got weak. I have tried very hard, but I can scarcely drag my feet along. You had better leave me; you have done all you could to save me, and I thank you so much. Only, please, leave a pistol with me. I am not at all afraid of dying, but I will not fall into their hands again." "We must carry her, Rujub," Bathurst said; "she is utterly exhausted and worn out, and no wonder. If we could make a sort of stretcher, it would be easy enough. " Rujub took the cloth from his shoulders, and laid it on I I 358 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. » I the ground by the side of Isobel, who had now sunk down and was lying helpless. "Lift her on this, Sahib, then we will take the four corners and carry her; it will be no weight." Bathurst lifted Isobel, in spite of her feeble protest, and laid her on the cloth. " I will take the two corners by her head," Bathurst said, "if you will each take one of the others." "No, Sahib, the weight is all at the head; you take one corner and I will take the other. Rabda can take the two corners at the feet. We can change about when we like." Isobel had lost greatly in weight since the siege of Deennugghur began, and she was but a light burden for her three bearers, who started with her at a speed considerably greater than that at which she had walked. "Which way are you taking us, Rujub?" Bathurst asked presently; " I have lost my bearings altogether." " I am keeping near the river, Sahib. I know the country well. We cannot follow the road, for there the Rajah's troops and the Sepoys and the Oude men are gathered to oppose your people. They will fight to-morrow at Dong as I told you, but the main body is not far from here. We must keep far away from them, and if your people take Dong we can then join them if we like. This road keeps not far from the river, and we are not likely to meet Sepoys here, as it is the other road the white troops are coming up." After four hours' walking, Rujub said, " There is a large wood just ahead. We will go in there. We are far enough oft' Cawnpore to be safe from any parties they may send out to search. If your people take Dong to-morrow, they will have enough to think of in Cawn- pore without troubling about an escaped prisoner. Be- sides," he added, " if the Rajah's orders are carried out at daybreak, they will not know that a prisoner has es- caped; they will not trouble to count." " I cr.nnot believe it possible they will carry out such a butchery, Rujub. " " We shall see, Sahib. I did not tell you all I knew lest we should fail to carry off the lady, but I know the IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 359 sunk I four otest, thurst Li take n take about ege of burden i speed valked. ;athurst ;ether.'' iow the pr there de men ill figbt body is n them, them if er, and e other lere is a We are parties ke Dong In Cawn- ler. Be- rried out fr has es- out such ll I knew :iioW the orders that have been given. Word has been sent round to the butchers of the town, and to-morrow morning soon after daybreak it will be done." Bathurst gave an exclamation of horror, for until now he had hardly believed it was possible that even Nana Sahib could perpetrate so atrocious a massacre. Not another word was spoken until they entered the wood. " Where is the river, Rujub?" " A few hundred yards to the left. Sahib; the road is half a mile to the right. We shall be quite safe here. " They made their way for some little distance into the wood, and then laid down their burden. They had taken to the spot where Rabda remained, when the others went forward toward the prison, a basket containing food and three bottles of wine, and this Rujub had carried since they started together. As soon as the hammock was lowered to the ground, Isobel moved and sat up. " I am rested now. Oh, how good you have all been ! I was just going to tell you that I could walk again. I am quite ready to go on now. " " We are going to halt here till to-morrow evening. Miss Hannay; Rujub thinks we are quite beyond any risk of pursuit now. You must first eat and drink something and then sleep as long as you can. Rabda has brought a native dress for you and dye for staining your skin, but there is no occasion for doing that till to-morrow; the river is only a short distance away and in the morning you will be able to enjoy a wash." The neck was knocked off a bottle. Rabda had brought in the basket a small silver cup, and Isobel, after drinking some wine and eating a few mouthfuls of food, lay down by her and was soon fast asleep. Bathurst ate a much more hearty meal. Rujub and his daughter said that they did not want anything before morning. The sun was high before Bathurst woke. Rujub had lighted a fire and was boiling some rice in a lota. " Where is Miss Hannay?" Bathurst asked, as he sat up. \ 360 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. " She has gone down to the river with Rabda. The trees hang down well over the water and they can wash without fear of being seen on the opposite shore. I was going to wake you when the lady got up, but she made signs that you were to be allowed to sleep on." In half an hour the two girls returned. Isobel was attired in a native dress and her face, neck, arms, feet, and ankles hud been stained to the same color as Rabda's. She came forward a little timidly, for she felt strange and uncomfortable in her scanty attire. Bathurst gave an exclamation of pain as he saw her face. ** How dreadfully you have burnt yourself. Miss Hannay! Surely you cannot have followed the instruc- tions I gave you." " No ; it is not your fault at all, Mr. Bathurst. I put a great deal more on than you said, but I was so anx- ious to disfigure myself that I was determined to do it thoroughly; but it is nothing to what it was. As you see, my lips are getting all right again, and the sores are a good deal better than they were; I suppose they will leave scars, but that won't trouble me." *• It is the pain you must have suffered that I am thinking of," he replied. " As to the scars, I hope they will wear out in time, but you must have suffered hor- ribly." "They burned dreadfully for a time," the girl an- swered, " but for the last two or three days I hardly felt it, though, of course, it is very sore now." •' Do you feel ready for breakfast. Miss Hannay?" "Quite ready, and for a walk as long as you like afterward. I feel quite another creature after my dip; that was one of the worst things in the prison, we had scarcely water enough to drink, and none to wash with, and, of course, no combs nor anything." They sat down together and ate the cold food they had brought, while Rabda and her father made their breakfast of rice. "What has become of Mr. Wilson?" Isobel asked suddenly. " I wondered about him as I was being car- ried along last night, but I was too tired to talk after- IN THE DAYS OF THK MUTINY. 361 The wash :e. I it she n. 1 was , feet, lor as or she attire, iw her , Miss nstruc- I put JO anx- to do it As you le sores se they .t I am ipe they ed hor- rirl an- hardly lay?" \on like r-iy dip; [we had Bh with, |od they le their kl asked Eing car- hk after- ward. I hope he is safe at Allahabad by this time, or rather with the troops who are marching up." " The Zemindar's son, who came down with us as an escort, and one of his men got safely to shore also, and they went on with Wilson. When he found I was going to stay at Cawnpore to try and rescue you, he pleaded very hard that I should keep him with me in order that he might share in the attempt, but his ignorance of the language might have been fatal, and his being with me woulc* have greatly added to the difficulty, so 1 was obliged to refuse him. It was only beta me I told him that instead of adding to he would lessen your chance of escape, that he consented to go, for I am sure he would willingly have laid down his life to save yours." "I am very glad he is safe; he is very kind-hearted and nice, Mr. Bathurst, and a thoroughly natural, un- affected young fellow, very loyal and stanch. I am quite sure he would have done anything he could, even at the risk of his life." " I like him very much too. Miss Hannay. Before the siege, I thought him a careless, happy-go-lucky lad, but as I got to know him well I found he was much more than that, and he will make a good man and an excellent officer one of these days if he is spared. He is thoroughly brave without the slightest brag, an ex- cellents pecimen of the best class of public-school boy." "And who are the troops coming up, Mr. Bathurst? how strong are they? I have heard nothing about them." " About twelve hundred white troops and four or five hundred Sikhs; at least that is what the natives put them at." " But surely they will never be able to fight their way to Cawnpore, where there are the mutineers and Nana Sahib's troops and the Oude men and the people >f the town. Why, there must be ten to one against tl em." "Not far short of that, I think, but I feel &ui;i our men will do it. They know of the treachery of the Nana; they know of the massacre by the river, and they know that the women and children are prisoners in his hands, and do you think that men that know m mm ! li ! !• |i I I !' h 36a IN THE DAYS OK THE MUTINY. these things can be beaten? The Sepoys met them in superior force and in a stronjj position at Futtehpore, and they drove them before them like chaff. They will have harder work next time, but I have no shadow of fear of the result. " Then their -talk went back to Deennugghur and of their friends there, the Doolans, the Hunters, the Rin- touls and others, and Isobel wept freely over their fate. " Next to my uncle I shall miss the Doctor," she said. "He was an awfully good fellow," said Bathurst, " and was the only real friend I have had since I came to India. I would have done anything for the Doctor." '*When shall we start?" Isobel asked presently. " Directly the sun goes down a little. You would find it terribly hot now. I have been talking it over with Rujub, and he says it is better not to make a long journey to-day. We are not more than twenty miles from Dong, and it would not do to move in that direc- tion until we know how things have gone; therefore, if we start at three o'clock and walk till seven or eight, it will be quite far enough." "He seems a wonderful man," said Isobel. "You remember that talk we had at dinner, before we went to see him at the Hunters'." "Yes," he vsaid. "As you know, I was a believer then, and so was the Doctor. I need not say that I be- lieve still more now that these men do wholly unac- countable feats. He put the sentry outside the walls of your prison and five out of your eight warders so sound asleep that they did not wake during the struggle I had with the others. That of course was mesmerism. His messages to you were actually sent by means of his daughter. She was put in a sort of trance, in which she saw you and told us what you were doing, and communicated the message her father gave her to you. He could not send you a message nor tell me about jrou when you were first at Bithoor, because he said Rabda was not in sympathy with you, but after she had seen you and touched you, and you had kissed her, she was able to do so. There does not appear to me to be any- thing beyond the powers of nature in that, though IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 363 m in pore, They adow nd of iRin- • fate. - i said, hurst, came )ctor." • would t over along r miles ; direc- refore, ' eight, " You e went doubtless powers were called into play of which at present we know nothing. But we do know that minds act upon each other. Possibly certain persons in sym- pathy with each other may be able to act upon each other from a distance, especially when thrown into the sort of trance which is kfiown as the clairvoyant state. I always used to look upon that as humbug, but I need hardly say I shall in future be ready to believe almost anything. He professes to have other and even greater powers than what we have seen. At any rate, he can have no motive to deceive me when he has risked his life to help me. Do you know Rabda offered to go into the prison — her father could have got her an order to pass in — and then to let you go out in her dress while she remained in your stead. I could not accept the sacrifice even to save you, and I was sure had I done so you yourself would have refused to leave. " "Of course. But how good of her! Please tell her that you have told me, and how grateful I am for her offer." Bathurst called Rabda, who was sitting a short dis- tance away. She took the hand that Isobel held out to her and placed it against her forehead. "My life is yours, Sahib," she said simply to Bath- urst. " It was right that I should give it for this lady you love." " What does she say?" Isobel said. " She says that she owed me her life for that tiger business, you know, and was ready to give it for you because I had set my mind on saving you." " Is that what she really said, Mr. Bathurst?" Isobel asked quietly, for he had hesitated a little in changing its wording. " That was the sense of it, I can assure you. Not only was she ready to make the sacrifice, but her father consented to her doing so. These Hindoos are capable of gratitude, you see. There are not many English who would be ready thus to give their lives for a man v/ho had accidentally, as I may say, saved their lives." " Not accidentally, Mr. Bathurst. Why do you al- W I i:: iir 364 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. ways try to run yourself down? I suppose you will say next you saved my life by an accident. " "The saving of your life is due chiefly to these natives. " " But they were but your instruments, Mr. Bathurst, they had no interest in'%aving me. You had bought their services at the risk of your life, and in saving me they were paying that debt to you." At three o'clock they prepared for the start. Bath- urst had exchanged the warder's dress for one of a peasant, which they had brought with them. The wood was of no great width, and Rujub said they had better follow the road now. " No one will suspect us of being anything but what we seem," he said. "Should we meet any peasants their talk will be with you and me. They will ask no questions about the women; but if there is a woman among them, and she speaks, Rabda will answer her. " For hours they had heard dull sounds in the air, which Bathurst had recognized at once as distant artil- lery, showing that the fight was going on near Dong. " The Sepoys are making a stout resistance, or the firing would not last so long," he said to Rujub, as they walked through the wood across the road. "They have two positions to defend, Sahib. The Nana's men will fight first at a strong village two miles beyond Dong; if they are beaten there they will fight again at the bridge I told you of. " "That would partly account for it, but the Sepoys must be fighting much better than they did at Futteh- pore, for there, as you said, they swept the Sepoys be- fore them." When the)^ reached the edge of the wood, Bathurst said : " I will see that the road is clear before we go out. If any one saw us issuing out of the wood they might v/onder what we had been after." He went to the edge of the bushes and looked down the long, straight road. There was only a solitary figure in sight. It seemed to be an old man walkinj> lame with a stick. Bathurst was about to turn and tell the others tc come out, whe:: he saw the man stop sud- IN THE DAYS OP THE MUTINY. 365 denly, turn round to look back along the road, stand with his head bent as if listening, then run across the road with much more agility than he had before seemed to possess, and plunge in among the trees. "Wait," he said to those behind him, "something is going on. A peasant I saw in the road has suddenly dived into the wood as if he was afraid of being piM-sued. Ah!" he exclaimed a minute later, "there is a party of horsemen coming along at a gallop ; get farther back into the wood. " Presently they heard the rapid trampling of horses, and looking through the bushes they saw some twenty Sowars of one of the native cavalry regiments dash past. Bathurst went to the edge of the wood again and looked out. Then he turned suddenly to Isobel. " You remember those pictures on the smoke?" he said excitedly. " No, I do not remember them," she said in surprise. " I have often wondered at it, but I have never been able to recollect what they were since that evening. I have often thought they were just like a dream, when one sees everything just as plainly ps if they were a reality, and then they go out of your mind altogether as soon as you are awake." "It has been just the same with me," replied Bath- urst, " except that once or twice they have come back for a moment quite vividly. One of them I have not thought of for some days, but now I see it again. Don't you remember there was a wood, and a Hindoo man and woman stepped out of it, and a third native came up to them?" "Yes, I remember now," she said eagerly, "it was just as we are here; but what of that, Mr. Bathurst?" " Did you recognize any of them?" " Yes, yes, it all comes back to me now. It was you and the Doctor, certainly, and I thought the woman was myself. I spoke to the Doctor next day about it, but he laughed at it all ; and I have never thought of it since. " " The Doctor and I agreed when we talked it over that evening that the Hindoo who stepped out of the Ir &i |i Pi! It ill 1 !: i I m-^ li. fIC' 366 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. wood was myself, and thought that you were the Hin- doo girl, but of that we were not so sure, for your face seemed not only darkened, but blotched and altered — it was just as you are now — and the third native was the Doctor himself, we both felt certain of that. It has come true, r.nd I feel absolutely certain that the native I saw along the road will turn out to be the Doctor." "Oh, I hope so, I hope so!" the girlcrieJ, and pressed forward with Bathurst to the edge of the wood. The old native was coming along on the road again. As he approached, his eye fell on the two figures, and with a Hindoo salutation he was passing .nwben Isobel cried, " It is the Doctor!" and rushing foi v.ard she threw her arms round his neck. "Isobel Hannay!" he cried in delight and amaze- ment; " my dear little girl, my dear little girl, thank God you are saved! but what have yor* t.een doing with yourself, and who is this with you?" "You knew me when you sa v me in the picture on the smoke, Do .tor/' Bathurst said, grasping his hand, "though you do f i ^now me in life." "You, too, Baibv! t," the Doctor exclaimed, as he wrung his hand; 'thank God for that, my dear boy! to think that both of you should have been saved, it seems a miracle. The picture on the smoke — yes, we were speaking of it that last night at Deennugghur, and I never have thought of it since. Is there any one else?" " My friend the juggler and his daughter are with us. Doctor." "Then I can understand the miracle," the Doctor said, " for I believe that fellow could take you through the air and carry you through stone walls with the wave of his hand." " Well, he has not exactly done that, but he and his daughter have rendered us immense service. I could have done nothing without them." The two natives, seeing through the bushes the rec- ognition that had taken place, had now stepped forward and salaamed as the Doctor spoke a few hearty words to them. II IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 367 Hin- r face red — e was t. It it the le the ressed again. s, and Isobel threw imaze- thank g- with ure on hand, as he toy! to seems e were and I else?" with )octor irongh wave Ind his could le rec- )rward words " But where have you sprung from, Doctor? How were you saved?" " I jumped overboard when those scoundrels opened fire," the Doctor said. . "I kept my wits about me, and said to myself that if I were to swim for the opposite shore the chances were that I should get shot down, so I made a long dive, came up for aii and then went down again, and came up the next time under some bushes by the bank; there I remained all night. The villains were only a few yards away, and I could hear every word they said. I heard the boat come ashore, and al- though I could have done no good by rushing out, I think I should have done so if I had hdd any weapon about me, and have tried to kill one or two of them before I went down. As it was, I waited until morni^ig, then I heard j|.ie rumble of the guns and the wagons and knew that they were off. I waited for another houi to make sure, and then stepped ashore. I went to t.ie beat lying by the bank, when I saw that Iscbel arxd the oi.e/ t^.'o ladies were not there, and knew that they mar^r. hafo been carried off into Cawnpore. I waited th^' o urjtil night, and then made my way to a peasant'? house a mile out of the town. I had operated upon fcim for elephantiasis two years ago, an the man had shown himself grateful, and occasiona' had sent me in li'tle presents of fowls and so on. le received me well, gave me food, which I wanted h- rribly, stained my skin, and rigged me out in this disg^ ^e. The next morning I went into the town, and for he last four or five days have wandered about there. ere was nothing I could do and yet I felt that I could not go away, but I must stay within sight of the prison where you were all con- fined till our column arrived. But this morning I de- termined to come down to join our people who were fighting their way up, little thinking that I should light upon you by the way. " "We were just going to push on. Doctor, but as you have had a good long tramp already, we will stop here until ta-morrow morning, if you like." " No, no, let us go on, Bathurst. I would rather be on the move, and you can tell me your story as we go. " ! I 4'i II ■< I 3^8 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. CHAPTER XXII. Bathurst knew the Doctor well, and perceived that, glad as he was to have met them, he was yet profoundly depressed in spirits. This, added to the fact that he had left Cawnpore that morning, instead of waiting as he had intended, convinced Bathurst that what he dreaded had taken place. He waited until Isobel stopped for a moment, that Rabda might rearrange the cloth folded round her in its proper draping. Then he said quickly, " I heard yesterday what was intended. Doctor. Is it possible that it has been done?" " It was done this morning." " What, all? Surely not all, Doctor?" " Every soul — every woman and child. Think of it — the fiends! the devils! The native brought me the news. If I had heard it in the streets of Cawnpore I should have gone mad, and seized a sword and run amuck. As it was I was well-nigh out of my mind. I could net stay there. The man would have sheltered me until the troops came up, but I was obliged to be moving, so I started down. Hush ! here conies Isobel ; we must keep it from her. " "Now, Isobel," he went on, as the girl joined them, and they all started along the road, '* tell me how it is I find you here." " Mr. Bathurst must tell you, Doctor ; I cannot talk about it yet — I can hardly think about it." " Well, Bathurst, let us hear it from you. " " It is a painful story for me to have to tell." Isobel looked up in surprise. " Painful, Mr. Bathurst? I should have thought " and she stopped. " Not all painful, Miss Hannay ; but in parts. I would rather tell you, Doctor, when we have finished our journey this evening, if your curiosity will allow you to wait so long. " "I will try to wait," the Doctor replied, "though I own it is a trial. Now, Isobel, you have not told me yet what has happened to your face. Let me look at it k IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 369 that, ndly Lt he ng as It he sobel e the en he nded, c of it ae the Lpore I id run nd. I altered 1 to be sobel ; them, Iw it is )t talk would id our fw you )Ugh I lold nie )k at it closer, child. I see your arms are bad, too. What on earth has happened to you, child?" " I burned myself with acid. Doctor. Mr. Bathurst will tell you all about it. " "Bless me, mystery seems to thicken. Well, you have got yourself into a pretty pickle. Why, child, bums of that sort leave scars as bad as if you had been burned by fire. You ought to be in a dark room with your face and hands bandaged, instead of tramping along here in the sun." " I have some lotions and some ointment. Doctor. I have used them regularly since it was done, and the places don't hurt me much now." " No, they look healthy enough," he said, examining them closely. "Granulation is going on nicely; but I warn you you will be disfigured for months, and it may be years before you get rid of the scars. I doubt, in- deed, if you will ever get rid of them altogether. Well, well, what shall we talk about?" " I will take pity on you, Doctor. I will walk on ahead with Rabda and her father, and Mr. Bathurst can then tell you his story. " " That will be the best plan, my dear. Now then, Bathurst, fire away, "he said, when the others had gone on thirty or forty yards ahead. " Well, Doctor, you remember that you were forward talking to the young Zemindar, and I was sitting aft by the side of Miss Hannay when they opened fire?" " I should think I do remember it, " the Doctor said, " and I am not likely to forget it if I live to be a hun- dred. Well, what about that?" " I jumped overboard," Bathurst said, laying his hand impressively upon the Doctor's shoulder, " I gave a cry, I know I did, and I jumped overboard." The Doctor looked at him in astonishment. " Well, so did I, like a shot. But what do you say it in that tone for? Of course you jumped overboard. If you hadn't you would not be here now." "You don't understand me, Doctor," Bathurst said gloomily. " I was sitting there next to Isobel Hannay --the woman I lo\ed, W§ were talking in low tones, F / 370 IN THE DAYS OF THK MUTINY. and I don't know why, but at that moment the mad thought was coming into my mind that, after all, she cared for me; that in spite of the disgrace I had brought upon myself, in spite of my being a coward, she might still be mine; and as I was thinking this, there came the crash of a cannon. Can it be imagined possible that I jumped up like a frightened hare, and without a thought of her, without a thought of any- thing, in my mad terror jumped overboard and left her behind to her fate? If it had not been that as soon as I recovered my senses — I was hit on the head just as I landed, and knew nothing of what happened until I found myself in the bushes with young Wilson by my side — the thought occurred to me that I would rescue her or die in the attempt, I would have blown out my ^ brains." "But bless my heart, Bathurst!" the Doctor said earnestly, *' what else could you have done? Why, I jumped overboard without stopping to think, and so did every one else wuo had power to do so, no doubt. What good could you have done if you had stayed? What good would it have done to the girl if you had been killed? Why, if you had been killed, she would nowise lying mangled and dead with the others in that ghastly prison. You take a morbid view of it alto- gether. " "There was no reason why you should not have jumped overboard, Doctor, nor the others. Don't you see I was with the woman I loved? I might have seized her in my arms and jumped overboard with her and swam ashore with her, or I might h. ve staj'^ed and died with her. I thought of my own wretched life, and I deserted her." " My dear Bathurst, you did not think of your life. I don't think any of us stopped to think of anything; but, constituted as you are, the impulse must have been overpowering. It is nonsense your taking this matter to heart. Why, man, if you had stopped you would have been murdered when the boat touched the shore, and dc you think it would have made her happier to have seen you killed before her eyes? If you had swum IN THE DAYS OI" TIIK MUriNY. 371 ) mad 11, she I had )ward, r this, agined e, and »£ any- ef t her oon as 1st as I until I by my rescue out my ' or said Why, I and so 1 doubt. I stayed? you had B would s in that it alto- ot have on't you ve seized her and and died :e, and I lour life. Inythmg; lave been lis matter lu would le shore, ippier to ashore with her the chances arc she would have been killed by that volley of grape, for I .saw eight or ten bodies lying on the sands, and you yourself were, you say, hit. You acted upon impulse, I grant, but it was upon a wise impul.se. You did the very best thing that could have been done, and your doing .so made it pos- sible that Isobel Hannay should be rescued from what would otherwise have been certain death." " It has turned out so, Doctor," Bathurst said gloomily, " and I thank God that she is saved. Hut that docs not alter the fact that I, an English gentleman by birth, thought only of myself, and left tlie woman I loved, who was sitting by my side, to perish. ]>ut do not let us talk anymore about it. It is done and over. There is an end of it now. I will tell you the story." The Doctor listened silently until he heard of Tsobel's being taken to Hithoor. "'Ihe atrocious villain," he exclaimed. " I have been lamenting the last month that I never poisoned the fellow, and now — but go on, go on. How on earth did you get her away?" Bathurst told the whole story, interrupted by many exclamations of ap])roval by the Doctor; especially when he learned why Isobel disfigured herself. "Well done!" he exclaimed; " I always knewthatshe was a plucky girl, and it needed courage, I can tell you, to burn herself as she has done, to say nothing of risk- ing spoiling her beauty for life. No slight sacrifice for a woman. " Bathurst passed lightly over his fight in the court-yard, but the Doctor questioned him as to the exact facts. "Not so bad for a coward, Bathurst," he said dryly. "There was no noise," Bathurst said; "if they had had pistols, and had used them, it might have been dif- ferent Heaven know.s, but I don't think that then, with her life at stake, I should have flinched; I had made up my mind they would have pistols, but I hope — I think that my nerves would not have given way then. " " I am sure they wouldn't, Bathurst — well, go on with your vStory." " Well, how did you feel then?" he asked, when Bathurst described hQw the guard rushed iu through 373 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. the gate firing, " for it is the noise and not the danger that upsets you. " "I did not even think of it," Bathurst said, in some surprise. *' Now you mention it, I am astonished that I was not for a minute paralyzed, as I always am, but I did not feel anything of the sort; they rushed in firing as I told yo I, and directly they had gone I took her hand and we ran out together. " " I think it quite possible, Bathurst, that your nervous- ness may have gone forever. Now that once you have liokird guns fired close to you without your nerves giving way as usual, it is quite possible that you might do so again. I don't say that you would, but it is possible, in- deed it seems to me to be probable. It maybe that the sudden shock when you jumped into the water, acting upon your nerves when in a state of extreme tension, may have set them right, md that bullet graze along the top of the skull may have aided the effect of the shock. Men frequently lose their nerve after a heavy fall from a horse, or a sudden attack by a tiger, or any other un- expected shock. It may be that with you it has had the reverse consequence." " I hope to God that it may be so, Doctor. It is cer- tainly extraordinary that I should not have felt it when there was musketry fired within :i few feet of my head. If we get down to Allahabad I will try. I will place myself near a gun when it is going to be fired, and if I stand it I will come up again and join this column as a volunteer and take part in the work of vengeance. If I can but once bear my part as a man they are welcome to kill me in the next engagement." "Pooh! pooh, man! you are not born to be killed in battle. After making yourself a target on the roof at Deennugghur, and jumping down in the middle of the vSepoys in the breach, and getting through that at- tack in the boats, I don't think you are fated to meet your end with a bullet. Well, now let us walk on, and join the others. IsobeVmust be wondering how much longer we are going to talk together. She caniiot ex- change a word with the natives, it must be dull work for her. She is a gre^t 4^al thinner than ?he was be- mger some that I but I firing k her rvous- .1 have giving t do so Die, in- lat the acting n, may the top shock. 11 from her Un- as had is cer- t when head. place nd if I nn as a ice. If welcome J killed he roof ddle of hat at- o meet on, and much Inpt ex- 11 work Iwas be' IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 373 fore these troubles came on. You see how differently she walks. She has quite lost that elastic step of hers, but I dare .say that is a good deal due to her walking with bare feet instead of in English boot.s — boots have a good deal to do with a walk. Look at the difference between the walk of a gentleman who has always worn well-fitting boots and that of a countryman who has gone about in thick iron-shod boots all his life. Breed- ing goes for something, no doubt, and alters a man's walk just as it alters a horse's gait." Bathurst could not help laughing at the Doctor drop- ping into his usual style of discussing things. "Are your feet feeling tender, Isobel?" the latter asked cheerfully, as he overtook those in front. "No, Doctor," she said with a smile; "I don't know that I was ever thankful for dust before, but I am now; it is so soft that it is like walking on a carpet, but, of course, it feels very strange." " You have only to fancy, my dear, that you are by the sea-side, walking down from your bathing machine across the sands; once get that in your mind and yon will get perfectly comfortable. " " It requires too great a stretch of the imagination, Doctor, to think for a moment, in this sweltering heat, that I am enjoying a sea-breeze on our English coast. It is silly, cf course, to give it even a thought, when one is accustomed to see almost every woman without shoes. I think I should mind it more than I do if my feet were not stained. I don't know why, but I should. But please don't talk about it. I try to forget it and to fancy that I am really a native." They met but few people on the road. Those they did meet passed them with the usual salutation. There was nothing strange in a party of peasants passing along the road. They might have been at work at Cawnpore, and be now returning to their native village to get away from the troubles there. After it became dark, they went into a clump of trees half a mile distant from a village they could see along the road. "I will go in," Rujub said, "and bring some grain, and hear what the news is." IMAGE EVALUATION TEST TARGET (MT-3) 7 . ^O ^A% /. t/. V]

378 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. ' ! Isobel flushed and then grew pale. "What is the crotchet?" she asked, in a low tone, after being silent for some time. " What do you think, my dear? he is more disgusted with himself than ever. " "Not about that nervousness, surely," Isobel said, " after all he has done and the way he has risked his life? Surely that cannot be troubling him?" " It is, my dear ; not so much on the general as on a particular ground. He insists that by jumping out of the boat when that fire began, he has done for himself altogether. " " But what could he have done. Doctor?" " That's what I ask him, my dear. He insists that he ought to either have seized you and jumped over- board with you, in which case you would both probably have been killed, as I pointed out to him, or else stayed quietly with you by your side, in which case, as I also pointed out to him, you would have had the satisfaction of seeing him murdered. He could not deny that this would have been so, but that in no way alters his opin- ion of his own conduct. I also ventured to point out to him that if he had been killed you would at this mo- ment be either in the power of that villanous Nana or be with hundreds of others in that ghastly well at Cawnpore. I also observed to him that I, who do not regard myself as a coward, also jumped overboard from your boat, and that Wilson, who is certainly a plucky young fellow, and a number of others jumped over from the other boat ; but I might as well have talked to a post. " Isobel sat for some time silent, her fingers playing nervously with each other. " Of course it seems foolish of him to think of it so strongly, but I don't think it is unnatural he should feel as he does. " " May I ask why?" the Doctor said sarcastically. " I mean, Doctor, it would be foolish of other people, but I don't think it is foolish of him. Of course he could have done no good staying in the boat, he would have simply thrown away his life, and yet I think, I IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 3751 after listed said, sdhis i on a DUt of imself s that over- )bably stayed I also faction at this 3 opin- nt out is mo- ana or rell at do not dfrom plucky r from d to a laying )f it so should )eople, Irse he would link, I feel sure, that there are many men who would have thrown away their lives in such a case. Even at that moment of terror I felt a pang, when, without a word, he sprang overboard. I thought of it many times that long night, in spite of my grief for my uncle and the others, and my horror of being a prisoner in the hands of the Sepoys. I did not blame him, because I knew how he must have felt, and that it was done in the panic of a moment. I was not so sorry for myself as for him, for I knew that, if he escaped, the thought of that mo- ment would be terrible for him. I need not say that in my mind the feeling that he should not have left me so has been wiped out a thousand times by what he did afterward, by the risk he ran for me and the infinite service he rendered me by saving me from a fate worse than death. But I can enter into his feelings. Most men would have jumped over just as he did and would never have blamed themselves even if they had once started away down the country to save their own lives, much less if they had stopped to save mine as he has done. " But who can wonder that he is more sensitive than others? Did he not hear from you that I said that a coward was contemptible? Did not all the men except you and my uncle turn their backs upon him and treat him with contempt in spite of his effort to meet his death by standing up on the roof? Think how awfully he must have suffered, and then, when it seemed that his intervention, which saved our lives, had to some extent won him back the esteem of the men around him, that he should so fail again, as he considers, and that with me beside him. No wonder that he takes the view he does, and that he refuses to consider that even the de- votion and courage he afterward showed can redeem what he considers is a disgrace. You always said that he was brave. Doctor, and I believe now there is no braver man living; but that makes it so much the worse for him. A coward would be more than satisfied with himself for what he did afterward, and would regard it as having completely wiped out any failing, while he magnifies the failing such as it was, and places but 38p IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. i small weight on what he afterward did. I like him all the better for it. I know the fault, if fault it was, and I thought it so at the time, was one for which he was not responsibl ;, and yet I like him all the better that he feels it so deeply." "Well, my dear, you had better tell him so," the Doctor said dryly. " I really ag^ree with what you say, and you make an excellent advocate. I cannot do bet- ter than leave the matter in your hands. You know, child, " he said, changing his tone, " I have from the first wished for Bathurst and you to come together, and if you don't do so I shall say you af^ the most wrong- headed young people I ever met. He loves you, and I don't think there is any question ak|iq|it your feelings, and you ought to make matters right somehow. Un- fortunately, he is a singularly pig-headed man when he gets an idea in his mind. However, I hope that it will come all right. By the way, he asked were you well enough to see him to-day?" " I would rather not see him till to-morrow," the girl said. " And I think too that you had better not see him until to-morrow, Isobel. Your cheeks are flushed now, and your hands are trembling and I do not want you laid up again, so I order you to keep yourself perfectly quiet for the rest of the day." But it was not till two days later that Bathurst came up to see her. The spies brought in, late that evening, the news that a small party of the Sepoy cavalry, with two guns, were at a village three miles on the other side of the town, and were in communication with the disaffected. It was decided at once by the officer who had succeeded General Neil in the command of the fort, that a small party of fifty infantry, accompanied by ten or twelve mounted volunteers, should go out and attack them. Bathurst sent in his name to form one of the party as soon as he learned the news, borrowing the horse of an officer who was laid up ill. The expedition started two hours before daybreak, and making a long detour fell upon the Sepoys at seven IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 381 ime jak, Iven o'clock. The latter, who had received news half an hour before of their approach, relying on their cannon, made a stand. The infantry, however, moved forward in skirmishing order, their fire quickly silenced the guns, and they then rushed forward while the little troop of volunteers charged. The fight lasted but a few minutes, at the end of which time the enemy galloped off in all directions leaving their guns in the hands of the victors. Four of the assailants had been killed by the explosion of a well-aimed shell, and five of the volunteers were wounded in the haml-to-hand fight with the Sowars. The Sepoys' guns and artillery horses had been captured. The party at once set out on their- return. On their way they had some skirmishing with the rabble of the town, who had heard the firing, but they were beaten off without much difficulty and the victors re-entered tl- fort in triumph. The Doctor was at the gate as they came in. Bathurst sprang from his norse and held out his hand. His radiant face told its own story. "Thank God, Doctor, it has passed! I don't think my pulse went a beat faster when the guns opened on us, and the crackle of our own musketry had no more effect. I think it has gone forever. " "I am glad indeed, Bathurst," the Doctor said, warmly grasping his hand. " I hoped that it might be so." " No words can express how grateful I feel," Bathurst said. " The cloud that shadowed my life seems lifted, and henceforth I shall be able to look a man in the face. " "You are wounded, I see," the Doctor said. "Yes, I had a pistol ball through my left arm. I fancy the bone is broken, but that is of no consequence. " "A broken arm is no trifle," the Doctor said, "es- pecially in a climate like this. Come into the hospital at once and let me see to it. " One of the bones of the forearm was indeed broken, and the Doctor, having applied splints and bandages, peremptorily ordered him to lie down. Bathurst pro- tested that he w^s perfectly able to get up with his «^vm 382 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. " I know you are able," the Doctor said testily; " and if you were to go about in this oven we should very likely have you in a high fever by to-morrow morning. Keep yourself perfectly quiet for to-day ; by to-morrow, if you have no signs of fever and the wound is doing well, we will see about it.' Upon leaving him, Dr. Wade went out and heard the details of the fight. "Your friend, Bathurst, particularly distinguished himself," th< officer who commanded the volunteers said. " He cut down the ressaldar who commanded the Sepoys, and was in the thick of it. I saw him run one Sowar through and shoot another. I am not surprised at his fighting so well after what you hav" gone through in Deennugghur and in that Cawnpore business." The Ddctoi* then went up to see Isobel. She looked flushed and excited. " Is it true. Doctor, that Mr. Bathurst went out with the vohmteers, and that he is wounded?" "Both items are true, my dear; fortunately the wound is not serious. It har broken the small bone of the left fore-arm, but I don't think it will lay him up for long; in fact, he objects strongly to go to bed." " But how did he — how is it he went out to fight. Doctor? I could hardly believe it when I was told, though, of course, I did not say so. " " My dear, it was an experiment. He told me that he did not feel at all nervous when the Sepoys rushed in, firing, at the gate, when he was walking ofl? with you, and it struck me that possibly the sudden shock and the jump into the water when they attacked the boats, and that rap on the head with a musket-ball, might have affected his nervous system, and that possibly he was cured, so he was determined on the first occasion to try. " "And did it, doctor?" Isobel asked eagerly. "I don't care, you know, one bit whether he is nervous when there is a noise or not, but for his sake I should be glad to know that he has got over it ; it has made him so unhappy. " " He has got over it, my dear ; he went through the (ight without feeling tl;e least nervous, ai^^ 4istiuguiel^§4 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 383 'and very ling, •row, loing dtlie lished iteers sdthe in one prised irough >» looked ut with sly the bone of im up II .fight, ^s told, lie that riished tth you, [and the its, and it have [he was to try." fy. 1 [nervous : should is made .jgh the Igui^l;^^^ himself very much in the charge, as the officer who commanded his troops has just told me. " "Oh, I am glad — I am thankful. Doctor; no words can say how pleased I am ; I know that it would have made his whole life unhappy, and I should have always had the thought that he remembered those hateful words of mine. " " I am as glad as you are, Tsobel, though I fancy it will change our plans. " "How change our plans, Doctor? I did not know that I had any plans. " "I think you had, child, though you might not acknowledge them even to yourself. My plan was that you should somehow convince him that, in spite of what you said, and in spite of his leaving you in that boat, you were quite content to take him for better or for worse. " " How could I tell him that?" the j^irl said, coloring. " Well, I think you would have haa to do so some- how, my dear, but that is not the question now. My plan was that when you had succeeded in doing this you should marry him and go home with him." "But why. Doctor," she asked, coloring even more hotly than before, " is the plan changed?" " Because, my dear, I don't think Bathurst will go home with you. " ** Why not. Doctor?" she asked in surprise. " Because, my dear, he will want, in the first place, to rehabilitate himself. " " But no one knows. Doctor, about the siege and what happened there, except you and I and Mr. Wilson ; all the rest have gone. " " That is tiTie, my dear, but he will want to rehabili- tate himself in his own eyes, and besides that former affair, which firct set you against him, might crop up at any time. Other civilians, many of them, have volunteered in the service, and no man of courage would like to go away as long as things are in their present state. You will see, Bathurst will stay." Isobel was silent. " I think he will be right," slj^ ss^i4 at last gravely, 384 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. " If he wishes to do so, I should not try to dissuade him ; it would be very hard to know that he is in danger, but no harder for me than for others. " "That is right, my dear," the Doctor said affection- ately. " I should not wish my little girl — and now the Major has gone I feel that you are my little girl — to think otherwise. I think," he went on, smiling, "that the first part of that plan we spoke of will not be as difficult as I fancied it would be; the sting has gone and he will get rid of his morbid fancies." " When shall I be able to see him?" " Well, if I had any authority over him you would not see him for a week ; as I have not, I think it likely enough that you will see him to-morrow." " I would rather wait if it would do him any harm, Doctor." " I don't think it will do him any harm. Beyond the fact that he will have to carry his-arm in a sling for the next fortnight, I don't think he will have any trouble with it." CHAPTER XXIII. The next morning Bathurst found Isobel Hannay sitting in a shady court that had been converted into a sort of general room for ladies in the fort. " How are you. Miss Hannay? I am glad to see you down." " I might repeat your words, Mr. Bathr st, for you see we have changed places. You are the invalid, and not I. " "There is very little of the invalid about me," he said. " I am glad to see that your face is much better than it was. " " Yes, it is healing fast. I am a dreadful figure still, and the Doctor says that there will be red scars for months, and that probably my face will be always marked. " " The Doctor is a croaker, Miss Hannay ; there is no occasion to trust him too implicitly. } predict that i\\^X^ 'yvill not be any-serious scars left." IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 385 im; but ;ion- rthe I— to that )e as gone vould likely harm, ad the "or the rouble [annay into a lee you 70U sec [not I." 16," he better re still, tars for 1 always te is no let that He took a seat beside her. There were two or three others in the court, but these were upon the other side, quite out of hearing. " I congratulate you, Mr. Bathurst," she said quietly, " on yesterday. The Doctor has, of course, told me all about it. It can make no difference to us who knew you, but I am heartily glad for your sake. I can under- stand how great a difference it must make to you." " It has made all the difference in the world," he re- plied. " No one can tell the load it has lifted from my mind. I only wish it had taken place earlier. " " I know what you mean, Mr. Bathurst, the Doctor has told me about that too. You may wish that you had remained in the boat, but it was well for me that you did not. You would have lost your life without benefiting me. I should be now in the well of Ccwu- pore, or worse, at Bithoor." "That may be," he said gravely, "but it does not alter the fact." " I have no reason to know why you consider you should have stopped in the boat, Mr. Bathurst," she went on quietly, but with a slight flush on her cheek. " I can perhaps guess by what you afterward did for me, by the risks you ran to save me, but I cannot go by guesses, I think I have a right to know. " "You are making me say what I did not mean to say," he exclaimed passionately, " at least not now; but you do more than guess, you know — you know that I love you." "And what do you know?" she asked softly. "I know that you ought not to love me," he said. " No woman should love a coward. " " I quite agre? with y; .u but then I know that you are not a coward. " "Not when I jumped over and left you alone? It was the act of a cur," "It was an act for which you were not really re- sponsible. Had you been able to think, you would not have done so. I do not take the view the Doctor does, and I agree with you, that a man loving a woman should first of all think of her and of her safety. So you as $S6 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. A ^ thought when you could think, but yr>u were no more responsible for your action than a madman for a murder committed when in a state of frenzy. It was an im- pulse you could not control. Had you, after the im> pulse had passed, come down here, believing, as you might well have believed, that it was absolutely im- possible to rescue me from my fate, it would have beon different. But the moment you came to yourself you deliberately took every risk and showed how brave you were when master of yourself. I am speaking plainly, perhaps more plainly than I ought to. But I should despise myself had I not the courage tq speak out now, when so much is at stake, and aft^r all you have done for me. You love me?" " You know that I love you. " "And I love you," the girl said; ''more than that, I honor and esteem yoiT. I am proud of your love. I am jealous for your honor as for my own, and I hold that honor to be spotless. Even now, even with my happin^3ss at stake, I could not speak so plainly had I not spoken so cruelly and wrongly before. I did not know you then as I know you now, but having said what I thought then, I am bound to say what I think now, if only as a penance. Did I hesitate to do so, I should be less grateful than that poor Indian girl, who was ready, as she said, to give her life for the life you had saved. " "Had you spoken so bravely but two days since," Bathurst said, taking her hand, "I would have said, 'I love you too well, Isobel, to link your fate to that of a dis- graced man,' but now I have it in my power to retrieve myself, to wipe or' the unhappy memory of my first failure, and still more to restore the self-respect which I have lost during the last month. But to do so I must stay here; I must bear part in the terrible struggle there will be before this mutiny is put down, India re- conquered, and Cawnpore revenged. " " I will not try to prevent you," Isobel said. " I feel that it would be wrong to do so. I could not honor you as I do, if for my sake you turned away now. Even though I knew I should never see you again I would IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. no more I murder 5 an im- the im- ;, as you itely im- ave beon rself you ►rave you r plainly, I should out now, lave done Ein that, I r love. I nd I hold I with my inly had I I did not Lving said I think do so, I girl, who le life you rs since," ^e said, *I itof adis- to retrieve my first ject which so I must struggle India re- " I feel Ihonor you Even I would 387 ^ that you had died so, than lived with even the shadow of dishonor on your name. I shall suffer, but there are hundreds of other women whose husbands, lovers, or sons are in the fray, and I shall not flinch more than they do from giving my dearest to the work of avenging our murdered friends and winning back India. " So quietly had they been talking that no thought of how momentous their conversation had been had en- tered the minds of the ladies sitting working but a few paces away. One, indeed, had remarked to another: "I thought when Dr. Wade was telling us how Mr. Bathurst had rescued that unfortunate girl with the disfigured face at Cawnpore, that there was a romance in the case, but I don't see any signs of it. They are good friends, of course, but there is nothing lover-like in their way of talking. " So thought Dr. Wade when he came in and saw them sitting there and gave vent to his feeling in a grunt of dissatisfaction. " It is like driving two pigs to market, " he said ; " they won't go the way I want them to, out of pure contrari- ness." "It is all settled. Doctor," Bathurst said, rising. " Shake hands, it is to you I owe my happiness chiefly." "Isobel, my dear, give me a kiss," the Doctor ex- claimed. " I am glad, my dear, I am glad with all my heart. And what have you settled besides that?" " We have settled that I am to go home as soon as I can go down country, and he is going up with you and the others to Cawnpore. " "That is right," the Doctor said heartily, " I told you that was what he v/ould decide upon ; it is right that lie should do so. No man ought to tuni his face to the coast till Lucknow is relieved and Delhi is captured. I thank God it has all come right at last! I began to be afraid that Bathurst's wrong-headedness was going to mar both your lives. " The news had already come down that Havelock had found that it would be absolutely impossible with the small force at his command to fight his way into Lucknow through the multitude of foes that surrounded it, and 388 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. that he must wait until reinforcements arrived. There was, therefore, no urgent hurry, and it was not until ten days later that a second troop of volunteer horse, composed of civilians unable to resume their duties and officers whose regiments had mutinied, started for Cawnpore. Half an hour before they mounted, Isobel Hannay and Bathurst were married by the chaplain in the fort. This was at Bathurst's earnest wish. "I may not return, Isobel," he had urged; "it is of no use to blink the fact that we have desperate fighting before us, and I should go into battle with my mind much more easy in the knowledge that come what might you were provided for. The Doctor tells me that he considers you his adopted daughter, and that he has already drawn up a will leaving his savings to )'^ou; but I should like your future to come from me, dear, even if I am not to share it with you. As you know, I have a fine estate at home and I should like to think of you as its mistress. " And Isobel of course had given way, though not with- out protest. "You don't know what I may be like yet," she said, half-laughing, half in earnest. " I may carry these red blotches to my grave. " " They are honorable scars, dear, as honorable as anj' gained in battle. I hope, for your sake, that they will get better in time, but it makes no difference to me. I know what you were and hovv' you sacrificed your beauty. I suppose if I came back short of an arm or leg you would not make that an excuse for throwing me over." "You ought to be ashamed of yourself for even thinking of such a thing, Ralph." "Well, dear, I don't know that I did think it, but I am only putting a paiallel case to your own. No, you must give way, it is in all ways best. We will be mar- ried on the morning I start, so as just to give time for our wedding breakfast before I mount. " "It shall be as you wish," she said softly. **You know the estate without you would be nothing to me, but I should lik'^ to bear your name, and should you ^ IN THE DAYS OP THE MUTINY. 389 There ►t until horse, • duties :ted for Hannay tie fort. it is of fighting ly mind le what :ells me [ that he i to)^ou; le, dear, know, I to think lot with- le said, hese red e as any hey will me. I beauty, leg you over. " or even it, but I No, you be mar- time for ♦*You to me, lid yo\i never come back to me, Ralph, to mourn for you all my life as my husband. But I believe you will return to me. I think I am getting superstitious and believe in all sorts of things since so many strange things have happened: those pictures on the smoke that came true, Rujub sending you messages at Deennugghur, and Rabda making me hear her voice and sending me messages in prison. I do not feel so miserable at the thought of your going into danger as I should do if I did not feel a sort of conviction that we shall meet again. People believe in presentiments of evil, why should they not believe in presentiments of good? At any rate it is a comfort to me that I do feel so and I mean to go on believing it. " " Do so, Isobel. Of course there will be danger, but the danger will be nothing to that we have passed throug.i together. The Sepoys will no doubt fight hard, but already they must have begun to doubt, their confidence in, victory must be shaken, and they begin to fear retribution for their crimes. The fighting will, I think, be less severe as the struggle goes on, and at any rate the danger to us fighting as the assailants is as nothing to that run when we were little groups sur- rounded by a country in arms. " The news that has come through from Lucknow is that for some time, at any rate, the garrison are confi- dent they can hold out, while at Delhi we know that our position is becoming stronger every day ; the rein- forcements are beginning to arrive from England, and though the work may be slow at first, our army will swell, while their strength will diminish until we sweep th'^.n before us. I need not stop until the end, only till the peril is over, till Lucknow is relieved, and Delhi captured. "As we agreed, I have already sent in my resignation in the service, and shall fight as a volunteer only. If we have to fight our way into Lucknow cavalry will be useless, and I shall apply to be attached to one of the infantry regiments ; having served before there will be no difficulty about that. I think there are sure to be plenty of vacancies. Six months will assttrbdly aefe the 390 IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. force of the rebellion altogether broken. No doubt it will take much lonjjer crushing it out altogether, for they will break up into scattered bodies, and it may be a long work before these are all hunted down, but when the strength of the rebellion is broken I can leave with honor. " There were but few preparations to be mrde for the wedding. Great interest was felt in the fort in the event, for Isobel's rescue from Bithoor and Cawnpore, when all others who had fallen into the power of the Nana had fallen, had been the one bright spot in the gloom; and there would have been a general feeling of disappointment had not the romance had the usual termination. Isobel's presents were numerous and of a most useful character, for they took the form of articles of clothing, and her trousseau was a varied and extensive one. The Doctor said to her the evening before the event, "You ought to have a certificate from the authorities, Isobel, saying how you came into possession of your wardrobe, otherwise when you get back to England you will very soon come to be looked upon as a most sus- picious character. " " How do you mean. Doctor?" " Well, my dear, if the washerwoman to whom you send your assortment at the end of the voyage is an honest woman, she will probably give information to the police that you must be a receiver of stolen prop- erty, as your garments are all marked with different names." " It will look suspicious. Doctor, but I must run the risk of that till I can re-mark them again. I can do a good deal that way before I sail. It is likely we shall be another fortnight at least before we can start for Calcutta. I don't mean to take the old names out, but shall mark my initials over them and the word, 'from.' Then they will always serve as mementos of the kind- ness of every one here. " Early on the morning of the wedding a native pre- sented himself at the gate of the fort, and on being al- lowed to enter with a letter, of which he was the beiarer, : IN THE DAYS OP THE MUTINY. 39t oubt it er, for may be ,t when /e with for the in the vnpore, • of the ; in the feeling e usual t useful lothing, le. e event, lorities, of your and you ost sus- om you re is an ition to m prop- ifferent run the an do a ve shall tart for Dut, but 'from.' le kind- ve pre- eing al- 1 bearer, for Miss Hannay, handed her a parcel which proved to contain a very handsome and valuable set of jewelry, with a slip of paper on which were the words, " From Rabda." The Doctor was in high spirits at the breakfast to which everybody sat down directly after the wedding. In the first place his greatest wish was gratified, and in the second he was about to start to take par^, in the work of retribution. " One would think you were just starting on a pleas- ure party. Doctor," Isobel said. " It is worth all the pleasure parties in the world, my dear. I have always been a hunter, and this time it is human 'tigers' I am going in pursuit of; besides which," he said in a quieter tone, " I hope I am goin^ to cure as well as kill. I shall only be a soldier when I am not wanted as a doctor. A man who really loves his profession, as I do, is always glad to exercise it, and I fear I shall have ample opportunities that way ; besides, dear, there is nothing like being cheerful upon an occasion of this kind. The longer we laugh, the less time there is for tears." And so the party did not break up until it was nearly time for the little troop to start. Then there was a brief passionate parting, and the volunteer horse rode away to Cawnpore. Almost the first person they met as they rode into the British lines was Wilson, who gave a shout of joy at seeing the Doctor and Bathurst. "My dear Bathurst!" he exclaimed, "then you got safe down. Did you rescue Miss Hannay?" " I had that good fortune, Wilson." " I am glad, I am glad," the young fellow said, shak- ing his hand violently, while the tears stood in his eyes. " I know you were right in sending me away, but I have regretted it ever since. I know I should have been in the way, but it seemed such a mean thing for me to go off by myself. Well, Doctor, and so you got off too, " he went on, turning from Bathurst and wringing the Doctor's hand ; " I never even hoped that yoa escaped. I made sure that it was only we two. I have had an awful time of it since we heard the news, on the way up, of 39« lH tHE DAYS 6P THE MUTINV. I the massacre of the women. I had great faith in Bath- urst and knew that if anything could be done he would do it, but when I saw the place they had been shut up in, it did not seem really possible that he could have got any one out of it. And where did you leave Miss Hannay?" " We have not left her at all, " the Doctor said gravely, " there is no longer a Miss Hannay. There, man, don't look so shocked. She changed her name on the morn- ing we came away. " "What!" Wilson exclaimed. "Is she Mrs. Bath- urst? I am glad, Bathurst. Shake hands again; I felt sure that if you did rescue her that was what would come of it. I was almost certain by her way when I talked to her about you one day that she liked you. I was awfully spoony on her myself, you know, but 1 knew it was no use, and I would rather by a lot that she married you than anyone else I know. But come along into my tent, you know your troop and ours are going to be joined. We have lost pretty near half our fellows either in the fights coming up or by sunstroke or fever since we came here. I got hold of some fizz in the bazaar yesterday, and I am sure you must be thirsty. This is a splendid business, I don't know that I ever felt so glad of anything in my life, " and he dragged them away to his tent. Bathurst found, to his disappointment, that intense as was the desire to push forward to Lucknow, the gen- eral opinion was that the general would not venture to risk his little force in an operation that, with the means at his disposal, seemed well-nigh impossible. Cholera had made considerable ravages, and he had but fifteen hundred bayonets at his disposal. All that could be done pending the arrival of reinforcements was to pre- pare the way for an advance and show so bold a front that the enemy would be forced to draw a large force from Lucknow to oppose his advance. A bridge of boats was thrown across the Ganges and the force crossed the river and advanced to Onao, eight miles on the road to Lucknow. Here the enemy, strongly posted, barred the way, but they were at- IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 393 I Batti- would hut up d have 'e Miss ravely, , don't ! mom- Bath- ; I felt : would nrhen I id you. r, but 1 hat she e along 5 going fellows )r fever in the thirsty. ; I ever ragged intense le gen- ture to means holera fifteen uld be to pre- front force es and , eight memy, sre at- i tacked, and, after hard fighting, defeated, with a loss of three hundred men and fifteen guns. In this fight the volunteer horse, who had been formed into a single troop, did good service. One of their two officers was killed ; and as the party last up from Allahabad were all full of Bathurst's rescue of Miss Hannay from Cawnpore, and Wilson and the Doc- tor influenced the others, he was chosen to fill the vacancy. There were two other fierce fights out at Busserut- gunge and then Bathurst had the satisfaction of ad- vancing with the column against Bithoor. Here again the enemy fought sturdily, but were defeated with great slaughter, and the Nana's palace was destroyed. When, after the arrival of Outram with reinforce- ments, the column set out for Lucknow, the volunteers did not accompany them, as they would have been use- less in street fighting, and were therefore detailed to form part of the little force left at Cawnpore to hold the city and check the rebels, parties of whom were swarm- ing round it. The officer in command of the troop died of cholera a few days after Havelock's column started up, and Bathurst succeeded him. The work was very arduous, the men being almost constantly in their saddles, and having frequent encounters with the enemy. They were again much disappointed at being left behind when Sir Colin Campbell advanced to the relief of Havelock and the garrison, but did more than their share of fighting in the desperate strug'^le when the mutineers of the Gwalior contingent attached the forge at Cawnpore during the absence of the relieving column. Here they were almost annihilated in a desperate charge which saved the 64th from being cut to pieces at the most critical moment of the fight. Wilson came out of the struggle with the loss of his left arm, and two or three serious wounds. He had been cut off and surrounded, and was falling from his horse when Bathurst cut his way to his rescue, and, lift- ing him into his saddle before him, succeeded after desperate fighting in carrying him oflf, himself receiving 394 IN THE DAYS OP THt MUTINY. several wounds, none of which, however, were severe. The action had been noticed, and Bathurst's name was sent in for the Victoria Cross. As the troop had dwindled to a dozen sabres, he applied to Sir Colin Campbell, whose column had arrived in time to save the force at Cawnpore and to defeat the enemy, to be attached to a regiment as a volun^*!er. The general, however, at once offered him a post as an extra aide- de-camp to himself, as his perfect knowledge of the language would render him of great use ; and he gladly accepted the offer. With the rescued party from Lucknow was the Doctor. "By the way, Bathurst," he said, on the evening of his return, "I met an old acquaintance in Lucknow, you would never guess who it was — Forster." "You don't say so. Doctor." " Yes, it seems he was hotly pursued, but managed to shake the Sowars off. At that time the garrison was not so closely besieged as it afterward was. He knew the country well, and made his way across it until within sight of Lucknow. At night he rode right through the rebels, swam the river and gained the Residency. He distinguished himself greatly through the siege, but had been desperately wounded the day before we marched in. He was in a ward that was handed over to me directly I got there, and I at once saw that his case was a hopeless one. The poor fellow was heartily glad to see me. Of course he knew noth- ing of what had taken place at Deennugghur after he had left and was very much cut up when he heard the fate of almost all the garrison. He listened quietly when I told him how you had rescued Isobel and of your marriage. He was silent, and then said: *I am glad to hear it, Doctor, I am glad to her that she es- caped. Bathurst has fairly won her. I never dreamed that she cared for him. Well, it seems he wasn t a coward after all. And you say he has resigned and come upas a volunteer instead of going home with her? That is plucky, anyhow. Well, I am glad. I should not have been if I h&dn't been like this. Doctor, but IN THE DAYS OP THE MUTINY. 395 severe, ne was >p had • Colin to save r, to be eneral, 'a aide- of the gladly as the ling of cknow, managed son was le knew it until 3 right led the hrough he day lat was at once • feHow V noth- if ter he ard the quietly and of ; 'I am she es- eamed asn t a ed and th her? should )r. but now I am out of the running for good it makes no odds to m3 either way. If ever you see him again, you tell him i said I was glad. I expect he will make her a deucijdly better husband than I should have done. I nevei liked Bathurst, but I expect it was because he was a better fellow than most of us — that was at school, you know — and of course I did not take to him at Deennug- ghur. No one could have taken to a man there who could not stand fire. But you say he has got over that, so that is all right. Anyhow, I have no doubt he will make her happy. Tell her I am glad. Doctor. I thought at one time — but that is no odds now. I am glad you are out of it, too. ' •* And then he rambled on about shooting tigers, and did not say anything more sensible until late that night. I was sitting by him ; he had been unconscious for some time, and he opened his eyes suddenly and said, 'Tell them both, I am glad, ' and those were the last words he spoke. " "He was a brave soldier, a fine fellow in many ways," Bathurst said ; " if he had been brought up diifferenily he would have been a grand fellow, with all his gifts, but I fancy he never got any home training. Well, I am glad he didn't die as we supposed, without a friend beside him, on his way to Lucknow, and that he fell after doing his duty to the women and children there." Wilson refused to go home after the loss of his arm, and as soon as he recovered was appointed to one of the Sikh regiments, and took part in the final conquest of Lucknow two months after the fight at Cawnpore. A fortnight after the conclusion of that terrible struggle. Sir Colin Campbell announced to Bathurst that among the dispatches that he had received from home that morning was a Gazette^ in which his name appeared among those to whom the Victoria Cross had been granted. "I congratulate you heartily, Mr. Bathurst," the old officer said ; " I have had the pleasure of speaking in the highest terms of the braveiy you displayed in carrying my message through heavy fire a score of times during the late operatic tfls." 39^ IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. : Great as the honor of the Victoria Cross always is, to Bathurst it was much more than to other men. It was his rehabilitation. He need never fear now that his courage could be questioned, and the report that he had before left the army because he lacked courage would be forever silenced now that he could write V.C. after his name. The pleasure of Doctor Wade and Wilson war scarcely less than his own. The latter's regiment had suffered very heavily in the struggle at Lucknow, and he came out of it a caplain, having escaped without a wound. A week later Bathurst resigned his appointment. There was still much to be done, and months of march- ing and fighting before the rebellion was quite stamped out ; but there had now arrived a force ample to over- come all opposition, and there was no longer a necessity for the service of civilians. As he had already left the service of the company he was his own master, and therefore started at once for Calcutta. " I shall not be long before I follow you," the Doctor said, as they spent their last evening together. "I shall wait and see this out, and then retire. I should have liked to have gone home with you, but it is out of the question. Our hands are full, and likely to be so for some time, so I must stop." Bathurst stopped for a day at Patna to see Rujub and his daughter. He was received as an expected guest, and after spending a few hours with them he continued his journey. At Calcutta he found a letter awaiting him from Isobel saying that she had arrived safely in England, and should stay with her mother until his ar- rival, and there he found her. "I expected you to-day," she said, after the first rapturous greeting was over. " Six weeks ago I woke in the middle of the night and heard Rabda's voice distinctly say, *He has been with us to-day; he is safe and well ; he is on his way to you. ' As I knew how long you would take going down from Patna, I went the next day to the office and found which steamer you would catch and when she would arrive. My mother and sister both regarded me as a little out of my mind IN THE DAYS OF THE MUTINY. 397 and 5 first woke when I said you would be back this week. They have not the slightest belief in what I told them &bout Rujub, and insist that it is all a sort of hallucination brought on by my sufferings. Perhaps they will believe now. " " Your face is wonderfully better," he said presently. " The marks seem dying out, and you look almost like your old self. " " Yes, " she said, " I have been to one of the great doctors, and he says that he thinks the scars will quite disappear in time. " Isobel Bathurst has never again received any distinct message from Rabda, but from time to time she has the consciousness, when sitting quietly alone, that the girl is with her in thought. Every year letters and presents are exchanged, and to the end of their lives she and her husband will feel that their happiness is chiefly due to her and her father — Rujub the Juggler. THE END. how went